Skip to main content

Full text of "The Negro in American history; men and women eminent in the evolution of the American of African descent"

See other formats


?"  '-^^ 


A' 


.\^ 


%  I 


"oo^ 


vO<=. 


■0' 


,\       ."^  jpn//; 


■^oo^ 


^^^•^^^    . 


^     <■    ^     •>  ^ 


-.0'- 


,0' 


«^^  "^.. 


•?/ 


o. 


'  0  «  X  *     ,G 


O 


\^ 


/* 

-^    -^ 


-?• 


> 


0' 


a^    -^c^. 


c^. 


.^    .0- 


J' 


V  * 


^  ** 


0^- 


\ 


,0^. 


.6-^ 


"bo^ 


c- 


\\ 


A> 


■<^ 


e. 


\ 


0 


?*•'. 


r  .^- 


.6^ 


n^  s^  ^■ '.,  'c- 


,-^.^1^^* 


CJ_ 


1        --^ 


■■,   -f 


I."'  %. <-^'  "      '=  %^^'  -  ^'^"^ 


u 


^»  ^.e=:«:?^\,.s 


8    1    ^ 


.0^    ,- 


0  N    & 


'"-%,  c"^ 


.^^^ 


^-- 


■G  ^  A 


;  "^^-^  v^ 


^Oo^ 


.0 


0     ^  "^     -f7«sl''^    ^^ 


THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 


/ 


THE  NEGRO 
IN    AMERICAN    HISTORY 


MEN    AND    WOMEN    EMINENT 

IN   THE   EVOLUTION    OF    THE 

AMERICAN  OF  AFRICAN 

DESCENT 

BY 

JOHN  W.  CROMWELL 

Secretary  of  the  American  Negro  Academy, 
Washington,  D.  C. 


WASHINGTON 
THE  AMERICAN  NEGRO  ACADEMY 

1914 


Copyright,  1914,  by 
JOHN  W.  CROMWELL 


APR.^tiSI4 


J.  F.  TAPLEY  CO. 

NEW   YORK 


1^ 


^ 


,^f  /  ^^ 


DEDICATION 

Oh!     Sing  it  in  the  light  of  freedom's  mom, 
The'  tyrant  wars  have  made  the  earth  a  grave; 
The  good,  the  great,  and  true,  are,  if  so,  born, 
And  so  with  slaves,  chains  do  not  make  the  slave! 
If  high-souled  birth  be  what  the  mother  gave, — 
If  manly  birth,  and  manly  to  the  core, — 
Wliate'er  the  test,  the  man  will  he  behave! 
Crush  him  to  earth,  and  crush  him  o'er  and  o'er, 
A  MAN  he'll  rise  at  last  and  meet  you  as  before. 


— A.  A.  Whitman. 


TABLE  OF  CONTENTS 

PAGE 

I  Discovery,   Colonization,-  Slavery 1 

II  The  Slave  Code -r^^....       6 

III  National  Independence  and  Emancipation  ...     10 

«--iV  Slave  Insurrections 12- 

V  Some  Early  Strivings 17 "" 

VI  Abolition  of  Slave  Trade 18 

VII  From  1816  to  1870 1»-^ 

VIII  Slavery — Extension  and  Abolition 21 

IX  Civil  War  and  Reconstruction 23-.. 

X  Educational  Progress 25 

XI  The  Early  Convention  Movement 27 

XII  Reconstruction  Fails 47 

XIII  Negro  as  Soldier,  a,  1652-1814 50 

XIV  Negro  as  Soldier,  b,  1861-1865 54 , 

XV  Spanish-American  War 57 

/^SKYl  Negro  Church 61-^ 

XVII  Retrospect  and  Prospect 71 

XVIII  Phillis  Wheatley 77 

XIX  Benjamin   Banneker 86 

XX  Paul  Cutfe,  Navigator  and  Philanthropist     .     .     98 

XXI  Sojourner  Truth       .' 104  l^ 

XXII  Daniel  Alexander  Payne 115 

XXIII  Henry  Highland  Garnet 126 

XXIV  Alexander  Crummell 130 

XXV  Frederick    Douglass 139 'i--^^ 

XXVI  John    Mercer    Langston 155 

XXVII  Blanche  Kelso  Bruce 164 


TABLE  OF  CONTENTS 

PAGE 

XXVIII  Joseph  Charles  Price 171 

XXIX  Robert  Brown  Elliott 179 

XXX  Paul   Laurence    Dunbar 188 

XXXI  Booker  Taliaferro  Washington 195 

XXXII  Fanny  M.   Jackson   Coppin 213 

XXXIII  Henry  Osawa  Tanner 219 

XXXIV  John    F.    Cook    and    Sons,    John    F.,    Jr.^    and 

George  F.  T 228 

XXXV    Edward  Wilmot  Blyden 235 

APPENDICES 

Appendix  A— Holly 241 

Appendix  B — ^An  Early  Incident  of  the  Civil  War     .     .      .  242 

Appendix  C — The  Somerset  Case 245 

Appendix  D — The  Amistad   Captives 245 

Appendix  E — The  Underground  Railroad  .......  243 

Appendix  F — The    Freedmen's    Bureau 24S 

Appendix  G — Medal  of   Honor  Men 249 

Appendix  H — The  Freedmen's  Bank 253 

Bibliography 255 

Reports 260 

Chronology 261 

Index 267 


ILLUSTRATIONS 

Boston  Massacre " Frontispiece 

FACING 
PAGE 

Branding  Female  Slave 2 

John  Brown  on  Way  to  Scaffold 22 

Eeading  Emancipation  Proclamation  by  Union  Soldier  in  a  Slave 

Cabin 24 

Colored  Congressmen 46 

Battle   of  Bmiker  Hill 50 

Paul  Cuffe  Monument 98 

The  Libyan  Sibyl  and  Sojourner  Truth 112 

Bird's  Eye  View  of  Livingstone  College 170 

Wilberforce  University — Typical   Buildings 122 

Douglass,   Payne,    Dunbar,    Washington 114 

Crummell,    Tanner,    Blyden,    Garnet 126 

Douglass  ]\ionument  at  Rochester 152 

Negro  Indus- try,  Tuskeg-ee  View 206 

Price,  Wheatley,  Coppin 212 

Christ  and  Nieodemus 222  • 

George  F.  T.  Cook  Normal  School  No.  2,  Washington,  D.  C.  .      .  234 


FOREWORD 

It  is  not  my  purpose  to  write  a  history  of  the  United  States 
nor  of  any  period  of  that  history.  The  Negro  is  so  interwoven 
with  the  growth  and  development  of  the  American  Nation  that  a 
history  of  him  as  an  important  element,  during  little  more  than 
a  century  of  which  he  has  been  a  factor,  becomes  a  task  of  pe- 
culiar difficulty.  In  the  few  pages  that  follow,  mine  is  a  much 
more  simple  and  humble  task — to  indicate  some  of  the  more  im- 
portant points  of  the  contact  of  the  Nation  and  the  Negro;  to 
tell  how  the  former  in  its  evolution  has  been  affected  by  the  pres- 
ence and  the  status  of  the  latter;  and  to  trace  the  transfor- 
mation of  the  bondman  and  savage  stolen  from  Africa  to  his 
freedom  and  citizenship  in  the  United  States,  and  to  his  recog- 
nition as  such  in  the  fundamental  law,  and  by  an  increasing 
public  sentiment  of  the  country. 

The  rise  to  eminence  of  representative  men  and  women  in 
both  Church  and  State,  as  educators,  statesmen,  artists,  and  men 
of  affairs,  will  be  cited  for  the  emulation  of  our  youth  who  are 
so  liable  from  the  scant  mention  of  such  men  and  women  in  the 
histories  which  they  study  and  the  books  they  read,  to  conclude 
that  only  the  lowest  and  most  menial  avenues  of  service  are  open 
to  them. 

Well  nigh  ten  years  ago  Mrs.  Charles  Bartlett  Dykes,  formerly 
of  the  Leland-Stanford,  Jr.,  University,  while  an  instructor  in  a 
Summer  School  at  the  Hampton  N.  &  A.  Institute,  gave  this  re- 
sult of  studies  made  with  six  hundred  colored  pupils  in  certain 
near-by  primary  schools.  She  had  asked  two  questions  that  were 
fully  explained: 

xi 


xii  FOEEWORD 

(a)  Do  you  want  to  be  rich?     If  so,  why?     If  not,  why  not? 

The  answers  were  almost  without  exception,  "No."     The 
reason  given  was  "because  we  cannot  go  to  Heaven." 

(b)  Do  you  want  to  be  famous?     If  so,  why?     If  not,  why  not? 

The  answers  were  almost  uniformly,  "No,  because  it  is 
impossible." 

This  voiced  the  despair  of  the  average  colored  child  in  the 
common  schools  right  under  the  guns  of  Fortress  Monroe,  where 
the  first  schools  for  colored  children  in  the  Southland  were 
opened  nearly  forty  years  before. 

A  test  somewhat  similar,  in  several  of  the  public  schools  in 
Washington  produced  practically  the  same  result.  The  remedy 
suggested  by  Mrs.  Dykes  for  such  a  condition  was  the  preparation 
of  "a  first  book  in  American  history,  in  which  the  story  of  at 
least  twelve  of  the  really  eminent  men  and  women  of  African 
descent"  would  give  a  stimulus  to  tens  of  thousands  of  youth  in 
our  schools,  who  in  their  formative  period  learn  little  or  noth- 
ing of  their  kith  or  kin  that  is  meritorious  or  inspiring.  This 
necessity  formally  set  forth  by  Mrs.  Dykes,  confirmed  by  my 
own  conclusions  based  on  an  experience  in  the  schoolroom  cover- 
ing twenty  years,  leads  me  to  attempt  the  publication  of  a  book 
which  shall  give  to  teachers  and  secondary  pupils  especially 
the  salient  points  in  the  history  of  the  American  Negro,  the 
story  of  their  most  eminent  men  and  women  and  a  bibliograph}'^ 
that  will  guide  those  desirous  of  making  further  study  and  in- 
vestigation. 

The  author  has  not  been  handicapped  by  dearth  of  material 
in  the  selection  of  the  men  and  the  women  whose  careers  he 
has  aimed  to  trace,  his  main  purpose  having  been  to  consider 
representative  types  whose  careers  afford  side-lights  of  the 
growth  and  development  of  the  American  Negro  and  who  at  the 
same  time  are  worthy  of  emulation.  Others,  perhaps,  quite  as 
conspicuous,  might  be  preferred  by  some  as  equally  deserving 


FOREWORD  xiii 

of  notice,  yet  on  the  whole  we  think  it  will  be  the  verdict  of 
competent  and  impartial  judges  that  none  herein  named  could 
have  been  excluded  from  consideration.  Obviously  only  those 
still  living  could  be  the  subjects  of  notice  who  have  reached  the 
acme  of  their  career.  The  preeminence  of  Booker  T.  Washing- 
ton, because  of  the  establishment  of  Tuskegee  and  the  recog- 
nized place  of  industrial  training  in  the  public  mind,  is  a  fact, 
while  the  art  of  Tanner  is  conceded  in  salons  and  art  galleries 
of  America  and  Europe. 

To  Dr.  James  R.  L.  Diggs  of  Selma  University,  Chaplain 
Theophilus  G.  Steward  of  Wilberforce  University,  T.  Thomas 
Fortune,  L.  M.  Hershaw,  Wm.  C.  Bolivar,  Daniel  A.  Murray  of 
the  Library  of  Congress  and  A.  A.  Schomburg,  he  acknowledges 
indebtedness  for  many  helpful  suggestions  in  the  development, 
progress  and  completion  of  this  work. 

John  W.  Cromwell. 


THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN 

HISTORY 


DISCOVERY,    COLONIZATION,    SLAVERY 

The  discovery  and  colonization  of  America  was  primarily  for 

greed,  and  this  dominant  principle  was  illustrated  in  different 

stages  of  the  growth  and  development  of  the  country.     Spain, 

which  in  the  sixteenth  century  was  not  only  a  world-wide  power, 

but  one  of  the  greatest  of  modern  times,  bore  a  very  important 

part  in  the  conquest  and  settlement  of  the  New  World.     It  was 

mainly  her  capital,  her  merchantmen,  that  plowed  the  main, 

her  capital  and  the  patronage  of  her  sovereigns  that  led.     The 

Dutch  and  the  English  followed  in  the  rear.     Settlements  in 

North  America  and  the  West  Indies  were  made  by  her  sons 

early  in  the  sixteenth  century,  but  it  was  one  hundred  years 

after,  at  Jamestown,  Virginia,  in  1607,  that  the  English  made 

the   first   permanent   settlement   within   the   continental   limits 

of  the  United  States  of  America. 

In  the  early  voyages  it  was  not  at  all  remarkable  that  Negroes 

were  found  as  sailors,  though  slaves.     It  is  well  authenticated 

that  in  the  explorations  of  Narvaez  and  among  the  survivors  of 

the  Coronado  expedition  was  Estevan,  a  black,  who  was  guide 

to  Friar  Marcoz  in  1539  in  the  search  for  the  Seven  Cities  of 

Cibola.     The    celebrated    anthropologist    Quatrefages    in    "The 

Human  Species"  strongly  intimates  that  Africa  had  its  share 

1 


2  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

in  the  peopling  and  the  settlement  of  some  sections  of  South 
America. 

The  exception  but  proves  the  rule  that  the  Negro  came  to  the 
New  World  as  a  slave.  He  was  stolen  from  or  bought  on  the 
West  Coast  of  Africa  to  add  to  the  wealth  of  America  by  his 
toil  as  bondman  and  laborer. 

Slavery  was  first  introduced  in  America  on  the  island  of 
Hispaniola  (Haiti)  where  the  aborigines  of  America  and  the 
West  Indies  had  been  found  not  sufficiently  robust  for  the  work 
in  the  mines  and  the  plantations.  Large  numbers  of  Negi'oes 
were  imported  by  the  Portuguese,  who  owned  the  great  portion 
of  the  African  coast  then  known,  into  Europe  a  half  century 
before  the  discovery  of  America.^  To  Las  Casas  who  pleaded 
the  cause  of  the  poor  American  Indian  who  had  been  enslaved 
in  the  New  World,  large  responsibility  for  importing  the  Afri- 
can must  be  given  notwithstanding  the  opposition  of  Cardinal 
Ximines,  then  regent  of  Spain,  Las  Casas  lived  to  regret  the 
part  he  played  by  his  fateful  suggestion. 

To  supply  this  labor  the  Slave  Trade,  as  it  became  known, 
was  begun.  La  Bresa,  a  Flemish  favorite  of  Charles  V  having 
obtained  from  the  king  a  patent  containing  an  exclusive  right 
of  annually  importing  four  thousand  Negroes  into  America,  sold 
it  to  some  Genoese  merchants  who  first  brought  into  a  regular 
form  the  commerce  for  slaves  between  Africa  and  America.^ 
Sir  John  Hawkins  made  three  trips  to  America  from  the 
West  Coast  of  Africa  between  1563  and  1567,  taking  with  him 
several  hundred  of  the  natives  whom  he  sold  as  slaves.  Queen 
Elizabeth  became  a  partner  in  this  nefarious  traffic.  So  elated 
was  she  at  its  profits  that  she  knighted  him,  and  he  most  happily 
selected  for  his  crest  a  Negro  head  and  bust  with  arms  tightly 
pinioned.  It  was  a  lucrative  business  and  though  it  at  first 
shocked  the  sensibilities  of  Christian  nations  and  rulers,  they 

1  Bancroft,  Vol.  T. 

2  Spanish  Conquest  of  America,  Vol.  I. 


Biaiidiiio-  a  Female  Slave. 


DISCOVERY,  COLONIZATION,  SLAVERY  3 

soon  reconciled  themselves  not  only  to  the  traffic,  but  introduced 
the  servitude  as  part  of  the  economic  system  of  their  depend- 
encies in  America.  That  it  became  a  fixture  after  its  introduc- 
tion in  these  colonies  was  due  to  the  prerogative  of  the  Home 
Government  rather  than  to  the  importunities  of  the  colonists, 
especially  because  it  was  a  source  of  revenue  to  the  Crown. 

Within  twelve  years  after  its  settlement,  a  Dutch  man-of-war 
landed  in  September,  1619,  a  cargo  of  twenty  slaves  at  James-    "^^Ym,-c>' 
town  in  Virginia. 

Beginning  with  this  introduction  in  Virginia  slavery  gradually 
made  its  way  into  all  the  thirteen  colonies,  and  received  the 
sanction  of  their  several  legislatures.  Contrary  to  general  belief, 
' '  Negro  Slavery  in  the  colonies  never  existed ' '  nor  was  it  origin- 
ally established  by  law,  but  it  rested  wholly  on  custom.* 
' '  Slavery  where  it  existed,  being  the  creature  of  custom,  required 
positive  law  to  establish  or  control  it."  In  Virginia  the  acts 
first  passed  were  "for  the  mere  regulation  of  servants,  the  legal 
distinction  between  servants  for  a  term  of  years  (white  im- 
migrants under  indenture),  and  servants  for  life  (slaves)." 
The  civil  law  rule  as  to  descent  was  adopted  by  statute  December 
14,  1662.  Eight  years  later,  October  3,  1670,  servants  not  Chris- 
tians imported  by  shipping  were  declared  slaves  for  life. 
Slavery  was  thus  legalized  in  this  colony. 

In  Maryland,  slaves  were  first  mentioned  incidentally  in  a 
proposed  law  of  1638,  four  years  after  its  settlement.  The 
Swedes  prohibited  its  establishment  in  Delaware,  but  the  Dutch 
introduced  it  and  gave  it  its  first  legal  recognition  in  1721, 
though  it  had  existed  in  the  colony  as  early  as  1666. 

In  North  Carolina  white  slavery  was  provided  for  in  the 
Locke  Constitution  of  1673.*  In  South  Carolina  the  first  legis- 
lation respecting  it  was  February  7,  1690,  before  the  two  colonies 
were  separated.     The  charter  of  Georgia  prohibited  slavery  at 

sLalor's  Cyclopedia,  Vol.  III.     Holmes  Amer.  Annals,  Vol.  I. 
•*  Locke  Brittanica  Encyclopedia. 


4  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

the  time  of  the  establishment  of  the  colony  by  Oglethorpe  in 
1733,  but  owing  to  popular  clamor  this  prohibition  was  re- 
pealed in  1749  and  the  first  legislative  recognition  of  slavery 
was  in  1755.^ 

Although  slavery  existed  in  Pennsylvania  from  the  establish- 
ment of  the  colony,  and  was  due  to  the  Germans  rather  than 
the  Quakers,  a  protest  against  it  was  made  in  1688  by  the  Ger- 
mantown  Quakers.  This  was  the  first  formal  action  against 
slavery  since  its  introduction.  In  1700  the  legislature  forbade 
selling  beyond  the  borders  of  the  State  without  the  consent  of 
the  slave. 

The  Dutch  have  also  the  responsibility  of  bringing  slavery 
into  New  Jersey,  where  it  received  its  first  legal  recognition  in 
1664.  It  was  in  1626  while  New  York  was  the  Dutch  colony 
of  New  Netherlands  that  African  serfdom  was  introduced,  but  it 
received  legal  recognition  in  1665.*'  The  traffic  was  never  di- 
rectly specifically  established  in  Connecticut  by  statute,  and  the 
time  of  its  introduction  is  unknown.^  In  Rhode  Island,  May 
19,  1652,  the  first  act  for  the  abolition  of  slavery  was  passed, 
but  the  law  was  not  enforced. 

In  Massachusetts  slavery  was  incidentally  recognized  in  1633. 
In  1636,  a  Salem  ship  began  the  importation  of  slaves  from  the 
"West  Indies,  but  in  1641  it  was  forbidden  in  the  fundamental 
law.  The  statutes  of  New  Hampshire  show  only  two  legal  recog- 
nitions of  slavery,  by  acts  of  1714  and  1718,  to  regulate  the 
conduct  of  servants  and  slaves  and  masters. 

There  was  some  difference  between  slavery  in  the  North  and 
in  the  South.  This  may  be  attributable  to  economic  rather 
than  to  any  moral  causes.  The  African  was  fitted  for  service 
only  as  an  agricultural  laborer,  and  the  character,  size  and  loca- 
tion of  the  farms  in  New  England  and  the  Middle  States  in- 

BLalor's  Cyclopedia. 
SLalor's  Cyclopedia. 
7  Slavery  in  New  York,  an  historical  sketch,  A.  Judd  Northrup. 


DISCOVERY,  COLONIZATION,  SLAVERY  5 

hibited  the  rapid  growth  and  extension  of  chattel  slavery  in 
this  section,  whereas  the  raising  of  tobacco  in  Virginia,  rice  in 
South  Carolina,  also  cotton,  favored  the  employment  of  a  large 
number  of  slaves  in  the  southern  section  of  our  country.  In 
both  North  and  South  the  status  of  the  slave  was  the  same.  In 
the  eyes  of  the  law  he  was  a  thing,  a  piece  of  personal  property, 
and  the  laws  recognizing  and  regulating  it  were  framed  with 
rigidity  and  executed  with  severity.  By  1775  more  than  300,000 
Negroes  were  in  the  colonies  along  the  coast  from  Maine  to 
Georgia,  distributed  as  follows :  In  New  England,  25,000 ;  New 
York,  New  Jersey,  Pennsylvania  and  Delaware,  50,000;  in  the 
remaining  colonies  of  Virginia,  Maryland,  North  and  South 
Carolina  and  Georgia,  425,000.  Relatively  there  were  at  this 
time  42  whites  to  1  black  in  New  England,  13  whites  to  1  black 
in  the  middle  colonies,  while  in  the  five  southern  colonies  last 
mentioned  the  slave  population  was  more  than  that  of  the 
whites.® 

While  the  objection  to  the  idea  of  property  in  man  was  the 
prevailing  rule,  it  was  by  no  means  universal.  Protests  against 
it  were  by  individuals  rather  than  by  communities  and  classes. 
Exception  must  be  made  as  to  the  Quakers,  whose  protest  in 
Germantown  has  already  been  instanced.  They  followed  this  up 
by  an  appeal  in  1696  against  any  of  their  religious  belief 
bringing  in  any  more  Negroes,  and  by  their  action  at  intervals 
in  the  eighteenth  century.  The  majority  of  the  men  who  cried 
aloud  and  spared  not  were  the  followers  of  George  Fox.  The 
circulation  of  the  celebrated  tract,  "The  Selling  of  Joseph"  by 
the  Colonial  Chief  Justice  Samuel  Sewall,  was  also  a  great  factor 
in  the  growth  of  sentiment  against  slavery. 

8  Estimated.  See  The  Status  of  the  Slave,  1775-1789,  J.  R.  Brackettj 
The  Const.  History  of  the  American  People,  Vol.  I,  F.  R.  Thorpe. 


II 

THE   SLAVE   CODE 

The  Slave  Code  embodies  statutes  which  show  in  an  unmistak- 
able manner  the  attitude  of  the  colonies  in  different  times  and 
sections  toward  the  enslaved  African.  So  ^eat  a  shock  to  the 
Christian  religion  was  the  idea  of  holding  property  in  man 
when  first  suggested,  that  one  of  the  first  excuses  was  that  the 
African  was  a  heathen  whom  slavery  would  convert;  then  when 
the  injustice  of  holding  a  fellow  Christian  in  bonds  was  apparent, 
it  was  affirmed  by  statute  that  "conversion  to  or  acceptance  of 
Christianity  does  not  presume  or  effect  manumission  either  in 
person  or  posterity"  so  legislated  Maryland  in  1692,  and  Vir- 
ginia in  1705  endorsed  the  doctrine.  An  act  was  passed  in  1706 
to  encourage  the  baptizing  of  Negro,  Indian  or  mulatto  slaves 
and  although  a  Virginia  statute  of  1682  had  freed  Negroes 
"born  of  Christian  parents  in  England,  the  Spanish  colonies, 
the  English  colonies  and  other  Christian  lands,"  it  was  virtually 
repealed  by  an  act  of  1705. 

In  the  statutes  of  the  colony  of  Virginia  we  note,  "The  Ap- 
pearance of  Negro,  Indian  and  mulatto  slaves  after  nightfall 
in  the  streets  without  a  lighted  candle  was  forbidden  and  none 
were  permitted  to  absent  themselves  from  a  master's  plantation 
without  written  certificate."  This  law  was  published  every  six 
months  at  the  county  court  and  the  parish  churches.  It  was 
specially  designed  to  prevent  the  possibility  of  servile  insur- 
rections. Slaves  accompanying  their  masters  to  free  territory 
did  not  become  free,  ruled  Lord  Hardwicke  and  Lord  Talbot 
in   1729 ;   but   forty-three   years   later  Lord   Mansfield   in   the 

6 


THE  SLAVE  CODE  7 

Somerset  case  declared  that  as  soon  as  a  slave  set  foot  on  the 
soil  of  the  British  Island  he  became  free. 

The  emancipation  of  the  slave  in  many  colonies  was  impossible 
only  in  meritorious  cases  except  by  permission  from  a  governor 
for  which  a  license  had  to  be  issued.  Such  an  instance  was 
where  ''Will"  was  emancipated  by  the  General  Assembly  of 
Virginia  because  he  had  been  signally  serviceable  in  discover- 
ing a  conspiracy  of  divers  Negroes  in  the  county  of  Surry  for 
levying  war  on  the  colony  of  Virginia.  He  was  the  slave  of 
Elizabeth,  the  widow  of  Benjamin  Harrison.  The  similarity  of 
the  name  to  that  of  one  of  the  signers  of  the  Declaration  of 
Independence,  the  father  of  one  of  the  Presidents  and  the  great- 
grandfather of  another,  is  at  least  suggestive. 

Not  only  was  emancipation  thus  carefully  guarded,  but  to 
steal  a  slave  was  a  capital  offense  punishable  by  death.  Should 
a  slave,  who  resisted  his  master  or  one  acting  under  his  authority 
while  administering  punislmient,  meet  with  death,  the  master 
or  his  agent  was  not  guilty  of  a  felony.  The  carrying  of  arms 
either  for  defense  or  offense  without  special  written  certificate 
was  punishable  with  a  penalty  of  from  20  to  39  lashes. 

A  statute  was  passed  in  1764  ordering  collars  to  be  put  on 
slaves  to  prevent  their  escape.  Two  unique  advertisements 
further  indicate  the  low  estimate  placed  on  the  bondman.  One 
from  the  London  Gazette  advertises  for  Col.  Kirk's  runaway 
black  boy  upon  whose  silver  collar  the  inscription  was,  "My 
Lady  Bromfield's  black  in  Lincoln  Inn  Fields"  and  in  the 
London  Advertiser  of  1756  a  goldsmith  in  Westminster  an- 
nounces that  he  makes  silver  padlocks  for  blacks'  or  dogs'  collars. 

It  could  not  be  expected  that  the  slave  would  be  permitted 
to  read  and  write,  yet  in  1744  Dr.  Bearcroft  ^  of  South  Carolina 
refers  to  the  purchase  of  two  young  Negroes  when  thoroughly 
qualified  to  become  schoolmasters  among  their  fellows.  One 
such  school  was  actually  opened  in  Charleston,  S.  C,  in  which 

1  Special  Report  U.  S.   Com.  of  Education   1870,  p.  363. 


8  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

more  than  "sixty  young  Negroes  were  put  under  instruction, 
two-thirds  of  whom  were  sent  out  annually  well-instructed  in 
religion  and  capable  of  reading  their  Bible,  who  may  carry 
home  and  diffuse  this  same  knowledge  which  they  shall  have 
been  taught  among  their  poor  relations  and  fellow  slaves.  And 
in  time  schools  will  be  opened  in  other  places  and  in  other 
colonies  to  teach  them  to  believe  in  the  Son  of  God  who  shall 
make  them  free."  But  ninety  years  after,  in  the  same  State 
it  was  enacted,  "If  any  person  shall  hereafter  teach  any  slave 
to  read  or  write  such  person  if  a  free  white  person,  shall  be 
fined  not  exceeding  one  hundred  dollars  for  such  offence,  and 
imprisonment  not  less  than  six  months;  or  if  a  free  person  of 
color,  shall  be  whipped  not  exceeding  fifty  lashes  and  fined  not 
exceeding  fifty  dollars;  and  if  a  slave  to  be  whipped  at  the 
discretion  of  the  court,  not  exceeding  fifty  lashes,  the  informer 
to  be  entitled  to  one-half  of  the  fine,  and  to  be  a  competent 
witness.  And  if  any  free  person  of  color  or  slave  shall  keep 
any  school  or  other  place  of  instruction  for  teaching  any  slave 
or  free  person  of  color,  he  shall  be  liable  to  the  same  penalties 
prescribed  by  this  act  on  free  persons  of  color  and  slaves  for 
teaching  slaves  to  write."  - 

Slaves  were  prohibited  under  the  penalty  of  death  from  the 
preparation  or  administering  of  any  medicine  whatever  save  with 
the  full  knowledge  and  consent  of  masters. 

There  was  a  relaxation  of  these  strict  regulations  in  some  of 
the  Northern  colonies.  As  early  as  1643  and  1646  several 
Negroes  appear  on  the  records  of  New  York,  then  under  the 
control  of  the  Dutch,  as  land  patentees.^  When  enfranchised, 
as  was  possible  even  in  those  early  days,  he  might  and  did  obtain 
a  freehold.*  Many  scarcely  appeared  to  know  they  were  in 
bondage  as  they  danced  merrily  as  the  best  in  kermis  at  Christ- 

2  Payne's'  "Seventy  Years." 

3  Dunlop's   History   of   New   Netherlands,  Vol.   I,   59. 
4Brodhead's  748. 


THE  SLAVE  CODE  9 

mas  and  Pinkster.  This,  however,  was  exceptional.  Without 
going  into  particulars  the  general  condition  was,  as  it  has  been 
summarized  in  Stroud's  Slave  Law:  ''as  the  incidents  of 
slavery — 

First. — The  master  may  determine  the  kind  and  degree  and  time 

of  labor  to  which  the  slave  shall  be  subjected. 
Second. — The  master  may  supply  the  slave  with  such  food  and 

clothing  only,  both  as  to  quantity  and  to  quality  as  he  may 

think  proper  or  find  convenient. 
Third. — He  may  exercise  his  discretion  as  to  the  kind  of  punish- 
ment to  be  administered. 
Fourth. — All  power  over  the  slave  may  be  exercised  by  himself 

or  another. 
Fifth. — Slaves  have  no  legal  rights  of  property  in  things  real 

or  personal ;  whatever  they  acquire  belongs  in  point  of  law 

to  the  master. 
Sixth. — Being  a  personal  chattel  the  slave  is  at  all  times  liable 

to  be  sold  absolutely  or  mortgaged  or  leased. 
Seventh. — He  may  be  sold  by  process  of  law  for  the  satisfaction 

of  the  debts  of  a  living  or  a  deceased  master. 
Eighth. — He  cannot  be  a  party  in  any  judicial  tribunal  in  any 

species  of  action  against  the  master." 


Ill 

NATIONAL   INDEPENDENCE   AND  EMANCIPATION 

The  events  that  led  to  the  Revolution  and  the  formation  of  the 
Union  quickened  the  public  conscience  and  crystallized  the  feel- 
ing against  slavery  to  such  a  degree  that  public  men  were  out- 
spoken against  it,  societies  were  organized,  and  the  work  of  the 
abolition  of  slavery  was  begun. 

The  principle  in  the  Declaration  of  Independence  that  "All 
men  are  created  equal  and  endowed  by  the  Creator  with  certain 
inalienable  rights,  among  which  are  life,  liberty  and  the  pursuit 
of  happiness,"  certainly  exerted  a  most  powerful  influence.  The 
colony  of  Vermont,  claimed  in  vain  at  intervals  both  by  New 
York  and  New  Hampshire,  and  which  was  practically  independ- 
ent of  the  thirteen,  adopted  a  constitution  in  1777  abolishing 
slavery.  In  1780  Massachusetts  framed  a  constitution  contain- 
ing a  provision  construed  by  the  courts  as  destroying  human 
bondage,  while  Peiuisylvania  in  the  same  year  provided  for 
gradual  emancipation,  though  the  last  slave  in  this  common- 
wealth did  not  die  until  nearly  the  middle  of  the  nineteenth 
century.  New  Hampshire  followed  the  example  of  Massachusetts 
in  1783.  Rhode  Island  and  Connecticut  passed  gradual  aboli- 
tion laws  in  1784.  Thus  five  of  the  original  thirteen  colonies 
prior  to  the  Constitutional  Convention  of  1787  placed  them- 
selves before  the  world  as  free  States,  to  which  must  be  added 
New  York  and  New  Jersey,  the  former  in  1799,  the  latter  in 
the  following  year,  copying  their  example. 

From  the  general  sentiment  of  the  time  as  voiced  by  such  men 

as  "Washington,  Jefferson  and  Franklin,  nothing  seemed  more 

10 


NATIONAL  INDEPENDENCE  AND  EMANCIPATION     11 

certain  than  that  slavery  would  in  a  very  few  years  be  doomed 
to  extinction.  In  the  Continental  Congress  March  1,  1784,  Jef- 
ferson proposed  a  draft  ordinance  for  the  government  of  the 
Territory  of  Tennessee,  Alabama  and  Mississippi  ceded  already 
or  to  be  ceded  by  individual  States,  to  the  United  States,  ''that 
after  the  year  1800  there  should  be  neither  slavery  nor  involun- 
tary servitude  in  any  of  the  said  States  otherwise  than  in  punish- 
ment of  crime. ' ' 

Owing  to  opposition  of  the  planting  interests,  led  by  South 
Carolina  and  Georgia  this  proviso  was  lost.  But  three  years 
later  when  Jefferson  was  in  Paris  on  a  foreign  mission,  the  ordi- 
nance of  1787,  by  the  provisions  of  which  slavery  was  to  be 
prohibited  in  the  territory  north  of  the  Ohio,  which  now  includes 
the  States  of  Michigan,  Wisconsin,  Ohio,  Indiana  and  lUinois, 
was  adopted  by  the  unanimous  vote  of  the  Continental  Congress 
of  the  thirteen  colonies.^ 

1  Critical  Period — Fiske. 


IV 

SLAVE  INSURRECTIONS 

Slave  Insurrections  were  a  constant  menace  to  the  safety  and 
security  of  slavery  and  the  laws  provided  against  the  personal 
liberty  of  the  slave ;  his  freedom  of  locomotion ;  his  right  to  as- 
semble in  large  numbers  except  under  the  supervision  of  the 
master  class ;  his  right  to  purchase  fire  arms  or  weapons  of  deadly 
warfare — all  were  enacted  and  enforced  to  prevent  the  possi- 
bility and  the  effectiveness  of  outbreaks  for  freedom. 

Notwithstanding  these  repressive  measures  upon  the  slave,  the 
tendency  of  which  was  to  make  their  bondage  more  complete 
and  secure,  there  were  about  twenty-five  recorded  instances  of 
Negro  Insurrections  previous  to  the  Revolution.  Among  these 
there  was  one  in  1687  in  the  Northern  Neck  of  Virginia.  As 
early  as  1710  one  was  suppressed  in  Virginia.  In  1740  one  was 
discovered  in  South  Carolina  and  what  was  known  as  the  New 
York  Slave  Plot  was  discovered  in  1741. 

In  1800  the  insurrection  of  General  Gabriel  was  only  timely 
prevented.  It  was  on  discovery  found  that  fully  1,000  slaves 
were  involved  and  those  concerned  were  scattered  through  a  large 
section  of  territory. 

In  1822  the  Denmark  Vesey  plot  in  South  Carolina  was  only 
prevented  from  disastrous  effects  by  the  confession  of  a  slave. 
So  carefully  had  it  been  planned,  so  trustworthy,  so  faithful  to 
the  purpose  of  its  promoters,  that  it  was  with  extreme  difficulty 
that  the  authorities  could  secure  enough  evidence  to  identify  and 
to  bring  to  trial  those  accused.  Denmark  Vesey  whose  name 
is  given  to  this  outbreak,  was  a  most  remarkable  character.     He 

12 


SLAVE  INSURRECTIONS  13 

was  a  great  organizer,  a  man  of  rare  intelligence,  with  wonder- 
ful knowledge  of  men  and  a  born  leader.  He  was  also  one  of 
the  last  men  to  be  suspected  by  the  whites  as  bent  on  such  a 
scheme.  He  exercised  a  dread  over  the  blacks  that  facilitated 
the  development  of  his  plans  and  the  confidence  reposed  in  him 
by  the  whites  never  caused  him  to  be  distrusted. 

Peter  Poyas,  his  chief  lieutenant,  was  scarcely  second  to  Den- 
mark in  ability  to  select,  drill  and  command.  One  hundred  and 
thirty-one  arrests  were  made,  as  a  result  of  which  67  were  con- 
victed, of  whom  35  were  executed  and  37  banished  beyond  the 
limits  of  the  United  States. 

Notwithstanding,  the  effect  of  the  outbreak  was  wide  reaching. 

In  "Right  on  the  Scaffold  or  the  Martyrs  of  1822,"  No.  7, 
Negro  American  Academy  papers,  Mr.  Archibald  H.  Grimke 
has  given  a  most  thrilling  description  of  the  principal  partici- 
pants, the  events  leading  up  and  flowing  from  this  tragic  plot 
of  slave  life  in  South  Carolina. 

The  prompt  punishment  of  the  participants  in  the  Denmark 
Vesey  Outbreak  did  not  stamp  out  the  spirit  of  resentment  on 
the  part  of  the  most  restless  spirits  among  the  slaves;  for  nine 
years  afterwards,  came  the  Nat  Turner  Insurrection  in  South- 
hampton County,  Virginia. 

Nat  Turner  was  born  October  2,  1800,  the  slave  of  Benjamin 
Turner.  The  father  who  escaped  from  slavery  finally  migrated 
to  Liberia.  In  his  early  years  Nat  had  a  presentiment  that 
largely  influenced  his  after  life.  His  mind  was  restless,  active, 
inquisitive,  observant.  He  learned  to  read  and  write  without 
apparent  difficulty.  He  was  deeply  religious,  he  could  manu- 
facture paper,  gunpowder,  pottery  and  other  articles  in  com- 
mon use,  and  his  skill  in  planning  was  universally  admitted. 
As  late  as  the  beginning  of  the  Civil  War,  there  were  tradi- 
tions of  his  keen  devices  and  ready  wit.  He  was  below  the  ordi- 
nary stature,  compact  in  physique,  with  strongly  marked  phys- 
ical features.     Contrary  to  general  impression  he  was  not  a 


14  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

preacher.  His  personality  was  not  that  of  a  criminal  but  of  an 
austere,  reserved  and  contemplative. 

In  1825  he  said  he  discovered  drops  of  blood  on  the  corn  as 
though  it  were  dew  from  heaven,  that  he  found  on  leaves  in  the 
woods  hieroglyphic  characters  and  numbers  with  the  forms  of 
men  in  different  attitudes,  portrayed  in  blood  and  represent- 
ing the  figures  he  had  previously  seen  in  the  heavens. 

July  4,  1831,  was  the  time  on  which  he  had  planned  to 
begin  his  work,  but  he  hesitated  until  the  reappearance  of  signs 
in  the  heavens  determined  him  to  begin  Sunday,  August  21,  at 
which  time  he  met  six  men.  Hark,  Henry,  Sam,  Nelson,  Will  and 
Jack  and  long  after  midnight,  after  a  long  feast  in  the  woods, 
they  began  the  work.  Armed  with  a  hatchet  Nat  entered  his 
master's  chamber  and  aimed  the  first  blow  of  death  but  the 
weapon  glanced  harmless  from  the  head  of  the  would-be  victim, 
who  then  received  the  first  fatal  blow  from  Will,  a  member  of 
the  party,  who  without  Nat's  suggestion  got  into  the  plot.  Five 
whites  perished  here.  Four  guns,  several  old  muskets,  a  few 
rounds  of  ammunition,  were  seized.  The  party  were  drilled  and 
maneuvered  at  the  barn  after  which  they  marched  from  planta- 
tion to  plantation  until  the  attacking  force  numbered  sixty,  all 
armed  with  guns,  axes,  swords  and  clubs,  and  mounted.  Late 
Monday  afternoon  they  had  reached  a  point  about  three  miles  dis- 
tant from  Jerusalem,  the  County  Seat,  now  known  as  Courtland. 
Against  Nat's  judgment  they  halted  and  awaited  reenforce- 
ments.  This  delay  proved  the  turning  point  in  his  attack.  Nat 
started  to  the  mansion  house  in  search  of  his  stragglers  and  on 
his  return  to  the  road,  he  found  that  a  party  of  white  men  from 
the  countryside,  who  had  pursued  the  bloody  path  of  the  in- 
surrectionists, had  dispersed  the  guard  of  eight  men  left  at  the 
roadside.  The  white  men  numbered  eighteen  under  the  com- 
mand of  a  Capt.  Alex  P.  Peete. 

Although  these  men  were  directed  to  reserve  their  fire  until 
within  thirty  paces,  one  of  their  number  fired  on  Nat's  crowd 


SLAVE  INSURRECTIONS  15 

at  about  one  hundred  yards  and  half  of  them  beat  a  precipitate 
retreat,  when  Nat  ordered  them  to  fire  and  rush  on  them.  The 
remaining  white  men  stood  their  ground  until  Nat  was  within 
fifty  yards  when  they  too  retreated.  Nat  pursued,  wounded  and 
overtook  some  of  them  and  would  have  slaughtered  the  entire 
party  but  for  the  timely  arrival  of  a  company  of  whites  in 
another  direction  from  Jerusalem.  With  a  party  of  twenty  Nat 
bafiled  capture  and  endeavored  to  cross  the  Nottoway  river, 
attack  the  County  Seat  from  the  rear,  and  procure  additional 
arms  and  ammunition.  This  was  a  vain  procedure.  A  mid- 
night attack  at  his  rendezvous  at  which  point  he  had  recruited 
his  strength,  left  him  with  less  than  a  score  of  followers.  The 
sudden  firing  of  a  gun  by  Hark  was  the  signal  for  an  ambush 
which  caused  the  retreat  and  flight  of  his  force.  Dismayed  but 
not  disappointed,  Nat  endeavored  once  more  to  rally  his  men, 
but  the  discovery  of  white  men  reconnoitering  near  his  rendezvous 
convinced  him  that  he  had  been  betrayed  and  further  aggressive 
steps  were  useless. 

For  nearly  six  weeks  the  entire  county  sought  his  capture 
which  was  finally  accomplished  only  by  accident.  His  trial,  con- 
viction and  punishment  followed.  Fifty-five  white  men  were 
killed  but  not  a  single  Negro  was  slain  during  the  attack. 
Seventeen  of  the  insurrectionists  were  convicted  and  executed, 
seven  convicted  and  transported,  ten  acquitted,  seven  discharged 
and  four  sent  on  for  further  hearing.  Four  of  those  convicted 
and  transported  were  boys.  Only  four  free  men  were  brought  to 
trial,  of  whom  one  was  discharged  and  three  acquitted.  Not 
only  Virginia,  but  the  whole  country  was  stirred.  Rumors  of 
similar  outbreaks  flew  thick  and  fast.  Distant  cities  were  put 
under  military  defense,  arrests  of  suspects  were  made  months 
after.  Governor  Hayne  issued  a  proclamation  in  South  Caro- 
lina ;  Macon,  Georgia,  was  aroused  at  midnight  by  rumors  of  an 
impending  onslaught.  Slaves  were  arrested  by  the  wholesale, 
were  tied  to  trees  while  militia  captains  took  delight  in  hacking 


16  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

at  them  with  swords.  In  brief,  the  reprisals  were  bloody,  ter- 
rific, in  a  few  cases  most  pathetic ;  white  sympathizers  suffered  in 
the  revenge. 

The  next  session  o£  the  Virginia  Legislature  occasioned  a  pro- 
longed debate  on  the  evils  of  slavery,  which  Henry  Wilson  ' '  Rise 
and  Fall  of  the  Slave  Power,"  pronounced  to  be  the  ablest,  most 
eloquent  and  brilliant  in  the  entire  history  of  state  legislation. 
In  this  discussion  all  the  arguments  for  and  against  abolition 
were  given  as  strongly  and  as  eloquently  as  anti-slavery  orator  or 
agitator  ever  enunciated  or  formulated,  but  more  rigorous  laws 
against  the  free  Negro  and  the  slave  were  enacted  and  enforced, 
"not  only  in  Virginia  but  North  Carolina,  South  Carolina  and 
other  States." 


/ 


SOME  EARLY  STRIVINGS 

It  was  near  the  close  of  the  eighteenth  century  before  the 
first  signs  of  social  life  appeared  in  the  American  Negro.^  The 
Free  African  Society  of  Philadelphia  was  formed  April  12,  1787. 
Among  the  organizers  was  Richard  Allen,  who  became  the  or- 
ganizer and  first  bishop  of  the  African  Methodist  Episcopal 
church  in  1816,  and  president  of  the  first  National  Convention 
of  colored  men  held  in  Philadelphia  in  1830.  Absalom  Jones 
(founder  and  first  priest  of  St.  Thomas  Episcopal  Church), 
was  another.  The  first  African  Lodge  of  Free  Masons,  with 
Prince  Hall  as  its  worshipful  master,  was  opened  in  Boston,  its 
warrant  bearing  date  September  29,  1784.  In  Williamsburg, 
Va.,  the  first  African  Baptist  Church  was  organized  in  1776,  and 
as  a  result  of  the  labors  of  George  Liele,  a  Negro  evangelist, 
African  churches  were  formed  both  in  Augusta,  and  Savannah, 
Georgia,  in  the  same  decade  .- 

These  were  exceptional  incidents  in  the  life  of  a  people,  num- 
bering more  than  a  half  million  who  had  hitherto  no  social  bond, 
nothing  in  common  but  that  they  were  the  victims  of  oppression 
and  injustice. 

1  Johnston's  High  School  History  of  the  U.  S.  Thorpe — ^History  of  the 
American  People,  p.  88.  The  Negro  Church — Atlanta  Univ.  Publications. 
The  Negro  Mason  in  Equity — S.  W.  Clark. 

2  All  race  organizations  were  then  styled  African. 


17 


VI 

ABOLITION  OF  THE  SLAVE  TRADE 

After  the  Revolutionary  War,  when  the  colonists  tried  to  form 
a  Constitution  they  found  themselves  hopelessly  divided  over  the 
question  of  one  or  two  houses  in  the  legislature  and  the  basis 
of  representation.  The  presence  of  the  Negro  in  large  numbers 
in  the  South  where  slavery  was  steadily  on  the  increase  oc- 
casioned much  of  the  trouble.  Two  of  the  three  great  com- 
promises which  made  the  Constitution  a  possibility  bore  directly 
on  this  unequal  distribution  of  free  and  slave,  white  and  black 
population.  By  the  terms  of  the  second  compromise  five  slaves 
in  the  basis  of  popular  representation  were  to  be  counted  as 
equal  to  three  white  men.  The  third  compromise  permitted  the 
foreign  slave  trade  to  continue  for  twenty  years. 

The  moral  effect  of  the  abolition  of  the  African  slave  trade 
by  the  United  States,  which  was  determined  by  an  act  of  March 
2,  1807,  to  go  into  effect  the  first  day  of  the  following  year, 
is  borne  out  by  the  action  of  several  European  countries.  Great 
Britain,  on  March  25,  same  year,  followed  the  example  of  the 
United  States.  Sweden  was  the  next,  in  1813 ;  the  Dutch  and 
France  did  the  like  in  1814,  the  latter  as  the  result  of  a  treaty 
with  Great  Britain,  though  it  was  not  in  full  operation  until 
June  1,  1819.  Spain  lingered  until  the  next  year,  and  Portu- 
gal, which  had  legislated  for  absolute  abolition  in  January, 
1815,  had  the  time  for  the  cessation  of  the  trade  extended  to 
January  21,  1823,  and  finally  to  February,  1830.  To  Denmark, 
however,  must  be  given  the  honor  of  having  pioneered  in  the 
movement  for  the  abolition  of  the  slave  trade,  a  royal  order  hav- 
ing been  issued  May  16,  1792,  to  be  enforced  throughout  her 

dominion  at  the  end  of  ten  years. 

18 


VII 

FROM   1816   TO  1870 

The  year  1816  witnessed  the  beginning  of  two  divergent  move- 
ments with  respect  to  the  black  population  of  the  United  States. 
The  first  was  the  organization  by  the  whites  of  the  American 
Colonization  Society,  the  adoption  of  its  constitution,  December 
31,  and  the  election  of  its  officers,  January  1,  1817.  Henry 
Clay  presided  at  the  first  meeting,  which  was  held  at  the  Capitol, 
December  21,  1816.  At  the  adjourned  meeting  held  in  the  hall 
of  the  House  of  Representatives  the  constitution  was  adopted 
with  fifty  men  as  charter  members.  Bushrod  Washington,  a 
nephew  of  George  Washington  and  one  of  the  justices  of  the 
Supreme  Court,  was  elected  first  president.  This  movement, 
paradoxical  as  it  may  be,  was  held  to  be  both  in  the  interest  of 
slavery  and  freedom — of  slavery,  because  by  the  contemplated 
removal  of  the  free  people  of  color  from  the  country  it  would 
destroy  the  unrest  and  dissatisfaction  of  the  slave  with  his  servile 
condition;  in  the  interest  of  freedom,  because  the  free  Negro 
would  be  transported  to  a  land  in  which  he  would  have  free 
scope  for  all  his  activities,  energies,  and  aspirations,  unfettered 
by  the  prejudice  of  race  and  unequal  competition. 

The  other  epochal  event  was  the  creation  of  the  African  Metho- 
dist Episcopal  Church  denomination  of  colored  Methodist  societies 
in  Philadelphia,  New  York,  Baltimore  and  the  adjacent  country. 
The  black  worshipers  in  the  first-named  city  had  been  ordered 
up  from  their  knees  while  in  the  act  of  praying,  and  in  other 
places  they  were  otherwise  restricted.  To  save  their  self-re- 
spect they  established  churches  composed  entirely  of  their  own 

19 


20  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

race,  and  in  this  year  was  the  fii*st  step  towards  connectional 

union. 

The  movement  to  remove  systematically  the  free  men  of  the 
country  was  the  first  step  to  atone  for  the  purchase  of  the 
twenty  Negroes  landed  at  Jamestown  two  hundred  years  be- 
fore. The  twenty  had  become  in  1810,  1,369,864,  of  whom 
183,897,  were  free.  The  Nation  gave  moral  support  to  the  col- 
onization movement.  Colored  men  desirous  of  going  to  Africa 
were  not  subjected  to  certain  disabilities.  They  could  receive 
educational  facilities  denied  other  colored  Americans,  and  they 
enjoyed  more  of  the  freedom  of  locomotion.  Yet  during  the 
entire  period  of  the  colonization  movement  from  1820,  the  time 
of  the  first  settlement  in  Africa,  the  numbers  who  have  gone  to 
Liberia,  including  5,722  recaptured  Africans,  up  to  the  close  of 
the  nineteenth  century  were  not  more  than  22,119,  and  their 
descendants  in  that  country  did  not  at  the  beginning  of  the 
twentieth  century^  amount  to  more  than  25,000.^  On  the  other 
hand,  the  A.  M.  E.  Church  has  grown  rapidly  from  the  begin- 
ning. In  1912  it  had  a  membership  of  620,234.^  The  A.  M.  E. 
Zion  Church,  established  largely  for  the  same  reasons  in  1820, 
had  the  same  year  a  membership  of  547,216,^  distributed 
throughout  the  continental  part  of  the  United  States. 

1  Liberia  Bulletin  No.  16. 

2  Dr.    H.    K.    Carroll,    Federal    Council    of    the    Churches    of    Christ    in 

America. 

3  Ibid. 


\ 


VIII 

SLAVERY — EXTENSION   AND  ABOLITION 


N  1820  a  battle  royal  was  fought  in  Congress  in  which  the  right 
of  determining  whether  new  territory  should  be  free  or  slave 
was  the  issue.  After  a  prolonged  debate  the  Missouri  Com- 
promise, as  it  is  known,  became  a  law.  Missouri  was  admitted 
as  a  slave,  Maine  as  a  free  State,  and  thereafter  neither  slavery 
nor  involuntary  servitude  should  be  permitted  in  the  United 
States  north  of  36°  30'.  It  was  believed  so  far  as  Congress  was 
concerned  that  the  Slavery  Question  had  been  settled.  Three 
events,  however,  the  Denmark  Vesey  Insurrection  of  1822,  the 
Nat  Turner  Insurrection  of  1831  and  the  organization  of  the 
American  Anti-Slavery  Society  in  1833  at  Philadelphia,  kept  the 
Slavery  Question  before  the  country.  The  Amistad  Captives, 
who  in  1839  overcame  the  slave  traders  who  were  bringing  them 
from  Africa  to  this  country  to  sell  them  into  slavery,^  also  held 
the  popular  attention.  The  persistent  warfare  of  John  Quiney 
Adams  in  the  House  of  Representatives  in  behalf  of  the  right  of 
petition;  the  rapid  increase  of  slave  population  in  the  South, 
due  to  the  smuggling  of  slaves  and  the  struggle  of  the  Slave 
Power  to  keep  pace  with  the  rapid  growth  of  the  Middle  West 
and  the  annexation  of  Texas,  brought  the  elements  together  again 
in  conflict  in  1850.  After  another  prolonged  debate,  another 
compromise  was  adopted,  by  which  among  other  things. 

First. — California  was  to  be  admitted  as  a  free  State. 

Second. — A  more  rigid  fugitive  slave  law  was  passed. 

1  Slavery  and  Anti-Slavery,  W.  Goodell. 

21 


22  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

Third. — The  organization  of  the  Territory  of  New  Mexico  with- 
out any  restriction  as  to  slavery. 

Fourth. — The  prohibition  of  domestic  slave  trade  in  the  Dis- 
trict of  Columbia. 

The  sentiment  of  the  North  was  decidedly  against  the  enforce- 
ment of  the  Fugitive  Slave  Law,  and  the  South,  »Q-the  ather 
hai^  did  not  keep  faith  with  the  Compromise  of  1820,  which 
by  her  solid  delegation  in  Congress,  aided  by  a  strong  contingent 
from  the  North  she  defied  by  the  enactment  in  1854,  of  the  Kan- 
sas-Nebraska Act.  Here  was  an  irrepressible  conflict,  which  was 
accentuated  by  the  Dred  Scott  Decision  of  the  U.  S.  Supreme 
Court  in  1857,  delivered  two  days  after  the  inauguration  of 
President  Buchanan.  In  Kansas  the  conflict  was  bitter  and 
persistent,  and  in  the  end  Freedom  won.  Both  sides  of  the 
struggle  between  Freedom  and  Slavery  were  engaged  in  a  polit- 
ical duel  in  Illinois,  where  Lincoln  represented  the  idea  of  the 
National  power  of  the  country  to  check  the  westward  extension 
of  slavery,  and  Stephen  Douglas  championed  the  right  to  make 
a  territory  either  free  or  slave  at  will.  In  1859  another  insur- 
rection, this  time  led  by  John  Brown,  a  white  man,  with  22 
followers,  at  Harper 's  Ferry,  West  Virginia,  thrilled  the  country. 
It  had  most  wide-reaching  and  permanent  results,  dooming 
slavery  to  extinction,  although  its  leader  and  his  associates  paid 
the  penalty  of  their  lives  on  the  scaffold.    \ 


A- 


Jolin    Brown    on    His    \\a\-    to    tlu'    Scaffold.      After    Hovonden. 


IX 

CIVIL   WAR   AND   RECONSTRUCTION 

With  the  Democratic  party  divided,  1860  witnessed  two  rival 
presidential  tickets;  as  a  result  of  which  Abraham  Lincoln  and 
the  Republican  party  obtained  a  decisive  victory  in  the  electoral 
college. 

The  triumph  of  the  Republicans  gave  the  South  the  pretext 
that  it  was  seeking.  The  civil  war  followed  and  resulted  in 
the  triumph  of  the  Union  and  the  abolition  of  slavery.  On 
April  16,  1862,  slavery  was  abolished  in  the  District  of  Colum- 
bia by  the  payment  of  $993,406.35 ;  and  notice  having  been  given, 
September  22,  1862  of  his  intention,  if  those  supporting  the  Rich- 
mond government  did  not  return  to  the  Union  within  one  hun- 
dred days.  President  Lincoln  issued  the  Emancipation  Proclama- 
tion, January  1,  1863,  declaring  all  slaves  in  the  seceded  States 
and  Territories  except  in  sections  in  the  control  of  the  Union 
armies  henceforth  and  forever  free. 

The  assassination  of  President  Lincoln,  April  15,  1865,  follow- 
ing so  closely  upon  the  Fall  of  Richmond  and  the  Surrender  of 
Lee  at  Appomattox,  precipitated  a  long  and  bitter  conflict  be- 
tween Congress  and  Andrew  Johnson,  Lincoln's  successor  in 
office.  April  9,  1866,  a  Civil  Rights  Law  was  enacted,  confer- 
ring certain  fundamental  civil  rights  upon  the  emancipated  race 
— the  right  to  sue  and  be  sued,  to  hold  property,  and  to  testify 
in  the  courts.  The  States  lately  in  rebellion  passed  vagrant  acts 
which  virtually  reenacted  many  of  the  objectionable  features  of 
the  Slave  Code,  and  Congress  decided  to  protect  by  legislation 
and  constitutional  enactments  those  freed  by  the  sword.     The 

23 


24  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

Thirteenth  Amendment,  constitutionally  legalizing  emancipa- 
tion, became  a  part  of  the  Constitution,  December  18,  1865 ;  the 
Fourteenth  Amendment,  defining  citizenship  and  declaring  all 
Negroes  to  be  citizens  of  the  United  States  and  of  the  States  in 
which  they  reside,  became  incorporated  in  the  Constitution  July 
18,  1868.  The  right  of  franchise  was  given  the  Negro,  first  in 
the  States  that  were  engaged  in  rebellion  by  the  Reconstruction 
Act  organizing  the  seceded  States,  which  passed  March  2,  1867, 
and  through  the  Fifteenth  Amendment,  preventing  any  denial 
of  the  right  of  suifrage  on  account  of  race,  color  or  previous 
condition  of  servitude.  This  amendment  was  ratified  March  30, 
1870,  and  applied  to  the  entire  countr5\  With  its  em- 
bodiment in  the  fundamental  law  and  the  restoration  of 
all  the  States  lately  in  rebellion  to  their  constitutional  rights 
and  representation  within  the  Union,  the  work  of  reconstruction 
was  supposed  to  be  complete. 


rj2 


J. 


o 


'00 


EDUCATIONAL  PROGRESS 

One  of  the  laws  most  rigidly  enforced  south  of  Mason  and 
Dixon's  Line  was  that  prohibiting  the  teaching  of  colored  people 
to  read  and  write.     There  was  no  gi-eater,  no  more  ardent  desire 
on  their  part  than  to  obtain  an  education.     Every  artifice  to 
evade  this  law  and  to  obtain  by  stealth  an  education  was  em- 
ployed.    During  the  Civil  War  philanthropic  associations  fol- 
lowed victorious  armies,  and  schools  were  opened  in  the  centers 
of  Negro  population  all  over  the  South     Old  and  young  flocked 
to  these,  all  eager  to  get  an  education.     While  not  under  the  oper- 
ation of  positive  law,  they  enjoyed,  nevertheless,  a  kind  of  na- 
tional    governmental     supervision— that     of    the     Freedmen's 
Bureau.^     The  teachers  as  a  rule  were  Northern  young  men  and 
women,  especially  the  latter,  who  were  fired  with  enthusiasm 
for  the  work  and  exhibited  the  self-denying  consecration  of  the 
foreign   missionary.     The  progress  of  the  pupils  in  these  schools 
was  phenomenal.     The  establishment  of  normal  schools  and  acad- 
emies at  which  the  brightest  of  the  colored  youth  could  be  pre- 
pared for  the  work  of  teachers  rapidly  followed.     Almost  about 
the  same  time  Howard  University  at  Washington,  Atlanta  Uni- 
versity in  Georgia,  Fisk  University  at  Nashville,  Straight  Uni- 
versity in  New  Orleans,  Shaw  University  at  Raleigh,  Colver  Insti- 
tute in  Richmond,  Va.,  Wayland  Seminary  in  Washington— 
these  last  two  now  merged  in  the  Union  University  at  Richmond, 
Va.,  and  Hampton  Institute,  were  established— all  the  outgrowth 
of  missionary  effort  or  philanthropy.    In  faculty  and  other  equip- 

iSee  Appendix. 

26 


26  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMEEICAN  HISTORY 

ment  these  schools  matched  the  secondary  institutions  at  the 
South  for  the  whites.  Thus  was  laid  the  foundation  for  the 
schoolteachers,  the  doctors,  lawyers  and  ministers  of  the  gospel 
needed  in  the  popular  instruction,  professional  work,  the  religious 
and  secular  leadership  of  the  Negro.  From  the  private  philan- 
thropy that  maintained  these  schools  were  evolved  the  Peabody, 
Slater  and  Hand  Funds,  and  in ylater  years  the  General  and 
the  Southern  Educational  Boar^  and  the  Jeanes  Educational 
Fund. 

The  common  schools  of  the  South  came  into  being  with  the 
reconstruction  of  the  new  State  governments,  and  may  be  said  to 
have  had  a  fair  beginning  with  the  year  1871.  Four  of  the 
State  Superintendents  of  Instruction  in  the  period  of  Reconstruc- 
tion were  colored  men,  Rev.  now  Bishop  J.  W.  Hood  in  North 
Carolina,  Thomas  W.  Cardozo  in  Mississippi,  William  6,  Brown 
in  Louisiana,  and  Rev.  Jonathan  G.  Gibbs  of  Florida.  It  may 
be  claimed  without  fear  of  successful  contradiction  that  the  es- 
tablishment of  the  common  school  in  the  South  is  attributable  to 
the  political  forces  which  the  Negro 's  vote  placed  in  power. 


XI 

THE   EARLY   CONVENTION    MOVEMENT 

With  the  period  immediately  following  the  Second  War  with 
Great  Britain,  begins  a  series  of  events  which  indicate  a  pur- 
pose of  the  nation  to  make  the  condition  of  the  free  man  of 
color  an  inferior  status  socially  and  politically.  That  this  was 
resisted  at  every  step,  revealed  more  clearly  the  national  aim  and 

\  purpose 
In  1820  the  passage  of  the  Missouri  Compromise  permitted 
the  westward  extension  of  slavery  and  as  far  north  as  36°  30'. 

Local  legislation,  harmonizing  with  this  national  action  against 
extending  the  domain  of  freedom  and  making  the  country  unde- 
sirable for  the  colored  freeman,  followed.  Two  years  after  the 
enactment  of  the  compromise,  "the  martyrs  of  1822"  went 
bravely  and  heroically  to  their  fate  in  South  Carolina.  In 
1827,  the  Empire  State  completed  its  work  of  emancipation  of 
the  slave,  begun  28  years  before,  and  saw  the  birth  of  Free- 
dom's Journal,  the  first  Negro  newspaper  within  the  limits  of 
the  United  States,  edited  by  John  B.  Russwurpa_^  and  Samuel  E. 
Cornish.  In  1831,  Virginia  was  convulsed  and  the  entire  South- 
land shocked  by  the  Insurrection  of  Nat  Turner.  In  the  State  of 
Ohio  along  the  Kentucky  border,  the  feeling  against  the  free 
Negro  had  become  acute.  Mobs  occurred,  blood  was  shed  and 
the  people  were  compelled  to  look  to  some  spot  where  they  could 
abide  in  peace. 

In  these  stirring  times  the  Convention  Movement  came  into 

1  First  college-bred  Negro,  Bowdoin  College,  one  year  after  Longfellow 
ajid  Hawthorne. 

27 


28  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

existence.  The  forces  whicli  it  evoked  were  conserved  and  corre- 
lated until  the  dynamics  of  Civil  Revolution  had  wrought  desola- 
tion and  destruction  far  and  wide,  sweeping  away  forever  what 
had  been  a  basis  of  the  social  and  political  strength  of  the  Na- 
tion. 

A  glance  at  the  list  of  the  officers  of  this  pioneer  deliberative 
convention  of  colored  people  of  which  we  have  as  yet  any  data, 
shows  that  the  men  who  led  in  this  meeting  were  among  the  fore- 
most colored  citizens  whose  names  have  come  down  to  us  from 
that  distant  past.-  James  Forten  was  President,  and  Russell 
Parrott,  the  assistant  to  Absalom  Jones  at  St.  Thomas,  P.  E. 
Church,  was  the  Secretary.  Prominent  also  in  this  anti-coloniza- 
tion convention,  were  Absalom  Jones,  Richard  Allen,  Robert 
Douglass,  and  John  Gloucester — the  first  settled  pastor  of  a 
colored  Presbyterian  Church. 

This  Convention  of  1830  was  the  first  conscious  step  toward  con- 
certed action  and  was  in  no  sense  local  in  its  conception,  its  con- 
stituency or  its  purpose. 

The  prime  mover  was  Hezekiah  Griee,  a  native  of  Baltimore. 
In  his  early  life,  he  had  met  Benjamin  Lundy,  and  in  1828-9, 
William  Lloyd  Garrison,  editors  and  publishers  of  The  Genius 
of  Universal  Emancipation,  published  at  that  time  in  Balti- 
more. In  the  spring  of  1830  he  wrote  a  circular  letter  to  prom- 
inent colored  men  in  the  free  States  requesting  their  views  on 
the  feasibility  and  imperative  necessity  of  holding  a  convention 
of  the  free  colored  men  of  the  country,  at  some  point  north  of 
Mason  and  Dixon's  Line,  for  the  exchange  of  views  on  the  ques- 
tion of  emigration  or  the  adoption  of  a  policy  that  would  make 
living  in  the  United  States  more  endurable.  For  several  months 
there  was  no  response  whatever  to  this  circular.  In  August, 
however,  he  received  an  urgent  request  for  him  to  come  at  once 

2  Tlie  first  public  demonstration  of  hostility  to  the  colonization  scheme 
was  made  January  24,  1817,  by  free  colored  inhabitants  of  Richmond,  Va. 
Garrison's  "Thoughts  on  African  Colonization." 


THE  EARLY  CONVENTION  MOVEMENT  29 

to  Philadelphia.  On  his  arrival  there  he  found  a  meeting  in 
session,  discussing  conflicting  reports  relative  to  the  openings 
for  colored  people  as  emigrants  to  Canada.  Bishop  Richard 
Allen,  at  whose  instance  he  was  in  Philadelphia,  subsequently 
showed  him  a  printed  circular  signed  by  Peter  Williams,  the 
rector  of  St.  Philip's  Church,  New  York,  Peter  Vogelsang  and 
Thomas  L.  Jennings  of  the  same  place,  approving  the  plan  of  a 
convention.  This  approval  decided  the  Philadelphians  to  take 
definite  action,  and  they  immediately  "issued  a  call  for  a  Con- 
vention of  the  colored  men  of  the  United  States  to  be  held  in  the 
city  of  Philadelphia,  on  the  15th  of  September,  1830." 

When  the  time  came  the  Convention  assembled  in  Bethel 
Church,  the  historic  building  in  which  was  laid  the  foundation 
of  the  A.  M.  E.  denomination.  The  Convention  was  organized 
by  the  election  of  Bishop  Allen  as  President,  Dr.  Belfast  Burton 
of  Philadelphia  and  Austin  Steward  of  Rochester,  N,  Y.,  as  Vice 
Presidents,  Junius  C.  Morell,  Secretary,  and  Robert  Cowley, 
Maryland,  Assistant  Secretary. 

Seven  States  were  represented  by  duly  accredited  delegates  as 
follows :  ^ 

Pennsylvania — Richard  Allen,  Belfast  Burton,  Cyrus  Black, 
Junius  C.  Morell,  Benjamin  Paschall,  James  Cornish,  William 
Whipper,  Peter  Gardiner,  John  Allen,  James  Newman,  Charles 
H.  Leveck,  Frederick  A.  Hinton;  New  York — Austin  Steward, 
Joseph  Adams,  George  L.  Brown;  Connecticut — Scipio  Augus- 
tus; Rhode  Island — George  C.  Willis,  Alfred  Niger;  Mary- 
land— James  Deaver,  Hezekiah  Grice,  Aaron  Willson,  Robert 
Cowley;  Delaware — Abraham  D.  Shadd;  Virginia — Arthur  M. 
Waring,  William  Duncan,  James  West,  Jr. 

Besides  there  were  these  honorary  members : 

Pennsylvania — Robert  Bro\\Ti,  William  Rogers,  John  Bowers, 
Richard  HoweU,  Daniel  Peterson,  Charles  Shorts;  New  York — 
Leven  Williams;  Maryland — James  P.  Walker,   Rev.   Samuel 

s  Anglo-African  Magazine,  1859. 


30  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

Todd,  John  Arnold ;  Ohio — John  Robinson ;  New  Jersey — Samp- 
son Peters ;  Delaware — Rev.  Anthony  Campbell  and  Dan  Caro- 
lus  HaU. 

They  may  well  be  called  the  first  "forty  immortals"  in  our 
Valhalla. 

The  question  of  emigration  to  Canada  West,  after  an  ex- 
haustive discussion  which  continued  during  the  two  days  of  the 
convention's  sessions,  was  recommended  as  a  measure  of  relief 
against  the  persecution  from  which  the  colored  American  suffered 
in  many  places  in  the  North.  Strong  resolutions  against  the 
American  Colonization  Society  were  adopted.  The  formation  of 
a  parent  society  with  auxiliaries  in  the  different  localities  repre- 
sented in  the  convention,  for  the  purpose  of  raising  money  to 
defray  the  object  of  purchasing  a  colony  in  the  province  of  Upper 
Canada,  and  ascertaining  more  definite  information,  having  been 
effected,  the  convention  adjourned  to  reassemble  on  the  first 
Monday  in  June,  1831,  during  which  time  the  order  of  the  con- 
vention respecting  the  organization  of  the  auxiliary  societies  had 
been  carried  into  operation. 

At  the  assembling  of  the  convention  in  1831,  which  was  fully 
reported  in  The  Liberator,  the  officers  elected  were,  John 
Bowers,  Philadelphia,  President,  Abraham  D.  Shadd  and  Wil- 
liam Duncan,  Vice  Presidents,  William  Whipper,  Secretary, 
Thomas  L.  Jennings,  Assistant  Secretary. 

The  roll  of  delegates  reveals  the  presence  of  many  of  the 
pioneers.  Hezekiah  Grice  did  not  attend — in  fact  he  was  never 
subsequently  a  delegate,  for  two  years  later  he  emigrated  to 
Haiti,  where  he  became  a  foremost  contractor.  Richard  Allen 
had  died,  after  having  completed  a  most  remarkable  career. 
Rev.  James  W.  C.  Pennington,  who  for  forty  years  afterward 
bore  a  conspicuous  place  as  a  clergyman  of  sound  scholarship, 
was  a  new  figure  and  thenceforth  an  active  participant  in  the 
movement. 

This  convention  aroused  no  little  interest  among  the  foremost 


THE  EARLY  CONVENTION  MOVEMENT  31 

friends  of  the  Negro  and  was  visited  and  addressed  by  such  men 
as  Rev.  S.  S.  Jocelyn  of  New  Haven,  Benjamin  Lundy  and  Wil- 
liam Lloyd  Garrison.  In  the  "Life  of  Arthur  Tappan,"  by  his 
brother  Lewis  Tappan,  we  find  the  following : 

"A  convention  of  people  of  color  was  held  in  Philadelphia  in  1831 
of  delegates  from  several  States  to  consult  upon  the  common  interest. 
It  was  numerously  attended  and  the  proceedings  were  conducted  with 
much  ability.  A  resolution  was  adopted  that  it  was  expedient  to  es- 
tablish a  collegiate  school  on  the  manual  labor  system.  ...  A  com- 
mittee appomted  for  the  purpose  made  an  appeal  to  the  benevolent. 
.  .  .  New  Haven  was  suggested  as  a  suitable  place  for  its  loca- 
tion .  .  .  Arthur  Tappan  purchased  several  acres  of  land  in  the 
southerly  part  of  the  city  and  made  arrangements  for  the  erection  of  a 
suitable  building  and  furnished  it  with  needful  supplies  in  a  way  to 
do  honor  to  the  city  and  country  .  .  .  The  people  of  New  Haven  be- 
came violently  agitated  in  opposition  to  the  plan.  The  city  was  filled 
with  confusion.  They  seemed  to  fear  that  the  city  would  be  overrun 
with  Negroes  from  all  parts  of  the  world  ...  A  public  meeting 
called  by  the  Mayor  September  8,  1831,  in  spite  of  a  manly  protest 
by  Roger  S.  Baldwin,  subsequently  Governor  of  the  State  and  IT.  S. 
Senator  from  Connecticut,  adopted  the  following: 

"Resolved,  by  the  Mayor,  Aldermen,  Common  Council  and  free- 
men of  the  city  of  New  Haven,  in  city  meeting  assembled,  that  we  will 
resist  the  establishment  of  the  proposed  college  in  this  place  by  every 
lawful  means." 

The  attempt  at  the  founding  of  a  college  in  Connecticut  was 
abandoned.  The  Prudence  Crandall  incident  disgraced  the  name 
of  Connecticut  at  the  same  period. 

What  was  a  kind  of  National  Executive  Committee,  and  known 
as  the  Convention  Board,  issued  the  caUs  for  the  conventions 
from  time  to  time. 

When  the  next  convention  was  held  in  1832,  there  were  eight 
States  represented  with  an  attendance  of  thirty  delegates,  as  fol- 
lows:    Maryland  had  3;  Delaware,  5;  New  Jersey,  3;  Pennsyl- 


32  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

vania,  9 ;  New  York,  5 ;  Connecticut,  2 ;  Rhode  Island,  1 ;  Massa- 
chusetts, 2. 

Beginning  June  4th,  it  continued  in  session  until  the  15th. 
The  question  exciting  the  greatest  interest  was  one  which  pro- 
posed the  purchase  of  other  lands  for  settlement  in  Canada ;  for 
800  acres  of  land  had  already  been  secured,  two  thousand  indi- 
viduals had  left  the  soil  of  their  birth,  crossed  the  line  and  laid 
the  foundation  for  a  structure  which  promised  an  asylum  for  the 
colored  population  of  the  United  States.  They  had  already 
erected  two  hundred  log  houses  and  500  acres  of  land  had  been 
brought  under  cultivation.  But  hostility  to  the  settlement  of  the 
Negro  in  that  section  had  been  manifested  by  Canadians,  many 
of  whom  would  sell  no  land  to  the  Negro.  This  may  explain  the 
hesitation  of  the  convention  and  the  appointment  of  an  agent 
whose  duty  it  was  to  make  further  investigation  and  report  to  a 
subsequent  convention. 

Opposition  to  the  colonization  movement  was  emphasized  by  a 
strong  protest  against  any  appropriation  by  Congress  in  behalf 
of  the  American  Colonization  Society.  Abolition  of  slavery  in 
the  District  of  Columbia  was  also  urged  at  the  same  convention. 
This  was  one  year  before  the  organization  of  the  American  Anti- 
Slaverj^  Society. 

There  were  fifty-eight  delegates  present  when  the  convention 
assembled  June  3,  1833.  The  States  represented  were  Pennsyl- 
vania, Maryland,  New  Jersey,  Delaware,  Massachusetts,  Con- 
necticut and  New  York.  Abraham  D.  Shadd,  then  of  Washing- 
ton, D.  C,  was  elected  President. 

The  usual  resolutions  and  addresses  to  the  people  were  framed 
and  adopted.  In  addition  to  these,  the  law  of  Connecticut,  but 
recently  passed,  prohibiting  the  establishment  of  literary  insti- 
tutions in  that  State  for  the  instruction  of  persons  of  color  of 
other  States  was  specifically  referred  to,  as  well  as  a  resolution 
giving  the  approval  of  the  mission  of  WiUiam  Lloyd  Garrison  to 


THE  EARLY  CONVENTION  MOVEMENT  33 

Europe  to  obtain  funds  for  the  establishment  of  a  Manual  Train- 
ing School. 

The  emigration  question  was  again  thoroughly  discussed.  A 
committee  was  appointed  to  look  into  the  matter  of  the  encourage- 
ment of  settlement  in  Upper  Canada  and  all  plans  for  coloniza- 
tion anywhere  were  rejected. 

A  general  convention  fund  was  provided  for,  also  a  schedule 
showing  the  population,  churches,  day  schools,  Sunday  Schools, 
pupils,  temperance  societies,  benevolent  societies,  mechanics  and 
store-keepers.  A  most  significant  action  was  one  recommending 
the  establishment  in  different  parts  of  the  country  of  Free  Labor 
Stores  at  which  no  produce  from  the  result  of  slave  labor  would 
be  exposed  for  sale. 

The  next  year,  1834,  the  convention  met  in  New  York,  June 
8th,  with  Henry  Sipkins  as  President.  There  were  seven  States 
represented  and  about  40  delegates  present.  The  usual  resolu- 
tions were  adopted,  one  commending  Prudence  Crandall  *  to  the 
patronage  and  affection  of  the  people  at  large;  another  urging 
the  people  to  assemble  on  the  fourth  of  each  July  for  the  purpose 
of  prayer  and  the  delivery  of  addresses  pertaining  to  the  con- 
dition and  welfare  of  the  colored  people.  The  foundation  of  so- 
cieties on  the  principle  of  moral  reform  and  total  abstinence  from 
intoxicating  liquors  was  advocated.  Moreover,  every  person  of 
color  was  urged  to  discountenance  all  boarding  houses  where  gam- 
bling was  permitted. 

At  the  same  convention  the  Phoenix  Societies  came  up  for 
special  consideration  and  were  heartily  commended.  These 
planned  an  organization  of  the  colored  people  in  their  municipal 
subdivisions  with  the  special  object  of  the  promotion  of  their 
improvement  in  morals,  literature  and  the  mechanic  arts.  Lewis 
Tappan  refers  to  them  in  the  biography  previously  referred  to. 
The  ''Mental  Feast"  which  was  a  social  feature,  survived  thirty 
years  later  in  some  of  the  interior  towns  of  Pennsylvania  and  the 

*  (See  Appendix. 


34  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

West.  General  Superintendent  Christopher  Rush  of  the  A.  M. 
E.  Zion,  was  the  president  of  these  societies.  Rev,  Theodore 
S.  Wright,  the  predecessor  of  Rev.  Henry  Highland  Garnet  at 
the  Shiloh  Presbyterian  Church,  New  York,  and  who  enjoys  the 
unique  reputation  of  claiming  Princeton  Seminary  as  his  Alma 
Mater,  was  a  vice  president.  Among  its  directors  were  Boston 
Crummell,  the  father  of  Alexander  Crummell,  Rev.  William  Paul 
Quinn,  subsequently  a  bishop  of  the  A.  M.  E.  Church,  and  Rev. 
Peter  Williams.  These  names  suggest  that  the  Phoenix  Society 
movement  was  a  somewhat  widespread  institution.  Unfor- 
tunately, there  was  lost  during  the  excitement  of  the  New 
York  Draft  Riots  of  1863,  nearly  all  the  documentary  data  for  an 
interesting  sidelight  on  the  Convention  Movement,  through  the 
study  of  these  societies. 

With  1835,  the  Convention  returned  to  Philadelphia ;  June  1-5 
was  -the  time  of  its  sessions.  There  were  forty-four  delegates  en- 
rolled, with  Reuben  Ruby  of  Maine,  as  president,  John  F.  Cook  of 
the  District  of  Columbia,  was  Secretary. 

Speaking  of  its  proceedings  "The  Liberator^'  says: 

"Its  pages  offered  abundant  testimony  of  the  ability  of  this  body 
to  set  before  the  Nation  a  detail  of  the  wrongs  and  grievances  to 
which  they  are  by  custom  and  law  subjected,  and  they  also  exhibit  a 
praiseworthy  spirit  of  manly  and  noble  resolution  to  contend  by  moral 
force  alone  until  their  rights  so  long  withheld  shall  be  restored." 

Among  other  specially  notable  things,  Robert  Purvis  and  Fred- 
erick A.  Hinton  were  appointed  a  committee  to  correspond  with 
dissatisfied  emigrants  to  Liberia  and  to  take  such  action  as  would 
best  promote  the  sentiment  of  the  colored  people  respecting  the 
work  of  the  Colonization  Society ;  the  students  of  Lane  Seminary 
at  Cincinnati  were  thanked  for  their  zeal  in  the  cause  of  aboli- 
tion. Temperance  reform  was  advocated  in  a  stirring  address 
to  the  people ;  and  the  free  people  of  color  were  recommended  to 
petition  Congress  and  their  respective  state  legislatures  to  be  ad- 


THE  EARLY  CONVENTION  MOVEMENT  35 

mitted  to  the  rights  and  privileges  of  American  citizenship,  and  to 
be  protected  in  the  enjoyment  of  the  same. 

William  Whipper  advocated  that  the  word  * '  colored ' '  should  be 
abandoned  and  the  title  **  African"  should  be  removed  from  the 
name  of  the  churches,  lodges,  societies  and  other  institutions. 

In  1836,  in  the  columns  of  The  Liberator  appear  calls  for 
two  conventions;  the  regular  annual  convention  was  called  to 
meet  in  Philadelphia,  June  6,  by  Henry  Sipkins  of  the  Conven- 
tion Board,  and  the  urgent  language  of  the  call  implies  doubt 
in  the  interest  of  the  people  or  the  probability  of  their  prompt 
response  to  the  call.  William  Whipper  issued  the  call,  through 
the  same  medium,  for  the  Convention  of  the  American  Moral  Re- 
form to  meet  August  2,  1836,  also  in  Philadelphia.  Careful 
perusal  of  the  files  of  The  Liberator  fails  to  disclose  a  com- 
ment on  the  proceedings  of  either  convention.  But  the  per- 
sonnel of  the  officers  of  the  American  Moral  Reform  shows  the 
influential  men  of  the  Convention  Movement  at  their  helm. 
James  Forten,  Sr.,  the  Revolutionary  patriot,  was  the  President, 
Reuben  Ruby,  Rev.  Samuel  E.  Cornish,  Rev.  Walter  Proctor  and 
Jacob  C.  White,  Sr.,  of  Philadelphia,  were  Vice  Presidents, 
Joseph  Cassey  was  Treasurer,  Robert  Purvis,  Foreign  Cor- 
responding Secretary  and  James  Forten,  Jr.,  Recording  Sec- 
retary. 

The  address  was  drawn  up  by  William  Watkins  of  Baltimore, 
who  two  decades  later  was  an  able  colleague  of  Frederick  Doug- 
lass in  the  conduct  of  The  North  Star. 

In  1837,  the  Convention  of  the  American  Moral  Reform  was 
again  held  in  Philadelphia,  August  19th,  in  which  William 
Whipper,  John  P.  Burr,  Rev.  John  F.  Cook,  who  delivered  an 
address  on  Temperance,  and  James  Forten,  Jr.,  were  leading 
spirits. 

Sufficient  has  been  stated  to  show  that  the  convention  move- 
ment was  deeply  rooted  in  the  thought  of  the  disfranchised 
American.     The  fact  that  there  was  a  lull  does  not  at  all  dis- 


36  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

prove  this  contention.  The  conventions  were  ^eat  educators, 
alike  of  the  Ne^o  and  the  American  whites.  They  taught  the 
former  parliamentary  usages  and  how  to  conduct  deliberative 
bodies.  They  brought  to  light  facts  pertaining  to  the  Negro's 
status  which  tended  to  establish  that  he  was  thrifty  and  steadily 
improving  as  a  moral  and  economic  force;  while  the  American 
whites  had  in  them  an  object  lesson  from  which  they  learned 
much.  In  his  ''Autobiography  of  a  Fugitive  Negro,"  Samuel 
Ringgold  Ward  *  says :  "A  State  or  a  National  Convention  of 
black  men  is  held.  The  talent  displayed,  the  order  maintained, 
the  demeanor  of  the  delegates,  all  impress  themselves  upon  the 
community.  All  agree  that  to  keep  a  people  rooted  to  the  soil 
who  are  rapidly  improving,  who  have  already  attained  consider- 
able influence  and  are  marshaled  by  gifted  leaders  (men  who 
show  themselves  qualified  for  legislative  and  judicial  positions), 
and  to  doom  them  to  a  state  of  perpetual  vassalage  is  altogether 
out  of  the  question. ' ' 

The  work  of  unifying  the  race  along  right  lines  now  pro- 
ceeded with  the  holding  of  State  Conventions.  There  was  a 
state  Temperance  Convention  of  the  colored  men  of  Connecticut, 
held  at  Middletown,  1836,  followed  by  a  call  for  a  New  England 
Convention  at  Boston  in  October.  Reference  to  its  proceedings 
shows  a  prior  convention  held  at  Providence,  R.  I.,  in  May.  At 
the  Boston  Convention  a  ringing  appeal  was  made  to  the  people, 
for  total  abstinence  from  all  intoxicants,  and  almost  immediately 
thereafter,  local  meetings  were  held  for  the  purpose  of  putting  in 
practical  operation  the  principles  enunciated.  Not  only  in  New 
England,  but  in  the  Middle  and  Western  States,  local  conven- 
tions were  held  during  this  and  the  next  decade. 

The  following  extracts  from  a  letter  dated  Dec.  21,  1901  from 
the  veteran  educator,  Peter  H.  Clark,  of  Cincinnati  and  St.  Louis, 
Missouri,  shed  a  flood  of  light  upon  this  early  movement : 

*  Pronounced  by  Daniel  Webster  "the  ablest  thinker  on  his  legs  before 
the  American  public." 


THE  EARLY  CONVENTION  MOVEMENT  37 

Mt  Dear  Sib  : — 

The  people  of  Ohio  held  conventions  annually  for  more  than  thirty 
years.     Usually  they  printed  their  proceedings  in  pamphlets. 

A  peculiarity  of  the  Ohio  conventions  was  that  they  were  meant  to 
improve  the  condition  of  the  colored  people  of  that  State.  The  con- 
ventions of  those  residing  in  the  more  eastern  States  were  simply  anti- 
slaveiy  conventions,  and  their  memorials  and  protests  were  aimed  at 
slavery.  The  first  conventions  of  the  men  of  Ohio  were  self -helpful. 
By  their  own  sacrifices  and  with  the  help  of  friends,  they  purchased  lots 
and  erected  school  houses  in  a  number  of  towns,  or  they  organized 
schools  and  located  them  in  churches. 

Active  in  this  work  were  the  Yancy's,  Charles  and  Walter,  Gideon 
and  Charles  Langston  (brothei-s  of  John  M.),  George  Carey,  Dennis 
Hill,  and  chief  among  them,  David  Jenkins.  Walter  Yancy  was  the 
agent  of  these  men,  traveling  and  organizing  societies  and  schools,  col- 
lecting funds,  etc. 

As  a  result  of  this  self-helping  movement,  a  number  of  farming 
communities  were  established,  some  of  which  accumulated  large  areas 
of  land,  and  in  Cincinnati,  The  Iron  Chest  Company  accumulated  funds 
and  in  1840  erected  a  block  of  buildings  which  still  stands. 

Later,  the  action  of  the  Convention  was  directed  against  the  Black 
Laws  of  Ohio.  These  were  repealed  in  1849,  and  colored  children  were 
permitted  to  share  in  the  benefits  of  the  school  funds,  though  in  sepa- 
rate schools.  The  same  legislature  elected  Salmon  P.  Chase  to  the 
United  States  Senate.  The  movement  thus  detailed  was  the  result  of  a 
bargain  between  the  Democrats  of  Ohio  and  the  Free  Soilers. 

Afterwards  the  force  of  these  conventions  was  directed  against 
discriminations  against  colored  people  which  still  existed  on  the  statute 
books.  Sometimes  this  force  took  the  shape  of  petitions,  memorials, 
protests,  and  after  the  organization  of  the  Ohio  Equal  Rights  League, 
it  took  the  shape  of  legal  proceedings,  etc. 

One  of  the  most  memorable  of  these  conventions  was  held  in  1852, 
when  John  M.  Langston  delivered  the  best  speech  of  his  life,  defending 
the  thesis,  "there  is  a  mutual  repellency  between  the  white  and  black 
races  of  the  world." 

The  materials  for  the  speech  were  collected  by   Charles  Langston, 


38  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

but  John  made  the  speech.  Time  has  vindicated  the  position  taken  by 
Mr.  Langston  in  that  memorable  address.  It  was  the  beginning  of  the 
Emigration  Movement  in  which  Dr.  Martin  R.  Delaney  afterwards  be- 
came prominent. 

Effective  national  conventions  have  not  been  numerous  in  the  past 
fifty  years. 

One  of  the  most  notable  met  at  Rochester  in  1853.  Frederick 
Douglass  presided  and  I  had  the  honor  of  being  the  secretary. 

It  was  reported  that  Mrs.  Stowe  desired  to  give  a  portion  of  her 
earnings  fi'om  "Uncle  Tom"  for  the  fomiding  of  a  school  for  the  bene- 
fit of  the  Afro-American,  and  this  convention  was  called  to  formulate 
an  advisory  plan. 

The  plan  when  formulated,  was  practically  what  Mr.  Washington 
realized  many  years  afterwards  at  Tuskegee.  .  .  . 

The  Rochester  movement  came  to  naught,  but  its  influence  upon 
the  colored  people  of  the  country  was  wide  spread,  chiefly  because  of 
the  character  of  the  men  who  composed  it. 

Its  proceedings  were  published  in  the  "North  Star,"  and  so  far  as  I 
know,  nowhere  else.  The  files  of  that  paper  were  destroyed  with  Mr. 
Douglass'  Rochester  house,  and,  unless  in  the  Congressional  Library, 
no  copy  now  exists. 

The  convention  at  Syracuse,  1864,  was  another  note-worthy  assem- 
blage. It  was  the  formulation  of  a  plan  of  organization  known  as  the 
National  Equal  Rights  League.  The  rivalry  between  Mr.  Douglass 
and  Mr.  Langston  prevented  the  wide  usefulness  of  which  the  organiza- 
tion was  capable. 

Ohio,  Pennsylvania  and  Illinois  organized  auxiliary  State  leagues, 
and  in  each  State  much  good  was  done.  Mr.  Langston,  president  elect 
of  the  National  Organization,  never  called  it  together.  .  .  . 

It  will  take  time  and  thought  for  the  compilation  of  such  a  list. 
The  men  who  officiated  in  the  conventions  of  which  I  have  written, 
wei'e  mostly  small  men,  great  only  in  their  zeal  for  the  welfare  of 
their  people. 

Within  these  ten  years  from  1837  to  1847,  a  new  figure  ap- 
pears on  the  scene,  a  man,  though  not  born  free  like  Paul, 
yet  like  the  chief  captain,  obtained  it  at  a  great  price.     The 


THE  EARLY  CONVENTION  MOVEMENT     39 

career  of  Frederick  Douglass  was  but  preliminary  prior  to  his 
return  from  England,  and  his  settlement  at  Rochester,  N.  Y., 
as  editor  of  The  North  Star.  By  a  most  remarkable  coin- 
cidence, the  very  first  article  in  the  first  number  of  The 
North  Star  published  January,  1848,  is  an  extended  notice 
of  the  National  Colored  Convention  held  at  the  Liberty  Street 
Church,  Troy,  New  York,  October  9,  1847.  Nathan  Johnson 
was  president. 

There  were  67  delegates.  From  New  York,  44;  Massachusetts, 
15 ;  Connecticut,  2 ;  Pennsylvania,  New  Jersey,  New  Hampshire, 
Vermont,  Kentucky  and  Michigan,  1  each. 

The  presence  of  one  delegate,  Benjamin  Weeden,  from  a  large 
constituency,  Northampton,  Mass.,  whose  credentials  stated  the 
fact  that  a  large  number  of  white  citizens  sympathizing  with  the 
objects  of  the  call  had  formally  expressed  their  endorsement 
of  the  movement,  was  a  signal  for  hearty  applause. 

A  most  spirited  discussion  arose  on  the  report  of  the  Com- 
mittee of  Education  as  to  the  expediency  of  the  establishment 
of  a  college  for  colored  young  men,  which  was  discussed  pro 
and  con  by  arguments  that  can  not  be  surpassed  even  after  a 
lapse  of  more  than  half  a  century.  The  report  gives  unstinted 
praise  to  the  chairman  ^  of  the  committee  for  his  scholarly  style, 
his  choice  diction  and  his  grace  of  manner. 

The  next  year,  September  6,  1848,  between  sixty  and  seventy 
delegates  assembled  at  Cleveland,  Ohio,  in  the  National  Conven- 
tion, the  sessions  alternating  between  the  Court  House  and  the 
Tabernacle.  Frederick  Douglass  was  chosen  President,  John 
Jones  of  Illinois,  Allen  Jones  of  Oliio,  Thomas  Johnson  of  Michi- 
gan and  Abner  Francis  of  New  York,  were  Vice  Presidents,  Wil- 
liam Howard  Day  was  the  Secretary,  with  William  H.  Burnham 
and  Justin  Hollin,  Assistants.  At  the  head  of  the  business  com- 
mittee stood  Martin  R.  Delaney.  The  line  of  policy  was  not  de- 
flected.    As  in  previous  conventions,  education  was  encouraged, 

5  Alexander  Crummell. 


40  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

the  importance  of  statistical  information  emphasized  and  temper- 
ance societies  urged. 

As  showing  the  representative  character  of  the  delegates,  the 
diversity  of  occupations,  employment  and  the  professions  fol- 
lowed, the  fact  was  developed  that  there  were  printers,  carpenters, 
blacksmiths,  shoemakers,  engineers,  dentists,  gunsmiths,  editors, 
tailors,  merchants,  wheelwrights,  painters,  farmers,  physicians, 
plasterers,  masons,  college  students,  clergymen,  barbers,  hair- 
dressers, laborers,  coopers,  livery  stable  keepers,  bath-house 
keepers  and  grocers  among  the  members  of  the  convention. 

But  of  all  the  conventions  of  the  period,  the  largest,  that 
in  which  the  ability  of  its  members  was  best  displayed  in  the 
broad  and  statesmanlike  treatment  of  the  questions  discussed 
and  the  practical  action  which  vindicated  their  right  to  recog- 
nition as  enfranchised  citizens,  and  the  one  to  which  the  at- 
tention of  the  American  people  was  attracted  as  never  before, 
was  the  one  held  in  the  city  of  Rochester,  N.  Y.  With  greater 
emphasis  than  at  prior  meetings,  this  convention  set  the  seal  of 
its  opposition  against  any  hope  for  permanent  relief  to  the  con- 
ditions under  which  the  colored  freeman  labored  by  any  com- 
prehensive scheme  of  emigration.  Because  of  tliis,  it  directed 
its  energies  to  affirmative,  constructive  action. 

In  the  enunciation  of  a  philosophy  able,  far-sighted  and  states- 
manlike, contained  in  the  address  to  the  American  people,  we 
behold  the  wisdom  of  a  master  mind — one  then  at  the  prime  of 
his  intellectual  and  physical  powers,  Frederick  Douglass,  the 
chairman  of  the  Business  Committee. 

Among  the  important  things  done  by  the  convention  might  be 
enumerated.     It  says : 

"We  can  not  announce  the  discovery  of  any  new  principle  adopted 
to  ameliorate  the  condition  of  mankind.  The  great  truths  of  moral 
and  political  science  upon  which  we  rely,  and  which  press  upon  your 
consideration,  have  been  evolved  and  enunciated  by  you.  We  point 
to  your  principles,  your  wisdom  and  your  great  example  as  the  full 


THE  EARLY  CONVENTION  MOVEMENT  41 

justification  of  our  course  this  day.  That  all  men  are  created  equal; 
that  life,  liberty  and  the  pursuit  of  happiness  is  the  right  of  all;  that 
taxation  and  representation  should  go  together;  that  the  Constitution 
of  the  United  States  was  formed  to  establish  justice,  promote  the  gen- 
eral welfare  and  secure  the  blessings  of  liberty  to  all  the  people  of  the 
country;  that  resistance  to  tyranny  is  obedience  to  God — are  American 
principles  and  maxims,  and  together  they  form  and  constitute  the  con- 
structive elements  of  the  American  government." 

1.  The  plan  for  an  industrial  college  on  the  manual  labor  plan,  was 
api^roved,  and  Harriet  Beecher  Stowe,  who  was  about  to  make  a  visit 
to  England  at  the  instance  of  friends  in  that  eomitry,  was  authorized 
to  receive  funds  in  the  name  of  the  colored  people  of  the  country  for 
that  purpose.  The  successful  establishment  and  conduct  of  such  an 
institution  of  learning,  would  train  youth  to  be  self-reliant  and  skilled 
workmen,  fitted  to  hold  their  own  in  the  struggle  of  life  on  the  con- 
ditions prevailing  here. 

2.  A  registiy  of  colored  mechanics,  artisans  and  business  men 
throughout  the  Union,  was  provided  for,  also,  of  all  the  persons  will- 
ing to  employ  colored  men  in  busmess,  to  teach  colored  boys  mechanic 
trades,  liberal  and  scientific  professions  and  farming,  also  a  registry 
of  colored  men  and  youth  seeking  employment  or  instruction. 

3.  A  committee  on  publication  "to  collect  all  facts,  statistics  and 
statements.  All  laws  and  historical  records  and  biographies  of  the 
colored  people  and  all  books  by  colored  authors."  This  committee  was 
further  authorized  "to  publish  replies  to  any  assaults  worthy  of  note, 
made  upon  the  character  or  condition  of  the  colored  people."  This 
was  in  keeping  with  what  had  actually  been  done  by  the  colored  peo- 
ple of  the  State  of  New  York  the  year  previous,  after  its  Governor, 
Ward  Hunt,  had  substantially  recommended  the  passage  of  black  laws 
which  would  have  forbidden  the  settlement  of  any  blacks  or  mulattoes 
within  its  borders  and  placed  further  restrictions  on  those  at  that  time 
citizens.  The  charge  of  unthrift  against  the  Negro  was  utterly  dis- 
proven  by  a  comparative  statement  showing  that  in  those  places  m 
which  the  conditions  were  the  woi-st.  New  York,  Brooklyn  and  Williams- 
burg, the  Negro  had  increased  25  per  cent,  in  population  in  twenty 
years  and  100  per  cent,  in  real  estate  holdings. 


42  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

In  thirteen  counties  the  amount  owned  by  colored  persons 
was  ascertained  to  be  $1,000,000. 

Capit.\l  in  Business. — New  York,  $755,000;  Brooklyn,  $79,- 
200;  Williamsburg,  $4,900.     Total  $839,100. 

Real  Estate  Exclusive  of  Incumbrance. — New  York,  $733,- 
000;  Brooklyn,  $276,000;  Williamsburg,  $151,000.  Total  $1,- 
160,000. 

The  convention  crowned  its  work  by  a  more  comprehensive 
plan  of  organization  than  those  of  twenty  years  before. 

A  national  council  was  provided  for  to  be  "composed  of  two 
members  from  each  State  by  elections  to  be  held  at  a  poll  at 
which  each  colored  inhabitant  may  vote  who  pays  ten  cents  as  a 
poll  tax,  and  each  State  shall  elect  at  such  election  delegates  to 
State  conventions  twenty  in  number  from  each  State  at  large." 

The  detail  of  this  plan  shows  that  the  methods  of  the  Afro- 
American  Council  of  1895,  is  an  almost  exact  copy  of  the 
National  Council  of  1853.  The  chairman  of  the  committee 
which  formulated  this  plan  was  William  Howard  Day  and  other 
members  were  Charles  H.  Langston,  George  B.  Vashon,  William 
J.  Wilson,  William  Whipper  and  Charles  B.  Ray,  all  of  them 
men  of  more  than  ordinary  intelligence,  information  and  abil- 
ity. 

But  those  who  saw  only  in  emigration  the  solution  of  the  evils 
with  which  they  were  beset,  immediately  called  another  con- 
vention to  consider  and  decide  upon  the  subject  of  emigration 
from  the  United  States.  According  to  the  call,  no  one  was  to 
be  admitted  to  the  convention  who  would  introduce  the  subject 
of  emigration  to  any  part  of  the  Eastern  Hemisphere,  and  op- 
ponents of  emigration  were  also  to  be  excluded.  Among  the 
signers  to  the  call  in  and  from  the  States  of  Pennsylvania,  New 
York,  Michigan,  Indiana,  Canada  and  California  were :  Rev.  Wil- 
liam Webb,  Martin  R.  Delaney,  Pittsburg,  Pa.,  Dr.  J.  J.  Gould 
Bias  and  Franklin  Turner  of  Philadelphia,  Rev.  Augustus  R. 
Green  of  Allegheny,  Pa.,  James  M.  Whitfield,  New  York,  William 


THE  EARLY  CONVENTION  MOVEMENT  43 

Lambert  of  Michigan,  Henry  Bibb,  James  Theodore  Holly  of 
Canada  and  Henry  M.  Collins  of  California. 

Douglass  in  his  paper  The  North  Star,  characterized  the 
call  as  uncalled  for, — unwise  and  unfortunate  and  prema- 
ture. As  far  too  narrow  and  illiberal  to  meet  with  acceptance 
among  the  intelligent.  "A  convention  to  consider  the  subject 
of  emigration  when  every  delegate  must  declare  himself  in  favor 
of  it  beforehand  as  a  condition  of  taking  his  seat,  is  like  the 
handle  of  a  jug,  all  on  one  side.  We  hope  no  colored  man  will 
omit  during  the  coming  twelve  months  an  opportunity  which 
may  offer  to  buy  a  piece  of  property,  a  house  lot,  a  farm  or  any- 
thing else  in  the  United  States  which  looks  to  permanent  resi- 
dence here." 

James  M.  Whitfield  of  Buffalo,  N.  Y.,  the  Negro  poet  of 
America,  and  one  of  the  signers  of  the  call,  responded  to  the  at- 
tacks in  the  same  journal.  Douglass  made  a  reply  and  Whitfield 
responded  again,  and  so  on  until  several  articles  on  each  side 
were  produced  by  these  and  other  disputants.  The  articles  were 
collected  and  published  in  pamphlet  form  by  Rev.  and  Bishop 
James  Theodore  Holly  of  Port  au  Prince,  Haiti,  making  a  valu- 
able contribution  to  literature,  for  I  doubt  if  there  is  anywhere 
throughout  the  range  of  controversial  literature  anything  to  sur- 
pass it. 

Bishop  Holly  gives  further  information  respecting  this  con- 
vention.    In  a  private  letter  he  says : 

"The  convention  was  accordingly  held.  The  Rev.  William  Munroe 
was  President,  the  Rt.  Rev.  [William]  Paul  Quinn,  Vice  President, 
Dr.  Delaney,  Chairman  of  the  Business  Committee  and  I  was  the  Secre- 
tary. .  .  . 

"There  were  three  parties  in  that  Emigration  Convention,  ranged 
according  to  the  foreign  fields  they  preferred  to  emigrate  to.  Dr. 
Delaney  headed  the  party  that  desired  to  go  to  the  Niger  Valley  in 
Africa,  Whitfield  the  party  which  preferred  to  go  to  Central  America, 
and  Holly  the  party  which  preferred  to  go  to  Hayti. 


44  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

"All  these  parties  were  recognized  and  embraced  by  the  Convention. 
Dr.  Delaney  was  given  a  commission  to  go  to  Africa,  in  the  Niger  Val- 
ley, Whitfield  to  go  to  Central  America  and  Holly  to  Hayti,  to  enter 
into  negotiations  with  the  authorities  of  these  various  countries  for 
Negro  emigrants  and  to  report  to  future  conventions.  Holly  was  the 
first  to  execute  his  mission,  going  down  to  Hayti  in  1855,  when  he  en- 
tered into  relations  with  the  Minister  of  the  Interior,  the  father  of 
the  late  President  Hyppolite,  and  by  him  was  presented  to  Emperor 
Faustin  I.  The  next  Emigration  Convention  was  held  at  Chatham, 
Canada  West,  in  1856,  when  the  report  on  Hayti  was  made.  Dr.  De- 
laney went  off  on  his  mission  to  the  Niger  Valley,  Africa,  via  England 
in  1858.  There  he  concluded  a  treaty  signed  by  himself  and  eight 
Mngs,  offering  inducements  for  Negro  emigrants  to  their  territories. 
Whitfield  went  to  California,  intending  to  go  later  from  thence  to 
Central  America,  but  died  in  San  Francisco  before  he  could  do  so. 
Meanwhile  [James]  Redpath  went  to  Hayti  as  a  John  Brownist  after 
the  Harper's  Ferry  raid,  and  reaped  the  first  fruits  of  Holly's  mission 
by  being  appomted  Haytian  Commissioner  of  Emigration  in  the  United 
States  by  the  Haytian  Government,  but  with  the  express  injunction 
that  Rev.  Holly  should  be  called  to  cooperate  with  him.  On  Red- 
path's  arrival  in  the  United  States,  he  tendered  Rev.  Holly  a  Commis- 
sion from  the  Haytian  Government  at  $1,000  per  annum  and  traveling 
expenses  to  engage  emigrants  to  go  to  Hayti.  The  first  shipload  of 
emigrants  were  from  Philadelphia  in  1861. 

"Not  more  than  one-third  of  the  2,000  emigrants  to  Hayti  re- 
ceived through  this  movement,  permanently  abided  there.  They  proved 
to  be  neither  intellectually,  industrially,  nor  financially  prepared  to 
undertake  to  wring  from  the  soil  the  riches  that  it  is  ready  to  yield  up 
to  such  as  shall  be  thus  prepared;  nor  are  the  government  and  in- 
fluential individuals  suflBciently  instructed  in  social,  industrial  and 
financial  problems  which  now  govern  the  world,  to  turn  to  profitable 
use  willing  workers  among  the  laboring  class. 

"The  Civil  War  put  a  stop  to  the  African  Emigration  project  by 
Dr.  Delaney  taking  the  commission  of  Major  from  President  Lincoln, 
and  the  Central  American  project  died  out  with  Whitfield,  leaving  the 
Haytian  Emigration  as  the  only  remaining  practical  outcome  of  the 
Emigration  Convention  of  1854." 


THE  EARLY  CONVENTION  MOVEMENT     45 

The  Civil  War  destroyed  many  landmarks  and  the  National 
Colored  Convention,  restricted  to  the  free  colored  people  of  the 
North  and  the  border  States,  was  a  thing  of  the  past. 

Just  after  one  of  the  darkest  periods  of  that  strife,  when  the 
dawn  was  apparent,  there  assembled  in  the  city  of  Syracuse, 
the  last  National  Colored  Convention  in  which  the  men  who 
began  the  movement  in  1830,  their  successors  and  their  sons  had 
the  control.  The  sphere  of  influence  even  in  that  had  some- 
what increased,  for  southeastern  Virginia,  Louisiana  and  Ten- 
nessee had  some  representation.  Slavery  was  dead ;  the  coloniza- 
tiouists  to  Canada,  the  West  Indies  and  Africa  had  abandoned 
the  field  of  openly  aiming  to  commit  the  policy  of  the  race  to  what 
was  considered  expatriation. 

Reconstruction,  even  in  1864,  was  seen  in  the  South  peering 
above  the  horizon.  The  Equal  Rights  League  came  forth  dis- 
placing the  National  Council  of  1854,  yet  with  the  same  object 
of  the  Legal  Rights  Association  organized  by  Hezekiah  Griee  in 
Baltimore  in  1830.  John  Mercer  Langston  stepped  in  the  arena 
at  the  head  of  the  new  organization,  but  under  more  favorable 
auspices  than  was  begun  in  the  movement  of  1830.  A  study  of 
its  rise,  progress  and  decline  belongs  to  another  period  of  the 
evolution  of  the  Free  Negro. 

These  four  facts  appear  from  a  study  of  this  movement : 

1.  The  Convention  Movement  begun  in  1830,  demonstrates  the 
ability  of  the  Negro  to  construct  a  platform  broad  enough  for  a 
race  to  stand  upon  and  to  outline  a  policy  alike  far-sighted  and 
statesmanlike,  one  that  has  not  been  surpassed  in  the  eighty  years 
that  have  elapsed. 

2.  The  earnestness,  the  enthusiasm  and  the  efficiency  with 
which  the  work  aimed  at  was  done,  the  singleness  of  purpose, 
the  public  spirit  and  the  intrepidity  manifested,  encouraged  and 
inspired  such  men  as  Benjamin  Lundy,  William  Lloyd  Garrison, 
Gerrit  Smith,  S.  S.  Jocelyn,  Arthur  and  Lewis  Tappan,  William 
Goodell  and  Beriah  Green  to  greater  efforts  and  persistence  in 


46  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

behalf  of  the  disfranchised  American,  accomplishing  at  last  the 
tremendous  work  of  revolutionizing  the  public  sentiment  of  the 
country  and  making  the  institution  of  radical  reforms  possible. 

3.  The  preparatory  training  which  the  convention  work  gave, 
fitted  its  leaders  for  the  broader  arena  of  abolitionism.  And  it 
can  not  be  regarded  as  a  mere  coincidence  that  the  only  colored 
men  who  were  among  the  organizers  of  the  American  Anti- 
Slavery  Society  in  1833,  Robert  Purvis  and  James  G.  Barbadoes, 
were  both  promoters  and  leaders  in  the  Convention  Movement. 

4.  The  importance  of  industrial  education  in  the  growth  and 
development  of  the  Negro-American  is  no  new  doctrine  in  the 
creed  of  the  representative  colored  people  of  the  country.  Be- 
fore Hampton  and  Tuskegee  reared  their  walls — aye,  before 
Booker  T.  Washington  was  born,  Frederick  Douglass  and  the 
Colored  Convention  of  1853  had  commissioned  Mrs.  Stowe  to  ob- 
tain funds  to  establish  an  Agriculture  and  Industrial  College. 
Long  before  Frederick  Douglass  had  left  Maryland  by  the  Under 
Ground  Railroad,  but  for  the  opposition  of  the  white  people  of 
Connecticut,  and  within  the  echo  of  Yale  College,  would  have 
stood  the  first  institution  dedicated  to  our  enlightenment  and 
social  regeneration. 


XII 

RECONSTRUCTION   FAILS 

From  1865  to  1870  the  Equal  Rights  League  had  a  respectable 
existence.  The  chief  value  of  this  body  was  that  it  brought  to- 
gether colored  men  from  different  sections  and  created  the  com- 
mittee of  colored  men  stationed  in  Washington  during  the  winter 
immediately  after  the  war,  pending  the  fight  between  Congress 
and  Andrew  Johnson  and  the  enactment  of  the  Reconstruction 
Acts.  This  fight  also  paved  the  way  for  the  framing  and  passage 
of  the  Fifteenth  Amendment  to  the  Constitution. 

This  law  and  amendments  were  followed  by  the  readmission  of 
the  States  of  Georgia,  South  Carolina,  North  Carolina,  Virginia, 
Florida,  Alabama,  Arkansas,  Louisiana,  Mississippi  and  Texas. 
With  the  elective  franchise  safeguarded  by  the  presence  of  the 
United  States  Army  and  the  federal  statutes  there  was  a  revolu- 
tion in  the  personnel  and  political  administration  of  the  South. 
In  local  and  State  offices  colored  men  were  chosen  under  the  new 
constitutions.  Negro  magistrates  and  police  officers  in  the  towns 
and  cities;  members  of  the  legislatures  by  the  score;  a  half  a 
dozen  judges,  secretaries  of  state  in  Florida,  Mississippi,  and 
South  Carolina ;  and  lieutenant  governors  in  Louisiana,  South 
Carolina  and  Mississippi.  As  Members  of  Congress,  there  were 
two  Senators,  Hiram  R.  Revels,  who  filled  an  unexpired  term, 
and  Blanche  K.  Bruce,  the  full  term  of  six  years  from  1875 
to  1881,  both  from  Mississippi.  Virginia  had  one  colored  Mem- 
ber of  Congress,  John  M.  Langston,  who  served  one  term ;  North 
Carolina,  John  A.  Hyman,  one  term,  James  E.  O'Hara,  two 
terms;  Henry  P.  Cheatham,  two  terms,  and  George  H.  White, 

47 


48  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMEEICAN  HISTORY 

two  terms.  From  South  Carolina,  Joseph  H.  Rainey  who  served 
in  five  Congresses,  Rev.  (later  Bishop)  Richard  H.  Cain,  in  two, 
Robert  C.  DeLarge,  in  one,  Alonzo  J.  Ransier,  in  one,  Thomas 
E.  Miller,  one  term,  Robert  Brown  Elliott,  in  two,  George  W. 
Murray,  in  two,  Robert  Smalls,  in  five.  Georgia  had  Jefferson 
Long  in  part  of  a  term,  Florida  sent  Josiah  T.  Walls  two 
terms.  From  Alabama  came  Jere  Haralson,  Benjamin  S. 
Turner  and  James  T.  Rapier,  one  term  each.  Mississippi,  John 
R.  Lynch,  two  tenns,  and  Louisiana,  Charles  E.  Nash,  one 
term. 

The  withdrawal  of  the  last  contingent  of  United  States  sol- 
diers from  the  South  during  the  Administration  of  President 
Hayes,  and  the  opinion  of  the  U.  S.  Supreme  Court  that  the 
Enforcement  Act  was  unconstitutional,  as  well  as  similar  opin- 
ions as  to  other  Reconstruction  Legislation,  were  followed  in 
1877  by  the  collapse  of  the  last  reconstructed  governments  of 
Florida,  South  Carolina  and  Louisiana. 

Hope  was  indulged  in,  nevertheless,  that  the  Fourteenth  and 
Fifteenth  Amendments  to  the  National  Constitution  in  the  South 
w^ould  be  recognized  and  enforced  by  local  sentiment.  In  Vir- 
ginia, the  "readjuster"  movement  led  by  William  Mahone 
triumphed  in  1881  and  gave  a  fair  interpretation  to  the  U.  S. 
Constitution,  and  a  combination  between  the  Populists  and  the 
Republicans  in  North  Carolina  obtained  control  of  the  govern- 
ment of  this  State  with  a  somewhat  kindred  result.  In  Ala- 
bama a  union  between  the  same  elements  gave  j^romise  of  the 
/  same  results.  But  all  these  successes  were  temporary.  Begin- 
ning with  Mississippi  in  1890,  South  Carolina,  Alabama,  North 
Carolina,  Virginia  and  Louisiana  have  revised  their  constitu- 
tions so  ingeniously  that  while  not  violating  the  letter  of  the 
Fifteenth  Amendment  they  have  placed  the  power  of  admitting 
to  the  elective  franchise  entirely  in  the  hands  of  local  officers. 
These  officers  having  full  discretion  have  uniformlj^  admitted 
all  white  men   but  disfranchised   nearly   all   colored   men,    re- 


KECONSTKUCTION  FAILS  49 

gardless  of  whether  they  do  or  do  not  conform  to  the  State 
law.  Several  attempts  have  been  made  to  have  the  U.  S,  Su- 
preme Court  rule  on  the  constitutionality  or  unconstitutionality 
of  these  revised  constitutions.  But  thus  far  these  attempts 
have  been  in  vain. 

The  elective  franchise  is  now  quite  as  much  in  control  of  the 
State  as  before  the  Civil  War.  One  of  the  problems  of  the 
twentieth  century  is  either  the  complete  nullification  of  the  war 
amendments  or  their  enforcement  in  letter  and  spirit. 


XIII 

THE  NEGRO  AS  A  SOLDIER 

1652-1781 

As  early  as  1652  the  Negro  trained  in  the  Virginia  Militia  and 
was  found  in  the  French  and  Indian  War.  Crispus  Attucks,  the 
mulatto,  was  one  of  the  first  to  fall  March  5,  1770,  in  the  Boston 
Massacre,  in  which  the  first  blood  of  the  Revolution  was  shed. 
From  the  very  earliest  days  of  the  Revolution  the  free  Negro 
enlisted  as  a  soldier  in  common  with  other  men.  As  such  he 
was  found  in  the  service  of  nearly  all  the  colonies.^  Their  pres- 
ence created  objection  and  led  to  a  council  of  war,  held  October, 
1775,  composed  of  three  major  generals  and  six  brigadiers, 
presided  over  by  General  George  Washington,  in  which  any 
further  Negro  enlistments  were  unanimously  condemned.  Ten 
days  later  this  action  was  approved  by  a  conference  participated 
in  by  Benjamin  Franklin,  Benjamin  Harrison,  Washington,  and 
the  deputy  governors  of  Connecticut  and  Rhode  Island.  The 
British  took  advantage  of  this  policy  of  the  Revolutionists,  and 
Lord  Duimiore,  in  a  proclamation  dated  November  7,  1775, 
offered  freedom  and  equal  pay  to  all  slaves  who  would  join 
their  army.  Before  the  year  closed,  in  fact  on  December  30, 
1775,  Washington  issued  orders  authorizing  the  enlistment  of 
free  Negroes  as  soldiers,  and  as  such  they  continued  until  the 
close  of  the  M^ar. 

The  connection  of  the  Negro  soldier  in  the  Continental  Army 
was  not  without  incident.     Some  achieved  honorable  mention 

1  Arnold's  History  State  of  R.  I,  p.  428. 

50 


THE  NEGRO  AS  A  SOLDIER  51 

and  distinction.  Salem  Poor  was  the  subject  of  a  memorial  to 
the  General  Court  of  Massachusetts  for  his  soldierly  bearing 
and  bravery.  To  Peter  Salem  belongs  the  distinction  of  killing 
Major  Pitcairn  at  Bunker  Hill,  and  Jordan  Freeman  killed 
Major  Montgomery  at  the  storming  of  Fort  Griswold.  At  the 
battle  of  Rhode  Island,  August  29,  1778,  a  battalion  of  400 
Negroes  withstood  three  separate  charges  from  1,500  Hessians 
under  Count  Donop.  In  his  description  of  this  battle  Arnold 
says:  "It  was  in  repelling  the  furious  onset,  that  the  newly 
raised  black  regiment  under  Colonel  Green,  distinguished  itself 
by  deeds  of  desperate  valor.  Posted  behind  a  thicket  in  the 
valley,  three  times  they  drove  back  the  Hessians  who  charged 
repeatedly  down  the  hill  to  dislodge  them;  and  so  determined 
were  the  enemy  in  these  successive  charges,  that  the  day  after 
the  battle  the  Hessian  Colonel  who  had  led  the  attack,  applied 
to  exchange  his  command  and  go  to  New  York,  because  he 
dared  not  lead  his  regiment  again  to  battle  lest  his  men  should 
shoot  him  for  having  caused  them  so  much  loss. ' ' 

1812-1814 

In  the  War  of  1812  the  Negro  was  one-sixth  of  the  naval 
forces  of  the  young  republic.  Captain  Oliver  H.  Perry,  subse- 
quently Commodore,  in  the  early  part  of  the  struggle  com- 
plained because  of  the  large  number  of  Negro  recruits  sent 
him,  but  later  he  applauded  them  for  their  bravery  and  effi- 
ciency. 

A  popular  gathering  was  held  in  New  York  to  honor  Com- 
modore Decatur  at  which  Hull,  Jones  and  Decatur  were  present. 
Shortly  after  dinner  was  given,  the  crew,  of  which  one-third 
was  colored,  mulattoes  and  full  blacks,  walked  side  by  side 
with  the  white  soldiers  in  the  parade.  Commodore  Decatur  re- 
viewed them.  Some  gentlemen  seeing  the  Negro  element  ex- 
pressed their  surprise  to  the  Commodore  and  inquired  if  such 
men  were  good  for  anything  in  a  fight.     The  Commodore  re- 


52  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

plied:  ''They  are  as  brave  men  as  ever  fired  a  gun.  There 
are  no  stouter  hearts  in  the  service. ' '  ^  Incidents  of  the  valor 
of  the  colored  sailors  in  that  struggle  are  abundant.  John 
Johnson,  struck  by  a  twenty-four-pounder  in  the  hip,  which 
took  away  the  lower  part  of  his  body,  exclaimed  while  in  this 
condition,  ''Fire  away,  my  boys;  no  haul  a  color  down."  An- 
other, John  Davis,  just  as  seriously  wounded,  begged  to  be 
thrown  overboard  because  he  said  he  was  in  the  way  of  others. 

In  the  east  Senate  stairway  of  the  Capitol  at  Washington, 
and  in  the  rotunda  of  the  Capitol  at  Columbus,  Ohio,  Art  has 
rescued  from  oblivion,  by  the  celebrated  picture  of  Perry's 
Victory  on  Lake  Erie,  the  contribution  of  the  Negro  sailor  to 
a  place  among  the  heroes  of  that  engagement.^ 

General  Andrew  Jackson,  President  from  1829  to  1837,  issued 
a  stirring  appeal  for  aid  to  the  free  colored  people  of  Louisiana, 
September  21,  1814.  It  runs  as  follows:  "Through  a  mistaken 
policy  you  have  been  deprived  of  a  participation  in  the  glorious 
struggle  for  National  rights  in  which  our  country  is  engaged. 
This  no  longer  shall  exist."  Two  battalions  were  recruited 
and  did  splendid  service  in  the  battle  of  New  Orleans,  New 
York  enrolled  two  battalions  and  Pennsylvania  enrolled  2,400 
soldiers.  Still  another  was  ready  for  service  when  peace  was  de- 
clared. So  highly  pleased  was  General  Jackson  with  the  service 
of  the  colored  soldiers  at  the  battle  of  New  Orleans  that  he  issued 
a  proclamation  containing  these  words :  "To  the  men  of  color, 
soldiers!  From  the  shores  of  Mobile,  I  called  you  to  arms. 
I  invited  you  to  share  in  the  perils  and  to  divide  the  glory  of 
your  white  countrymen.  I  expected  much  of  you;  for  I  was 
not  uninformed  of  those  qualities  which  must  render  you  so 
formidable  to  an  invading  foe.  I  knew  you  could  endure  hunger 
and   thirst  and   all  the  hardships  of  war.     I  knew  that  you 

a  Am.  Hist.  Record,  Vol.  I,  p.  115. 

3  There  were  one  hundred  and  nine  dauntless  colored  heroes  who  fought 
on  the  Battle  of  Lake  Erie. — Centennial  Address  of  Rev.  A.  J.  Carey. 


THE  NEGRO  AS  A  SOLDIER  53 

loved  the  land  of  your  nativity,  and  that,  like  ourselves,  you 
had  to  defend  all  that  is  most  dear  to  man.  But  you  surpass 
my  hopes.  I  found  in  you,  united  to  those  qualities,  that  noble 
enthusiasm  that  impels  to  great  deeds. 

' '  Soldiers,  the  President  of  the  United  States  shall  be  informed 
of  your  conduct  on  the  present  occasion,  and  the  voice  of  the 
representative  of  the  American  Nation  shall  applaud  your  valor 
as  your  General  now  praises  your  ardor.  The  enemy  is  near. 
His  sails  cover  the  lake,  but  the  brave  are  united,  and  if  he 
finds  us  contending  among  ourselves,  it  will  be  for  the  prize  of 
valor,  and  fame  its  noblest  reward." 

In  Louisiana  a  special  act  of  the  legislature  authorized  free 
Negro  troops  to  be  raised  during  the  second  war  with  England, 
but  only  those  residing  in  the  parish  of  Natchitoches,  who  pos- 
sessed real  estate  of  the  value  of  one  hundred  and  fifty  dollars, 
were  eligible.  This  was  the  only  instance  of  the  enrolment  of 
Negro  troops  in  the  half-century  (1800-1850).  Respecting  this 
regiment.  General  Jackson  wrote,  in  a  letter  to  President  Mon- 
roe describing  the  battle  of  New  Orleans,  "I  saw  General 
Packenham  reel  and  pitch  out  of  his  saddle.  I  have  always 
believed  that  he  fell  from  the  bullet  of  a  freeman  of  color,  who 
was  a  famous  rifle  shot,  and  came  from  the  Attakapas  region 
of  Louisiana. ' '  * 

Commenting  on  this  belief  Thorpe,  the  historian,  says:  "If 
war  be  man's  most  glorious  occupation,  and  the  death  of  the 
enemy's  commander-in-chief  be  desirable,  America  should  erect 
a  monument  to  this  forgotten  free  Negro  who  on  a  property 
qualification  of  a  hundred  and  fifty  dollars  served  so  faithfully 
at  the  battle  of  New  Orleans.  Was  not  this  almost  as  great  a 
service  as  to  command  a  Negro  regiment  ? "  ° 

*  Century  Magazine,  January,  1897. 

5  Constitutional  History  of  the  American  People,  page  361. 


XIV 

THE   NEGRO   AS   A   SOLDIER 

1861-1865 

In  the  spring  of  1862,  the  second  year  of  the  war  which  main- 
tained the  supremacy  of  the  Union  and  preserved  the  flag,  Gen- 
eral David  Hunter  raised  and  equipped  a  regiment  of  Negroes 
in  South  Carolina.  His  action,  which  provoked  censure  and 
the  offering  of  a  resolution  in  the  House  of  Representatives 
demanding  the  authority  for  this  step,  was  ultimately  approved 
by  President  Lincoln  and  by  Congress.  Negro  soldiers  thence- 
forth were  recruited  with  enthusiasm  until  the  total  number 
was  178,975  in  138  regiments  of  infantry,  six  of  cavalry,  four- 
teen regiments  of  heavy  artillery  and  one  battery  of  light  artil- 
lery. 

The  record  of  the  bravery  of  "The  Colored  Volunteer"  in 
defense  of  the  flag  has  inspired  alike  the  poet  and  the  orator 
to  some  of  the  most  eloquent  tributes  to  the  valor,  the  courage, 
the  daring  of  the  bronze  boys  in  blue.  The  names  of  Milliken's 
Bend,  Port  Hudson  and  Fort  Pillow  are  as  familiar  as  Bull 
Run,  Antietam,  Shiloh  and  Gettysburg. 

"When  the  Second  Louisiana  Native  Guards,  one  of  the  three 
colored  battalions  mustered  in  the  Union  cause  at  New  Orleans, 
were  leaving  for  service,  Colonel  Stafford,  their  commander, 
thus  concludes  an  address,  turning  over  the  regimental  colors: 
''Color-Guard:  Protect,  defend,  die  for,  but  do  not  surrender 
these  colors." 

Plancianos,   the   gallant  flag-sergeant,   replied:     "Colonel,    I 

will  bring  back  these  colors  to  you  in  honor,  or  report  to  God 

the  reason  why." 

54 


THE  NEGRO  AS  A  SOLDIER  55 

At  Port  Hudson,  May,  1863,  six  times  the  battalion  unsuccess- 
fully charged  against  the  foe.  Captain  Cailloux,  so  black  that 
he  was  proud  of  his  color,  leading  on  and  refusing  to  leave  the 
field,  though  wounded,  until  killed  by  a  shell.  The  colors  re- 
turned, but  dyed  with  the  blood  of  the  brave  Plancianos,  who 
had  reported  to  God  from  that  bloody  field.  George  H.  Boker, 
the  poet,  immortalizes  the  engagement  in  "The  Black  Regi- 
ment. ' ' 

At  Milliken's  Bend,  garrisoned  by  the  Ninth  and  Eleventh 
Louisiana  and  the  First  Mississippi,  Negroes,  and  about  one 
hundred  and  sixty  of  the  Twenty-third  Iowa,  white,  about  eleven 
hundred  fighting  men  in  all,  defended  themselves  against  a  force 
of  six  Confederate  regiments  from  3  a.  m.  to  12  noon,  when 
rescued  by  a  Union  gunboat. 

On  July  18,  1863,  the  Fifty-fourth  Massachusetts  Regiment, 
under  Colonel  Robert  Gould  Shaw,  in  their  charge  against  Fort 
Wagner,  won  undying  fame.  It  was  here  that  Flag-Sergeant 
William  H.  Carney,  though  wounded,  bore  the  flag  back  in 
safety,  though  falling  exhausted  from  the  loss  of  blood,  and 
exclaiming,  "Boys,  the  Old  Flag  never  touched  the  ground." 

In  Virginia  in  the  armies  of  the  James  and  the  Potomac,  the 
prowess  of  the  Negro  soldier  elicited  praise  from  commanding 
officers  as  well  as  from  an  admiring  world.  Major  C.  A.  Fleet- 
wood,^ with  pardonable  pride,  says:  "The  true  metal  of  the 
Negro  as  a  soldier  rang  out  its  clearest  notes  amid  the  tremen- 
dous diapason  that  rolled  back  and  forth  between  the  embattled 
hosts!" 

It  was  September  29,  1864,  at  New  Market  Heights  and  Fort 
Harrison,  that  only  one  of  a  color  guard  of  the  4th  U.  S.  C.  T., 
twelve  men,  came  off  the  field  on  his  own  feet.  This  gallant 
flag-sergeant,  Hilton,  the  last  to  fall,  cried  out  as  he  went  down, 
"Boys,  save  the  colors,"  and  they  were  saved.     It  was  at  New 

1  Fleetwood  was  a  medal  of  honor  man;  for  other  Colored  Honor  Men,  see 
Appendix. 


56  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

Market  Heights  that  owing  to  the  loss  of  their  commissioned 
officers,  six  non-commissioned  officers,  Milton  M.  Holland,  James 
H.  Bronson,  Powhattan  Beatty,  Robert  Finn,  Edward  RatcUff 
and  Samuel  Gilchrist,  led  their  men  so  nobly,  so  bravely,  so 
skillfully,  that  they  were  given  special  medals  of  honor.  It  was 
of  this  engagement  that  Gen.  Benjamin  F.  Butler,  a  Represent- 
ative in  Congress,  thus  spoke  ten  years  after :  -  "  There  in  a 
space  not  wider  than  the  clerk's  desk,  and  three  hundred  yards 
long,  lay  the  dead  bodies  of  543  of  my  colored  comrades,  slain 
in  the  defence  of  their  country,  who  had  lain  down  their 
lives  to  uphold  its  flag  and  its  honor  as  a  willing  sacrifice.  And 
as  I  rode  along,  guiding  my  horse  this  way  and  that  lest  he 
should  profane  with  his  hoofs  what  seemed  to  me  the  sacred 
dead,  and  as  I  looked  at  their  bronzed  faces,  upturned  in  the 
shining  sun,  as  if  in  mute  appeal  against  the  wrongs  of  the 
country  for  which  they  had  given  their  lives,  and  whose  flag 
had  been  to  them  a  flag  of  stripes,  in  which  no  star  of  glory 
had  ever  shone  for  them.  Feeling  I  had  wronged  them  in  the 
past,  and  believing  what  was  the  future  duty  of  my  country  to 
them,  I  swore  a  solemn  oath,  'May  my  right  hand  forget  its 
cunning  and  my  tongue  cleave  to  the  roof  of  my  mouth  if  I 
ever  fail  to  defend  the  rights  of  the  men  who  have  given  their 
blood  for  me  and  my  country  that  day  and  for  their  race 
forever.'     And,  God  helping  me,  I  will  keep  that  oath." 

2  January  7,  1874. 


XV 

THE   SPANISH-AMERICAN   WAR 

The  sinking  of  the  battleship  Maine  in  the  harbor  of  Havana, 
Cuba,  on  the  night  of  February  15,  1898,  wrought  the  American 
people  to  such  a  pitch  that  war  between  the  United  States  and 
Spain  was  inevitable.  This  was  declared  April  21,  and  a  block- 
ade of  the  Cuban  ports  effected  the  next  day.  Cessation  of 
hostilities  was  announced  by  a  proclamation  of  President  Mc- 
Kinley,  August  12,  1898,  and  peace  concluded  by  treaty  ratified 
February  6,  1899.  Cuba  became  a  Republic,  independent  of 
Spain;  Porto  Rico  was  annexed  to  the  United  States  and  the 
Philippines  became  part  of  our  insular  possessions.  In  short, 
the  United  States,  hitherto  restricted  in  authority  to  the  conti- 
nent of  North  America,  became  a  world-wide  power. 

In  this  struggle  between  the  United  States  and  Spain,  com- 
pressed within  an  active  period  of  less  than  four  months,  the 
Negro  soldier  won  a  distinction  surpassing,  if  possible,  that  of 
his  fame  in  the  Revolution,  the  War  of  1812  or  that  for  the 
preservation  of  the  Union. 

At  the  beginning  of  hostilities  four  regiments  of  colored  sol- 
diers in  the  regular  army  establishment,  the  Twenty-fourth,  and 
Twenty-fifth  United  States  Infantry,  and  the  Ninth  and  Tenth 
Cavalry  comprised  the  entire  representation  of  the  Negro  in 
the  army;  but  during  the  brief  progress  of  the  war  this  quota 
was  increased  by  one  company,  of  the  Sixth  Massachusetts  In- 
fantry, the  Ninth  Ohio  Battalion,^  companies  A  and  B  of  the 

1  Major  Chaa.  Yoiing,  a  N^ro  graduate  of  West  Point  Academ7. 

57 


58  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

First  Indiana,  the  Eighth  Illinois  regiment,  two  battalions  of 
the  Twenty-third  Kansas,  the  Third  North  Carolina  regiment, 
the  Second  South  Carolina,  the  Third  Alabama  and  two  bat- 
talions of  the  SiKth  Virginia.  To  these  must  be  added  what  are 
otherwise  known  as  the  immunes,  for  service  in  the  Philippines, 
the  Seventh,  Eighth,  Ninth  and  Tenth  U.  S.  Volunteers.  The 
officers  in  the  Eighth  Illinois,  the  Twenty-third  Kansas  and  the 
Ohio  battalion,  line  and  field,  were  colored ;  only  the  line  ofBicers 
in  the  other  commands  were  colored  men. 

No  regiment  South  of  Mason  and  Dixon's  line  was  actually 
engaged  on  the  fighting  line  in  Cuba  during  the  short  conflict, 
but  all  the  four  colored  regiments  from  the  immunes  of  the 
colored  volunteers  saw  service  on  the  island  of  Cuba. 

There  was  nevertheless  no  hesitation  in  the  response  of  the 
South  to  the  call  for  troops;  but  before  their  troops  were 
mustered  in  the  service  and  could  reach  the  front  the  real  work 
had  been  accomplished.  There  were,  however,  white  commis- 
sioned officers  that  had  seen  service  on  the  Confederate  side  dur- 
ing the  Civil  War,  who  distinguished  themselves  in  the  Spanish 
American  War.  Among  these  were  Generals  Fitzhugh  Lee  of 
Virginia  and  Joseph  Wheeler  of  Alabama.  Sons  of  veterans  of 
Federals  and  Confederates  alike  received  lieutenancies  and 
higher  commissions,  but  no  such  honor  was  given  the  son  of 
a  Negro  veteran.  The  Negro  officer  had  once  more  to  win  his 
spurs  and  demonstrate  his  fitness  for  the  honors  grudgingly 
awarded  him  by  State  and  Nation.  President  McKinley,  it  is 
reported,  had  declared  his  intention  of  promoting  to  a  brig- 
adiership  some  Negro  soldier  before  the  end  of  the  struggle,  and 
the  prospect  seemed  assured  when  there  were  brigaded  regiments 
in  Cuba;  but  on  the  eve  of  the  retirement  of  its  commanding 
officer,  the  officer  next  in  line,  being  Major  Charles  Young,  the 
brigade  was  suddenly  disbanded  by  order  of  General  Henry  A. 
Corbin,  who  though  he  had  commanded  colored  troops  in  the 
Civil  War,  is  held  responsible  for  the  failure  of  the  colored 


THE  SPANISH-AMERICAN  WAR  59 

soldier  to  receive  high  commissions  during  the  Spanish- American 
War. 

At  the  Battle  of  El  Caney  the  capture  of  the  stone  fort  was 
due  to  the  gallantry  of  the  Twenty-fifth  Infantry;  at  San  Juan 
the  Ninth  and  Tenth  Cavalry  regiments  distinguished  them- 
selves, as  did  the  Twenty-fourth  Infantry.  The  surrender  of 
the  Spanish  forces  followed  shortly  afterwards  and  as  indi- 
cated, the  war  speedily  came  to  an  end. 

Another  correspondent  thus  expresses  the  situation: 

"American  valor  never  shone  with  greater  luster  than  when 
the  Twenty-fifth  Infantrj^  swept  up  the  sizzling  hill  of  El  Caney 
to  the  rescue  of  the  Rough  Riders.  Two  other  regiments  came 
into  view,  but  the  bullets  were  flying  like  driving  hail,  the  enemy 
were  in  trees  and  ambushes  with  smokeless  powder,  and  the 
Rough  Riders  were  biting  the  dust  and  were  threatened  with 
annihilation."  * 

There  are  many  thrilling  incidents  testifying  to  the  bravery 
of  the  colored  soldiers  in  this  war.  Stephen  Bonsai,  a  news- 
paper correspondent,  expresses  what  was  well  nigh  the  universal 
opinion.  This  is  what  he  said:  "It  is  a  fact  that  the  services 
of  no  four  white  regiments  can  be  compared  with  those  rendered 
by  the  four  colored  regiments — the  Ninth  and  Tenth  Cavalry, 
and  the  Twenty-fourth  and  Twenty-fifth  Infantry.  They  were 
to  the  front  at  La  Guasima,  at  Caney  and  at  San  Juan,  and  in 
what  was  the  severest  test  of  all  that  came  later  in  the  yellow 
fever  hospitals. 

"L"  Company  is  the  oldest  military  organization  among  the  colored 
people  of  this  eomitry.  It  dates  back  to  1782,  when  the  Bucks  of 
America  was  formed  in  Boston  and  was  so  far  as  authentic  history 
points  out,  the  first  independent  mihtary  company  of  America.  This 
military  company  was  made  up  of  Negroes  living  in  or  near  Boston, 

*  Theodore  Roosevelt  was  with  the  Rough  Riders.  In  saving  them, 
these  black  regiments  saved  for  New  York  a  governor  and  for  the  United 
States  a  president. 


60  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

who  had  fought  m  the  Revolutionary  War.  It  was  over  100  strong 
and  under  the  command  of  one  Colonel  Middleton.  It  was  presented 
with  a  set  of  colors  by  John  Hancock,  signer  of  the  Declaration  of 
Independence,  and  then  Governor  of  Massachusetts.  The  flag  is  now 
in  the  custody  of  the  Massachusetts  Historical  Society.  In  course  of 
time  this  company  applied  to  become  a  part  of  the  Militia  of  Massa- 
chusetts, but  was  not  only  refused  but  they  could  not  bear  arms.  In 
1812  they  again  applied  to  the  State  to  form  an  artillery  regiment,  but 
were  refused.  About  1837  they  became  the  Boston  Blues  and  shortly 
after  the  Massasoit  Guards.  A  few  years  later  they  adopted  the  name 
of  Liberty  Guards  and  were  upon  certain  occasions  permitted  by  State 
authorities  to  bear  arms.  This  name  was  held  down  to  1863,  when 
this  company  became  the  nucleus  of  the  Fifty-fourth  Infantry  Massa- 
chusetts Colored  Volunteers.  Those  who  remained  at  home  were  taken 
into  the  Massachusetts  home  guard,  and  were  the  first  colored  com- 
pany in  the  country  to  be  recognized  as  a  part  of  a  State  provisional 
armed  force. — R.  T.  in  New  York  Age.  Also  "Nell's  Colored  Patriots" 
and  Livermore's  "Researches." 


XVI 

THE   NEGRO   CHURCH 

The  existence  of  the  Negi'o  church  has  been  incidentally  referred 
to.  Such  is  its  importance,  however,  that  it  deserves  more  de- 
tailed treatment.  The  original  colored  churches  in  different 
sections  of  the  country  came  about  in  one  of  the  following 
ways: 

1.  They  were  in  some  cases  the  result  of  special  missionary 
effort  on  the  part  of  the  whites; 

2.  They  were  brought  about  by  direct  discrimination  against 
the  blacks  made  by  the  whites  during  divine  worship ; 

3.  They  were  the  natural  sequence,  when  on  account  of  increase 
in  numbers  it  became  necessary  for  congregations  to 
divide;  whereupon  the  blacks  were  evolved  as  distinct 
churches,  but  still  under  the  oversight,  if  not  the  exclu- 
sive control,  of  the  whites; 

4.  They  were,  in  not  a  few  cases,  the  preference  of  colored  com- 
municants themselves,  in  order  to  get  as  much  as  possible 
the  equal  privileges  and  advantages  of  government  denied 
them  under  the  existing  system. 

The  establishment  of  many  of  these  churches  took  place  at 
substantially  about  the  same  time,  in  sections  more  distant  at 
that  period  than  now,  it  was  before  the  time  of  the  railroad,  the 
'         use  of  the  steamboat  or  the  telegraph;  so  it  can  easily  be  de- 
I         termined  whether  their  coming  into  existence  at  the  same  time 
can  be  attributed  to  similar  causes. 

The  first  regular  Church  organization  was  a  Baptist  Church, 

61 


62  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

at  Williamsburg,  Virginia,  formed  in  the  year  1776,  and  recog- 
nized as  such  in  1790,^  Following  it  were  two  Baptist  Churches, 
one  in  1788  in  Savannah,  and  the  other  in  1790  in  Augusta, 
Georgia.^  These  three  precede  the  Episcopal  Church,  St. 
Thomas  in  Philadelphia  in  1791;  Bethel  Church,  Philadelphia, 
in  1794;  Zion  Methodist  Church,  New  York  City,  in  1796;  Joy 
Street  Baptist  Church,  Boston,  in  1805;  Abyssinian  Baptist 
Church,  New  York,  in  1803 ;  First  Baptist,  St.  Louis,  1830,  So 
far  as  the  establishment  is  concerned  of  the  colored  Methodist 
Churches  which  evolved  the  A.  M.  E.  and  A.  M.  E.  Zion  denomi- 
nations, persecution  by  the  whites  was  the  moving  cause.  They 
were  compelled  to  protect  themselves  against  the  yoke  sought 
to  be  imposed  on  them,  by  worshiping  among  themselves.  The 
one  movement  in  Philadelphia,  the  other  in  New  York,  moved  in 
parallel — often  in  rival  lines.  New  York  and  Philadelphia  were 
soon  in  free  States  and  their  methods  were  those  of  freemen, 
in  name  at  least,  while  the  establishment  of  colored  Methodist 
Churches  in  the  South,  as  in  IMaryland  under  the  direction  of 
the  whites,  illustrated  one  of  the  instances  of  special  missionary 
effort.  The  colored  Baptist  Churches  in  the  South  came  mostly 
into  existence  mainly  through  the  third  cause  indicated.  The 
Presbyterian  Church,  as  found  among  the  colored  people,  is  due 
to  the  operation  of  two  causes;  the  desire  of  the  colored  people 
to  be  by  themselves  and  that  of  the  whites  to  strengthen  their 
denomination  among  this  class.  The  first  colored  Episcopal 
Churches,  both  in  New  York  and  Philadelphia,  resulted  directly 
from  causes  similar  to  those  which  produced  the  colored  Meth- 
odist Churches  in  these  localities. 

A  word  as  to  the  men  mainly  instrumental  by  reason  of  their 
position  as  pioneers  in  organizing  these  first  churches  in  the 
different  colored  denominations,  may  not  be  out  of  place. 

The  first  colored  pastor  of  which  there  is  authoritative  state- 

1  Semple's  Rise  of  the  Virginia  Baptists. 

2  History  of  the  Baptists,  David  Benedict.     Infra  W.  J.  White. 


/  THE  NEGRO  CHURCH  63 

ment  was  Andrew  Bryan,  a  convert  to  the  preaching  of  George 
Liele  by  whom  he  was  baptized.  By  Abraham  Marshall,  a  noted 
pioneer  Baptist  (white),  he  was  ordained  in  1788  as  the  pastor 
of  an  African  Baptist  Church  at  Savannah,  Georgia. 

Rev.  W.  J.  White,  D.D.  of  Augusta,  Ga.,  the  veteran  editor 
of  the  Georgia  Baptist  in  a  letter  dated  September  6, 
1893,  writes  as  follows:  ** The  Springfield  Baptist  Church  in 
this  city  is  the  only  individual  church  that  has  a  hundred  years 
of  undisputed  existence  in  Georgia  among  colored  Baptists,  and 
I  think  the  only  colored  Baptist  church  in  the  country  having 
at  this  time  103  years  of  undisputed  and  uninterrupted  history. 
Rev.  Jacob  Walker  who  died  in  1845  and  had  been  pastor  twenty- 
seven  years  was  succeeded  by  Rev.  Kelly  Lowe  who  served  six- 
teen years,  till  1861,  and  Rev,  Henry  Watts  succeeded  Rev. 
Kelly  Lowe,  serving  to  1877,  sixteen  years.  These  three  men 
served  together  nearly  sixty  years  and  are  all  buried  in  the 
yard  of  the  church.  The  pastorate  prior  to  1818  had  been 
filled  by  Caesar  McCradey  who  was  also  buried  in  the  church- 
yard but  the  spot  has  been  lost,  and  Ventor  Golphin  whose 
history  is  obscure.  In  1888-  we  celebrated  in  Savannah  the 
centennial  of  our  denomination,  which  dates  January  20,  1788, 
when  the  first  church  was  organized.  But  in  Savannah  there  are 
two  churches  claiming  the  paternity.  One  of  these  churches  is 
the  First  African  and  the  other  is  the  First  Bryan.  While 
there  may  be  dispute  as  to  which  of  these  churches  is  entitled 
to  the  honor  of  being  the  very  church  organized  in  1788,  there 
is  no  dispute  with  reference  to  the  spot  upon  which  the  first 
church  was  organized  and  the  date  of  the  organization.  My 
impression  is  that  at  even  an  earlier  date  than  this  a  colored 
church  was  in  existence  upon  some  island  not  far  distant  from 
Savannah. ' '  ^ 

3  In  the  "Silver  BlujBf  Church"  by  Kev.  Walter  H.  Brooks  this  divine 
says  "the  Negro  Baptist  Church  at  Silver  Bluflf,  S.  C,  was  organized  not 
earlier  than  1773,  not  later  than  1775." 


64  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

The  Pastor  of  the  First  Baptist  Church  of  Portsmouth,  Vir- 
ginia (white),  known  as  the  Court  Street  Baptist  Church,  was 
Reverend  Josiah  Bishop,  a  Negro.  He  succeeded  Reverend 
Thomas  Armstead  (white),  a  commissioned  officer  of  high  rank 
in  the  Revolutionary  War.  While  Mr.  Bishop's  ability  was  not 
questioned,  his  pastorate  for  obvious  reasons,  was  not  of  long 
duration.  He  went  North  and  organized  the  Abyssinian  Bap- 
tist Church  in  New  York  in  1803,  the  first  colored  Baptist 
Church  in  the  free  States.  From  this  church  the  other  colored 
Baptist  Churches  of  the  North  and  East  sprang. 

Of  the  churches  in  the  North,  first  was  Richard  Allen,  one 
of  the  leaders  in  the  Free  African  Society,  from  the  members 
of  which  came  the  leaders,  almost  the  organization  itself,  both 
of  the  Bethel  ]\Iethodist  and  the  St.  Thomas  Episcopal  Churches 
in  the  city  of  Philadelphia.  He  was  born  February  12,  1760,  a 
slave  in  Philadelphia.  At  an  early  age  he  gave  evidence  of  a 
high  order  of  talents  for  leadership.  He  was  converted  while 
quite  a  lad  and  licensed  to  preach  in  1782.  In  1797  he  was 
ordained  a  deacon  by  Bishop  Francis  Asbury,  who  had  been 
entrusted  by  John  Wesley  with  the  superintendence  of  the  work 
in  America.  He  possessed  talents  as  an  organizer  of  the  high- 
est order.  He  was  a  bom  leader,  an  almost  infallible  judge  of 
human  nature  and  w^as  actively  identified  with  everj^  forward 
movement  among  the  colored  people,  irrespective  of  denomi- 
nation. 

Absalom  Jones,  next  in  historical  importance,  was  born  a 
slave  at  Sussex,  Delaware,  November  6,  1746,  At  the  age  of 
sixteen  he  was  taken  to  Philadelphia.  He  was  married  in  1770, 
purchased  his  wife  and  afterwards  succeeded  in  obtaining  his 
own  liberty. 

James  Varick  was  born  January  10,  1768,  at  Newburg,  New 
York.  He  was  licensed  to  preach  in  1803  in  New  York,  and  was 
elected  and  consecrated  the  first  Superintendent  of  the  A.  M.  E. 


THE  NEGRO  CHURCH  65 

Zion  Church  in  June,  1821.  He  died  after  a  brief  administra- 
tion June  9,  1827.  He  was  one  of  the  colored  men  members  of 
the  Methodist  Episcopal  Church  in  New  York  who  were  per- 
mitted to  hold  meetings  under  their  own  auspices  in  1796,  and 
was  one  of  the  first  elders  elected  when  the  first  steps  looking 
to  a  separate  and  independent  organization  of  the  colored  mem- 
bership in  New  York  was  taken. 

Rev.  John  Gloucester,  the  first  colored  minister  to  act  as 
pastor  of  a  colored  Presbyterian  Church,  possessed  a  fair  English 
education  which  he  received  from  private  sources.  He  was  a 
pioneer  of  Presbyterian  ministers,  as  four  of  his  sons,  Jeremiah, 
John,  Stephen  and  James,  became  Presbyterian  ministers,  and 
from  the  Sunday  School  of  his  church  three  other  well-known 
ministers  went  forth,  Rev.  Amos  to  Africa,  Rev.  H.  M.  Wilson 
to  New  York  and  Rev.  Jonathan  C.  Gibbs,  who  died  in  Florida, 
after  having  been  Secretary  of  State  and  State  Superintendent 
of  Schools.  Like  Allen  and  Jones,  Mr.  Gloucester  was  born  a 
slave,  in  Kentucky  about  the  year  1776.  Such  was  his  intelli- 
gence that  he  was  purchased  by  Rev.  Gideon  Blackburn,  of  the 
Presbyterian  denomination  also  of  Kentucky.  The  records  show 
that  when  Mr.  Gloucester  was  ordained  Dr.  Blackburn  was  the 
moderator  of  the  presbytery,  who  on  the  appointment  of  Rev. 
Gloucester  to  the  First  African  Presbyterian  Church  liberated 
him.  He  died  May  2,  1822,  after  fifteen  years  of  service  in  the 
church,  during  which  time  it  rapidly  increased  in  numbers  from 
twenty-two  to  three  hundred.  With  the  increase  of  the  colored 
population  and  its  distribution  to  other  centers,  other  religious 
societies  sprang  up,  so  that  wherever  you  find  any  number  of 
these  people  in  the  earlier  decades  of  the  Republic  you  will 
find  a  church,  often  churches,  out  of  all  proportion  to  the  popula- 
tion. 

In  the  West,  it  may  be  stated,  that  colored  churches  were 
not  the  result  of  secessions  or  irregular,  wholesale  withdrawals 


66  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

from  the  white  churches  as  in  the  East.  They  sprang  up  di- 
rectly in  the  path  of  the  westward  migration  of  colored  people 
from  the  South  and  the  East. 

In  the  South,  the  whites  were  in  complete  and  absolute  con- 
trol, in  church  as  in  State.  Colored  people  attended  and  held 
membership  in  the  same  church  as  the  whites;  though  they  did 
not  possess  the  same  rights  or  privileges.  They  either  had 
special  services  at  stated  times  or  they  sat  in  the  galleries. 
When  this  colored  membership  increased  to  very  large  numbers 
separate  churches  for  rather  than  of  the  colored  people  were 
established.  In  the  South  as  in  the  North,  this  membership  was 
principally  in  the  Baptist  and  Methodist  Churches,  and  to  these 
denominations  did  these  separate  colored  churches  belong,  with 
exceptions  so  rare  that  they  may  be  named  as  to  cities  or  dis- 
tricts where  it  was  otherwise.  Outside  of  the  few  ministers  of 
the  A.  M.  E.  and  the  A.  M.  E.  Zion  Churches  in  the  border 
States,  it  is  doubtful  if  there  were  a  score  of  colored  pastors  in 
full  control  of  colored  churches  in  the  South  before  the  Civil 
War. 

There  were  a  few  other  colored  ministers  not  pastors  of  any 
historic  churches  yet  who  were  so  very  conspicuous  by  their 
work  as  pioneers  as  to  deserve  special  notice.  There  were  Harry 
Hosier,  who  accompanied  Bishop  Asbuiy,  frequently  filling  ap- 
pointments for  him.  Rev.  Daniel  Coker  of  Baltimore  and  Rev. 
Peter  Spencer  of  Delaware  who  organized  the  "Protestant" 
branch  of  colored  Methodism.  There  was  the  Rev.  George  Liele, 
a  native  of  Virginia,  the  slave  or  body  servant  of  a  British  officer 
during  the  Revolutionary  War.  Throughout  that  struggle  he 
preached  in  different  parts  of  the  country.  Rev.  Andrew  Bryan 
whom  Liele  had  baptized  became  pastor  of  the  Savannah  Church. 
Compelled  to  leave  the  United  States  at  the  close  of  the  war, 
Liele  went  to  Jamaica,  in  which  he  organized  in  1783  a  church 
with  four  members.  By  1790  he  had  baptized  more  than  four 
hundred  persons  on  that  island.     In  1793  he  built  there  the  very 


THE  NEGRO  CHURCH  67 

first  non-Episcopal  religious  chapel,  to  which  there  were  belong- 
ing in  1841,  3700  members.  That  white  Baptist  missionaries 
subsequently  went  to  the  West  Indies  is  to  be  attributed  to  Rev. 
Liele's  work,  for  they  were  brought  there  as  a  direct  result  of 
his  correspondence  with  ecclesiastical  authorities  in  Great  Brit- 
ain. 

Next  we  have  Lott  Carey,  also  a  native  of  Virginia,  bom  a 
slave  in  Charles  City  Co.,  about  1780.  In  1804  Lott  removed 
to  Richmond  where  he  worked  in  a  tobacco  factory  and  from 
all  accounts  was  very  profligate  and  wicked.  In  1807,  being 
converted,  he  joined  the  First  Baptist  Church,  learned  to  read, 
made  rapid  advancement  as  a  scholar  and  was  shortly  afterwards 
licensed  to  preach.  After  purchasing  his  family  in  1813,  he 
organized  in  1815  the  African  Missionary  Society,  the  very  first 
missionaiy  society  in  the  country,  and  within  five  years  raised 
seven  hundred  dollars  for  African  Missions.  He  was  a  man  of 
superior  intellect  and  force  of  character  with  a  wide  range  of 
reading.  When  he  decided  to  go  to  Africa  his  employers  offered 
to  raise  his  salary  from  eight  hundred  to  one  thousand  dollars 
a  year.  Carey  was  not  induced  by  such  a  flattering  offer,  for 
he  was  determined.  His  last  sermon  in  the  Old  First  Church 
in  Richmond  was  compared  by  an  eye-witness,  a  resident  of 
another  State,  to  the  burning,  eloquent  appeals  of  George  White- 
field.  He  was  the  leader  of  the  pioneer  colony  to  Liberia,  where 
he  arrived  even  before  the  agent  of  the  Colonization  Society. 
In  his  new  home  he  was  made  the  Vice-Governor  of  the  colony, 
and  became  Governor  in  fact  while  Gov.  Ashmun  was  tempo- 
rarily absent  in  this  country.  Carey  did  not  allow  his  position 
to  betray  the  cause  of  his  people,  for  he  did  not  hesitate  to 
expose  the  duplicity  of  the  Colonization  Society  and  even  defy 
their  authority,  it  would  seem,  in  the  interests  of  the  people. 
While  casting  cartridges  to  defend  the  colonists  against  the 
natives  in  1828,  the  accidental  upsetting  of  a  candle  caused  an 
explosion  that  resulted  in  his  death. 


68  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

Special  reference  must  also  be  made  to  the  Rev.  John  Chavis 
of  North  Carolina,  the  first  colored  man  ordained  to  the  Presby- 
terian ministry.  Dr.  Alexander,  subsequently  professor  at 
Princeton  College,  had  urged  his  selection  as  pastor  at  the  church 
in  Philadelphia.  There  is  a  conflict  of  statement  as  to  where  he 
obtained  his  education,  but  it  is  certain,  as  the  sequel  showed, 
that  it  must  have  been  thorough  and  universally  recognized 
by  the  whites  as  being  the  very  best. 

Several  years  ago  an  elderly  lady,  the  niece  of  Rev.  Chavis,^ 
gave  the  writer  the  information  that  he  attended  or  graduated 
from  the  Hampden  Sidne.y  College,  Va,,  during  or  shortly  after 
the  Revolutionary  War.  Elsewhere  the  statement  is  given  that 
he  was  once  at  Princeton  Seminarj^  New  Jersey,  and  the  fact 
that  Dr.  Alexander  urged  his  claims  for  the  church  in  Phila- 
delphia to  which  Rev.  Gloucester  was  appointed,  gives  color  to 
the  statement  as  to  his  stay  at  Princeton,  but  it  is  not  conclusive 
as  to  his  status  in  that  institution.  In  the  History  of  Education 
in  North  Carolina,  published  by  the  U.  S.  Bureau  of  Education, 
four  octavo  pages  are  given  to  a  biographical  sketch  of  this  same 
Rev.  John  Chavis,  for  he  was  the  principal  of  the  best  academy 
in  the  State  of  North  Carolina  for  the  training  of  white  youth. 
Many  of  the  most  eminent  men  in  the  service  of  the  State  and 
the  Nation  of  the  sons  of  North  Carolina  were  trained  by  this 
Negro,  and  they  boarded  at  his  house  too  while  they  were  being 
educated.  In  the  historical  publications  of  the  University  of 
North  Carolina  is  quite  an  interesting  biographical  account  of 
Rev.  Chavis  and  his  school.  He  preached  frequently  in  the  white 
churches  throughout  the  State,  during  which  time  he  was  often 
a  guest  at  the  firesides  of  the  most  aristocratic  families  of  that 
noble  State,  not  staying  in  the  kitchen,  but  eating  at  the  same 
table  with  them.  His  last  sermon,  preached  about  1837  when  he 
formally  retired  from  public  life,  was  published  in  pamphlet 
form  and  had  a  Tvade  sale. 

*Mrs.  Thomas  James,  Sr.,  Washington,  D.  C. 


THE  NEGRO  CHURCH  69 

Although  the  colored  churches  sprang  up  individually,  since 
similar  causes  operated  on  them,  they  could  not  long  remain 
apart.  Accordingly  in  1816  the  A.  M.  E,  denomination  as 
previously  stated,  was  organized  by  a  convention  in  Philadelphia, 
with  Richard  Allen  as  the  first  bishop.  Those  Methodist 
Churches  which  followed  the  leadership  of  Zion  Church  in  New 
York  City,  in  1820  held  a  convention  and  organized  the  A.  M.  E. 
Zion  Church  and  after  having  first  had  a  white  superintendent, 
in  1832  elected  one  of  their  number,  Rev.  James  Varick,  as  their 
Superintendent.  These  two  organizations  organized  conferences 
and  pushed  their  work  throughout  the  North,  so  that  up  to  the 
war  they  were  found  in  nearly  every  State  in  which  there  were 
any  considerable  number  of  colored  people. 

The  Presbyterian  and  Baptist  Churches  for  two  reasons  con- 
tinued isolated  much  longer.  In  the  first  place  the  former  de- 
nomination was  exceedingly  weak  numerically,  and  so  was  the 
latter  denomination  in  the  North  as  compared  with  the  Meth- 
odists, and  their  form  of  government  being  congregational,  each 
church  was  a  law  to  itself  and  there  was  less  necessity  for  co- 
operation. The  Episcopalians  were  fewer  still. 
'^  In  1837  the  Louisiana  Baptist  Association  was  organized  by 
Rev.  Joseph  Willis,  termed  a  mulatto,  and  in  1838  the  Wood 
River  Association  was  organized  in  Illinois.  From  this  body  in 
1853  there  was  organized  the  Western  Baptist  Convention,  which 
in  1864  developed  into  the  Northwestern  and  Southern  Baptist 
Convention. 

The  Civil  War  over,  a  great  impetus  was  given  to  the  establish- 
ment of  colored  churches  North  as  well  as  South.  There  was 
an  opening  at  the  South  for  hundreds  to  fill  pulpits.  Thousands 
of  the  race  at  the  South  left  for  the  North,  giving  new  life  and 
vigor  to  the  old  churches  and  organizing  new  ones.  At  the 
South  churches  were  organized  in  large  numbers.  Among  the 
Baptists,  associations  and  conventions  sprang  up  everyw^here  to 
promote  their  denominational  interests.     Conferences  came  into 


70  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

being  as  pioneer  bishops,  A.  M.  E.  and  A.  M.  E.  Zion,  strode 
through  the  Southland  "to  seek  their  brethren."  Nor  were 
other  interests  idle.  Schools  were  established  by  charitable  and 
religious  organizations  of  the  North  and  in  their  wake  came 
Congregational,  Presbyterian  and  Episcopal  churches. 

* '  The  first  State  Convention  of  colored  Baptists  was  organized 
in  North  Carolina  in  1866 ;  the  second  in  Alabama  and  the  third 
in  Virginia  in  1867 ;  the  fourth  in  Arkansas  in  1868  and  the 
fifth  in  Kentucky  in  1869.  To-day  (1890)  there  are  colored  con- 
ventions in  fifteen  states." 

As  an  illustration  of  the  growth  and  development  of  the 
national  organization  among  the  Baptists  under  the  condition 
of  freedom,  the  American  National  Baptist  Convention  was 
organized  August  25,  1866,  the  Baptist  African  Missionary  Con- 
vention of  the  Western  States  and  Territories  organized  January 
15,  1873,  the  Baptist  Foreign  Missionary  Convention  of  the 
United  States,  organized  December,  1880 ;  last  but  not  least,  the 
Baptist  Educational  Convention  in  1892. 

Under  the  fostering  influences  of  these  organizations,  associ- 
ations and  conventions  among  the  Baptists,  conferences,  annual 
and  general,  among  the  Methodists,  presbyteries  and  synods 
among  the  Presbyterians,  congresses  of  the  colored  Catholics  and 
Episcopal  churches,  we  have  a  showing  as  phenomenal  as  that 
of  the  growth  of  the  American  Negro  in  education  and  the 
accumulation  of  property. 


XVII 

RETROSPECT  AND   PROSPECT  

The  failure  of  the  Republican  Party  in  the  administration  of 
Benjamin  Harrison  to  safeguard  the  exercise  by  the  Negro  of  the 
right  of  franchise  in  the  South,  followed  by  the  revision  of 
the  Constitution  of  Mississippi  in  1890,  was  notice  to  the  op- 
ponents of  Negro  citizenship  especially  in  view  of  the  adverse 
decisions  of  the  United  States  Supreme  Court,  that  they  could 
have  a  free  hand  in  dealing  with  the  interpretation  of  the  14th 
and  15th  Amendments  and  the  legislation  based  thereon. 

They  did  not  as  a  rule  openly  avow  a  purpose  to  attack  the 
amendments,  but  pretended  that  their  sole  object  was  to  raise 
the  standard  of  the  electorate  by  rescuing  it  from  the  control  of 
the  vicious  and  the  ignorant.  Following  the  Mississippi  plan 
other  Southern  States  revised  their  constitutions  until  to-day 
the  Fifteenth  Amendment  is  a  dead  letter  in  the  States  South 
of  the  Potomac  River.  Laws  establishing  separate  cars  on  the 
common  carriers,  popularly  known  as  "Jim  Crow"  car  laws, 
were  enacted  throughout  the  same  section. 

Inferior  educational  facilities  in  the  schools  for  the  Negro  were 
still  further  curtailed,  going  even  so  far  in  the  city  of  New 
Orleans,  as  to  make  no  provision  for  colored  youth  beyond  the 
fifth  grade.  The  extent  of  the  disparity  betw^een  colored  and 
white  schools  is  difficult  to  prove  by  the  record,  because  the 
absence  of  separate  statistical  reports  of  the  costs  of  each  race 
prevents  a  comparative  showing  of  the  per  capita  cbst,  salaries 
and  equipment  for  colored  and  white  education.  The  propa- 
ganda which  has  accomplished  these  results  has  included  such 

71 


72  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

men  as  Thomas  Dixon  in  private  life,  Benjamin  Tillman,  Hoke 
Smith  and  J.  A.  Vardaman  in  the  political  arena.  The  press  of 
many  metropolitan  newspapers,  through  men  of  Southern  birth, 
training  and  traditions  and  by  means  of  bold  headlines,  exag- 
gerating the  weaknesses  of  the  Negro  and  concealing  and  ignoring 
his  commendable  progress,  except  where  it  is  absolutely  impos- 
sible to  do  otherwise,  is  a  most  important  factor. 

For  a  long  time  there  was  no  voice  raised  in  protest  which 
the  Nation  could  or  would  hear.  Some  organizations  in  which 
Southern  whites  have  leadership  have  aimed  to  promote  the 
educational  interests  of  the  race,  but  scarce  a  voice  of  protest 
was  raised  against  the  prevailing  and  popular  tendencies  when 
the  second  Mississippi  plan  was  introduced. 

Frequent  IjTichings,  many  of  them  by  burning  at  the  stake 
were  chronicled  in  the  newspapers  of  the  country,  and  directly 
and  by  innuendo  the  charge  of  rape  was  held  against  the  Negro. 
Public  sentiment  gradually  became,  from  being  sympathetic, 
hostile  to  the  Negro;  even  the  great  Republican  Party  became 
indifferent  and  at  times  seemed  to  indorse  the  Southern  reaction- 
ary plan.  Finally  President  W.  H.  Taft  announced  in  his  in- 
augural address,  March  4,  1909,  a  line  of  policy  which  was  a  com- 
plete surrender  to  the  Southern  view  respecting  the  equal  citizen- 
ship of  the  Negro.  This  was  an  avowed  public  policy  in  the 
centennial  year  of  the  birth  of  Abraham  Lincoln,  the  Emanci- 
pator. 

This  also  illustrates  how  perplexing  are  the  problems  of  the 
evolution  of  Negro  citizenship  at  the  close  of  the  first  decade  of 
the  20th  century.  The  era  of  safeguarding  his  rights  and  privi- 
leges by  the  agencies  of  constitutional  amendments  and  statutory 
provisions,  it  has  been  cited,  passed  with  the  close  of  the  nine- 
teenth century,  so  far  as  there  are  present  indications.  But 
such  constructive  tendencies  for  the  amelioration  of  his  social, 
material,  even  his  political  condition,  as  the  Business  Men's 
League,  the  National  Medical  Association  and  Educational  Con- 


EETKOSPECT  AND  PROSPECT         73 

ventions,  and  organized  sociological  movements,  give  a  rift  in  the 
sky.  Under  the  advancement  of  these  movements  there  are  more 
than  a  score  of  men — women  too — destined  to  have  as  salutary 
an  influence  in  the  progress  and  advancement  of  the  race  as  the 
men  and  women  who  became  eminent  before  the  Civil  War  and 
the  Reconstruction  period  when  there  was  a  sympathetic  body  of 
white  men  and  women  that  could  be  relied  on  to  advance  the 
growth  and  maintenance  of  a  public  sentiment  that  promoted 
freedom  and  enfranchisement. 

In  the  profession  of  medicine  and  surgery,  Dr.  Daniel  H. 
Williams  of  Chicago,  Dr.  Marcus  F.  Wheatland  of  Newport,  R.  I., 
Dr.  Solomon  C.  Fuller  of  the  Hospital  for  the  Insane  of  Massa- 
chusetts and  Dr.  C.  V.  Roman  of  Nashville,  Tenn.,  have  more 
than  a  local  recognition  as  experts  in  their  chosen  profession. 

In  law,  Ashbie  W.  Hawkins  of  Baltimore,  who  has  thus  far 
demonstrated  his  capacity  in  the  highest  courts  of  Maryland ;  Ed- 
ward H.  IVIorris  in  the  leading  bar  of  the  West,  and  William  H. 
H.  Hart  of  the  District  of  Columbia  and  Josiah  T.  Settle  of  Mem- 
phis, Tenn.,  have  demonstrated  the  ability  of  the  Negro  lawyer 
in  the  higher  realms  of  the  profession.  As  educational  adminis- 
trators with  independent  institutions.  Dr.  John  Hope  of  More- 
house College,  R.  R.  Wright  of  Georgia  State  College,  Inman 
E.  Page  of  Langston  University,  Bishop  George  W.  Clinton, 
William  A.  Joiner  of  Wilberforce  University,  W.  S.  Scarborough, 
and  Joshua  H.  Jones,  now  an  A.  M.  E.  Bishop,  have  demonstrated 
the  executive  ability  of  which  successful  college  Presidents  are 
made.  Two  women  have  displayed  in  this  same  field  capabilities 
which  spell  academic  success — Lucy  Laney,  who  founded  the 
Haines  Institute  at  Augusta,  Ga.,  and  Nannie  H.  Burroughs,  who 
created  the  Girls'  National  Training  School  at  Lincoln  Heights, 
almost  within  the  shadow  of  the  National  Capitol  and  the  axis 
of  the  great  National  Lincoln  Monument. 

In  the  business  of  publishing,  R.  H.  Boyd  of  Nashville,  Tenn. 
and  Ira  T.  Bryant  have  achieved  flattering  success.     In  pure 


74  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

science,  E.  E.  Just  of  Howard  University  has  a  distinction  as  a 
biologist  in  a  field  in  which  the  lamented  Prof.  Earl  Finch 
of  Wilberforce  University  was  winning  international  reputa^ 
tion.  As  a  journalistic  controversialist,  John  E.  Bruce,  Presi- 
dent of  the  Negro  Society  for  Historical  Research,  has  a  reputa- 
tion that  is  conceded  wherever  the  Negro  race  has  a  conscious 
influence. 

The  sermons  of  Rev.  Francis  J.  Grimke  on  National  topics  are 
great  headlights  exhorting  to  higher  living  and  rebuking  national 
hypocrisy.  In  his  brother,  Archibald  H.  Grimke,  President  of 
the  American  Negro  Academy  and  Kelly  Miller,  of  Howard  Uni- 
versity, the  race  has  two  masters  of  criticism  and  controversy, 
both  of  offense  and  defense,  sterling  champions  of  the  integrity 
and  destiny  of  the  American  Negro.  In  the  field  of  letters  there 
are  Stanley  G.  Brathwaite,  the  poet,  Charles  W.  Chesnutt,  the 
novelist,  and  Dr.  William  E,  Burghardt  DuBois,  sociologist  and 
editor ;  R.  R.  Wright,  Jr.,  and  M.  N.  Work,  sociologists  and  stat- 
isticians. In  journalism,  John  Mitchell  is  unique — publisher 
and  banker.  As  a  business  genius,  Charles  Banks  amid  the 
bayous  of  Mississippi,  and  W.  R.  Pettiford,  of  Birmingham,  have 
solved  the  problem  of  industrial  credits. 

T.  Thomas  Fortune  and  William  Monroe  Trotter  diametrical  in 
methods  and  manners  are  both  exemplifications  of  the  power  of 
Negro  journalism. 

But  even  the  array  of  such  a  coterie  of  capable  men  and 
women  seems  futile  in  the  face  of  the  unanimity  of  the  ruling 
classes  of  the  South  and  the  acquiescence  of  the  North  in  the 
policy  and  program  of  the  South.  Fortunately,  over  and  against 
the  politicians  of  the  South  as  represented  by  those  who  have 
infused  the  poison  of  their  pernicious  principles  in  the  body 
politic,  retarding,  postponing  the  realization  of  the  blessings  of 
liberty  to  all  regardless  of  race,  there  has  been  a  quiet  band  of 
white  Southern  thinkers  who  have  introduced  the  leaven  of  hu- 
mane principles  in  accord  wdth  the  Federal  Constitution,  the 


RETROSPECT  AND  PROSPECT        75 

brotherhood  of  man  and  true  Christianity.  They  deserve  es- 
pecial mention  here.  There  was  Attieus  G.  Haygood  who  in 
"Our  Brother  in  Black"  made  a  stirring  appeal  to  the  white  peo- 
ple of  the  South  for  fairness  of  treatment.  George  W.  Cable, 
native  and  to  the  manner  born,  while  still  a  resident  of  Louisiana, 
in  magazine  articles  and  books,  in  the  "Freedmen's  Case  in 
Equity,"  and  ''The  Silent  South,"  and  Lewis  H.  Blair  of  Rich- 
mond, Virginia,  a  representative  business  man,  in  ' '  The  Prosper- 
ity of  the  South  dependent  upon  the  elevation  of  the  Negro ' '  took 
the  most  advanced  ground  for  identical  treatment  by  the  State 
and  National  Government  to  all  classes  of  citizens.  Rev. 
Quincy  Ewing,  an  Episcopal  clergyman,  in  more  than  one 
sermon  delivered  in  the  heart  of  the  South  and  published  in 
Metropolitan  newspapers,  with  fiery  eloquence,  masterly  and 
fearlessly  has  contended  for  the  equal  citizenship  of  the  Negro. 
So  many  others  there  are  who  have  pleaded  for  the  extension  of 
educational  advantages  at  the  expense  of  the  property  of  the 
State  that  to  make  personal  mention  of  a  few  would  do  injustice 
to  all. 

But  the  operation  of  these  forces  to  transform  civil  and  politi- 
cal conditions  necessarily  would  be  slow  and  unsatisfactory. 
Unsatisfactory,  because  they  do  not  attack  the  vital  weakness  of 
the  situation,  the  moral  cowardice  of  the  Republican  Party  when 
in  power,  and  the  aggressive  policy  of  the  Democratic  Party  as 
shown  by  their  advocacies  when  in  control,  in  the  matter  of  Negro 
citizenship,  which  is  the  crux  of  the  whole  Southern  problem. 
It  all  depends  on  whether  or  not  the  Negro  is  an  equal  citizen 
that  there  is  any  real  difficulty  at  issue,  anything  requiring  ad- 
justment. 

The  Constitutional  League  took  a  step  in  advance  of  other 
movements  in  raising  funds  for  the  enforcement  of  the  laws 
through  an  appeal  to  the  Federal  Courts,  and  in  carrying  to  a 
final  issue  without  the  heralding  of  trumpets,  tests  to  invoke 
the  Federal  Constitution  for  the  Negro's  protection. 


76  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

The  National  Society  for  the  Improvement  of  the  Colored  Peo- 
ple, however,  has  the  most  comprehensive  program.  By  means 
of  a  national  organization  with  affiliated  branches  located  at 
various  centers  of  population  and  a  bureau  of  publicity,  a  syste- 
matic attempt  is  made  to  secure  a  recognition  of  the  rights  of  the 
Negro  through  the  courts  and  friendly  legislation  and  the  liber- 
alization of  public  sentiment.  In  method  it  closely  follows  the 
spirit  of  the  Anti-Slavery  Society  which  eighty  years  ago  began 
the  aggressive  work  against  the  existence  of  chattel  slavery;  a 
work  which  it  kept  up  for  thirty  years  until  the  Emancipation 
Proclamation  of  Abraham  Lincoln  was  issued  and  the  Thirteenth 
Amendment  to  the  National  Constitution  was  assured.  With  this 
definite  cause  of  action  followed  with  the  intelligence,  vigor,  and 
persistence  of  the  movement  of  which  William  Lloyd  Garrison  is 
the  central  figure,  History  may  repeat  itself,  and  it  is  among  the 
possibilities  that  the  apostle  of  this  new  movement  may  be  Os- 
wald Garrison  Villard. 


XVIII 

PHILLIS  WHEATLEY 

While  the  United  States  of  America  were  subject  to  Great 
Britain  the  descendants  of  Africa  in  America  were  either  slaves 
or  the  children  of  slaves,  and,  except  in  rare  cases,  were  Negroes, 
that  is,  they  had  little  or  no  traces  of  white  blood  in  their  veins. 
Only  a  few  generations  prior  to  the  Revolutionary  War  a  min- 
ister of  the  gospel  of  respectable  ability  (Morgan  Godwyn),  had 
actually  written  a  book  to  prove  that  the  Negro  should  not  be 
used  as  a  beast  of  burden  without  causing  remorse  of  con- 
science. 

It  was  at  this  period  that  the  intellectual  and  social  circles 
of  both  New  and  Old  England  had  a  revelation  in  the  person  of  a 
native  of  Africa  of  pleasing  personal  appearance,  of  charming 
conversational  qualities,  an  easy  and  accomplished  correspondent, 
one  who  could  write  pleasing  verses  of  poetry  that  were  compli- 
mented for  their  grace  and  elegance,  if  not  for  their  depth  and 
profundity  of  thought. 

This  phenomenon  was  Phillis  Wheatley  who  was  brought  to 
this  country  from  Africa  in  1761,  when  about  seven  years  of  age 
and  sold  in  the  streets  of  Boston  as  a  slave  to  Mr.  John  Wheatley, 
a  prosperous  tailor  and  the  owner  of  several  other  slaves.  He 
desired  her  as  a  personal  attendant  of  his  wife,  as  a  maid  to 
wait  on  her  in  her  old  age.  It  was  the  humble  and  modest  de- 
meanor, especially  the  pleasing  expression  of  the  young  child, 
that  attracted  Mr.  Wheatley 's  attention. 

As  she  had  been  torn  from  her  home,  ten  thousands  of  miles  dis- 
tant, it  was  not  to  be  expected  that  she  had  a  very  elaborate 

77 


78  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

wardrobe — in  fact,  she  had  the  scantiest  of  clothing,  an  old  piece 
of  carpet  forming  her  only  dress. 

When  installed  in  Mr.  Wheatley  's  home  the  uncommon  intelli- 
gence of  the  slave  girl  was  displayed  in  her  frequent  attempts  to 
make  letters  upon  the  wall  with  pieces  of  chalk  or  charcoal.  A 
daughter  of  Mrs.  Wheatley  observing  her  precocity  undertook 
her  education  and  was  astonished  by  her  intelligence,  and  by 
the  ease  and  rapidity  with  which  Phillis  learned.  She  mastered 
the  language  in  sixteen  months ;  carried  on  with  her  friends  and 
acquaintances  an  extensive  and  elegant  correspondence  while  but 
twelve  years  of  age;  composed  her  first  poem  at  fourteen,  be- 
came a  proficient  Latin  scholar  at  seventeen,  and  an  authoress  at 
nineteen,  when  we  are  told  that  she  published  her  first  collection 
of  poems. 

Although  originally  intended  for  menial  pursuits,  she  was 
reared  as  a  member  of  the  family  and  not  permitted  to  associate 
with  the  other  family  servants.  With  her  growth  in  years  her 
mind  expanded  and  such  was  her  progress  in  her  studies  that  she 
drew  the  attention  of  a  large  circle  of  the  most  cultured  people  of 
Boston,  who  encouraged  her  by  their  association  and  their  com- 
panionship. 

At  the  early  age  of  sixteen  she  was  admitted  by  baptism  into 
the  membership  of  the  Old  South  Church  of  which  Rev.  Samuel 
Sewall  was  pastor.  Her  record  as  a  church  member  accorded 
with  her  reputation  in  society,  in  which  her  humility  of  charac- 
ter, her  elevated  tone  of  thought  and  her  consistent  life  made 
her  a  shining  light.  Her  devout  Christian  character  displayed 
itself  not  only  in  some  of  her  poems,  but  in  her  private  corre- 
spondence.    In  one  of  her  early  poems  she  says — 

"  'Twas  Mercy  brought  me  from  my  pagan  laud, 
Taught  my  benighted  soul  to  landerstand 
That  there's  a  God,  that  there's  a  Saviour  too ; 
Once  I  redemption  neither  sought  nor  knew, 


PHILLIS  WHEATLEY  79 

Some  view  our  sable  race  with  scornful  eye — 
'Their  color  is  a  diabolic  dye.' 

"Remember,  Christians,  Negroes  black  as  Cain, 
May  be  reiined  and  join  th'  angelic  train." 

Unlike  very  many  persons  who  suddenly  become  famous  in 
literary  circles,  she  was  not  given  to  moods  or  sullenness.  On 
the  other  hand,  she  was  accommodating,  ever  ready  and  willing 
to  receive  all  who  called  on  her  and  to  give  an  example  of  her 
marvelous  gifts. 

The  subjects  on  which  she  wrote  showed  not  only  a  wide  range 
of  reading,  but  an  originality  of  treatment  that  established  her 
right  to  be  considered  as  one  of  the  famous  women  of  her  time. 
The  opinion  is  well  supported  that  her  knowledge  of  composition 
and  the  use  of  a  correct  style  was  the  result  of  a  familiarity  with 
the  best  English  writers  and  her  association  with  the  most  culti- 
vated people  of  the  time,  rather  than  as  the  result  of  any  sys- 
tematic instruction  in  English  composition.  Frequent  classical 
allusions  in  her  poems  display  fondness  for  early  Roman  and 
Grecian  historj^  Readers  of  Virgil  may  note  the  influence  of  the 
Bard  of  Mantua  in  her  '  *  Ode  to  Washington. ' ' 

In  his  ''Colored  Patriots  of  the  Revolution,"  published  more 
than  fifty  years  ago,  William  C.  Nell,  himself  a  colored  author, 
says:  "There  is  another  circumstance  respecting  her  habits  of 
composition.  She  did  not  seem  to  have  the  power  of  retaining 
the  creations  of  her  own  fancy  for  a  long  time  in  her  mind.  If 
during  the  vigil  of  a  wakeful  night  she  amused  herself  by  weav- 
ing a  tale  she  knew  nothing  of  it  in  the  morning — it  had  vanished 
in  the  land  of  dreams.  Her  kind  mistress  indulged  her  with  a 
light,  and  in  the  cold  season  with  a  fire  in  her  apartment,  dur- 
ing the  night.  The  light  was  placed  upon  a  table  at  her  bedside, 
with  writing  materials  so  that,  if  anything  occurred  to  her  after 
she  had  retired,  she  might  without  rising  or  taking  cold  secure 
the  swift-winged  fancy  ere  it  fled. ' ' 


80  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

In  the  winter  of  1773,  at  the  age  of  twenty,  a  sea  voyage  being 
advised,  owing  to  her  declining  health,  she  accompanied  a  sol 
of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Wheatley  to  England.  She  was  then  at  the 
height  of  her  fame.  Her  reputation  had  preceded  her.  She  was 
cordially  received  by  Lady  Huntingdon,  George  Whitefield,  the 
great  evangelist,  Lord  Dartmouth,  after  whom  Dartmouth  Col- 
lege is  named,  the  Lord  Mayor  of  London  and  other  persons  of 
the  highest  social  position;  but  this  popularity  did  not  turn  her 
head.  During  her  stay  in  England  the  first  bound  volume  of  her 
poems  was  published  and  dedicated  to  the  Countess  of  Hunting- 
don. A  copper-plate  engraving  of  the  authoress  appears,  show- 
ing her  in  the  attitude  of  meditation  with  her  writing  materials 
at  her  side.  So  true  to  life  was  this  picture  that  when  Mrs. 
Wheatlej^  first  saw  a  copy  of  the  book  she  exclaimed :  ' '  See ! 
look  at  my  Phillis — !  Does  she  not  seem  as  though  she  would 
speak  to  me?"  Arrangements  had  been  made  for  the  formal 
presentation  of  Phillis  to  George  III,  the  reigning  monarch,  on 
his  return  to  his  court  at  St.  James,  but  she  was  hurried  home 
from  Europe  because  of  the  tidings  of  the  declining  health  of  her 
mistress  and  benefactor,  whose  eyes  after  the  return  of  Phillis 
were  soon  closed  in  death.  Mr.  Wheatley  survived  his  wife  by 
nine  days. 

In  the  next  month  Phillis  entered  on  another  experience. 
Shortly  after  her  return  from  Europe  she  had  received  an  offer 
of  marriage  from  John  Peters,  said  to  be  a  handsome  and  at- 
tractive gentleman  of  color  who  kept  at  one  time  a  grocery,  later 
was  employed  as  a  journeyman  baker,  and  also  tried  to  practice 
law  and  medicine,  but  who  was  utterly  unworthy  of  so  rare  and 
precious  a  human  jewel  as  Phillis  Wheatley.  The  marriage  seems 
to  have  proven,  it  is  written,  an  unfortunate  if  not  an  unhappy 
one.  Another  source  thus  speaks  of  John  Peters:  "He  was  a 
man  of  talents  and  information ;  that  he  wrote  with  fluency  and 
propriety,  and  at  one  period  read  law.  It  is  admitted,  however, 
that  he  was  disagreeable  in  his  manners,  and  that  on  account  of 


PHILLIS  WHEATLEY  81 

his  improper  conduct  Phillis  became  entirely  estranged  from  the 
Vijmmediate  family  of  the  Wheatleys.  They  were  not  seasonably 
informed  of  her  suffering  condition  or  of  her  death. ' ' 

Regarding  these  two  estimates,  it  is  a  most  reasonable  in- 
ference that  the  devotion  of  his  wife  to  him  and  the  death  of  both 
Mr.  and  Mrs.  "Wheatley,  as  well  as  the  personal  pride  which  Mr. 
Peters  as  a  freeman  of  color  naturally  possessed,  may  have  had 
not  a  little  to  do  with  these  opinions. 

Three  children  were  bom  to  the  young  family,  and  all  of  them 
died  in  infancy.  Unknown  to  her  large  circle  of  friends  Phillis 
passed  quietly  away  December  5,  1784.  The  Independent 
Chronicle  gave  the  news  to  the  world  in  the  following  para- 
graph : 

''Last  Lord's  Day  died  Mrs.  Phillis  Peters  (formerly  Phillis 
"Wheatley)  age  31,  known  to  the  literary  world  by  her  celebrated 
miscellaneous  poems.  Her  funeral  is  to  be  this  afternoon  at 
four  o'clock  from  the  house  lately  improved  by  Mr.  Todd  nearly 
opposite  Dr.  Bulfinch  's  at  West  Boston,  where  her  friends  are  de- 
sired to  attend."  The  house  thus  referred  to  was  situated  on  or 
near  the  present  site  of  the  Revere  House  on  Bowdoin  Square, 
formerly  known  at  times  as  a  portion  of  Cambridge  Street  and 
sometimes  as  the  westerly  end  of  Court  Street. 

As  an  early  American  poet  Phillis  Wheatley  has  been  sneered 
at  these  later  years;  but  in  her  time  her  name  was  on  every 
tongue  and  her  merits  freely  acknowledged  by  competent  judges. 
In  the  edition  of  her  poems  published  in  Boston  in  1774  the  fol- 
lowing card,  issued  to  silence  criticism  and  objectors,  speaks  for 
itself :  *■*  We  whose  names  are  underwritten  do  assure  the  world 
that  the  poems  specified  in  the  following  pages  were  as  we  readily 
believe,  written  by  Phillis,  a  young  Negro  girl  who  was,  but  a  few 
years  since,  brought  an  uncultivated  barbarian  from  Africa,  and 
has  ever  since  been  and  now  is  under  the  disadvantage  of  serv- 
ing as  a  slave  in  a  family  in  this  town.  She  has  been  examined 
by  some  of  the  best  judges  and  is  thought  qualified  to  write 


82  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

them."  Among  the  signatures  are  those  of  Thomas  Hutchinson, 
then  Governor  of  Massachusetts,  Andrew  Oliver,  Lieutenant- 
Governor,  John  Hancock,  of  Revolutionary  fame,  and  John 
Wheatley,  her  master.  The  influence  of  her  name  and  fame  upon 
the  rapidly  gro\sdng  anti-slavery  sentiment  in  America  was  con- 
siderable, for  the  friends  of  the  people  of  color  took  pleasure  in 
pointing  to  her  career  as  an  illustration  of  the  possibilities  of  the 
Negro  under  kind  and  considerate  treatment  and  a  fair  oppor- 
tunity for  education.  She  was  the  very  first  of  her  race  in 
America  to  attract  attention  because  of  her  intellectual  and  moral 
character.  Benjamin  Banneker,  who  was  twenty  years  her 
senior,  had  not  compiled  and  published  the  almanac  which 
brought  him  to  general  notice  until  nearly  ten  years  after  Phillis 
had  died.  Richard  Allen  who  laid  the  foundation  of  the  great 
A.  M.  E.  Church  and  Absalom  Jones,  the  founder  of  the  first 
African  Episcopal  Church  of  St.  Thomas  in  Philadelphia,  as  well 
as  George  Liele,  the  colored  Baptist  revivalist  to  whose  activities 
the  colored  Baptist  Churches  at  Savannah  and  Augusta,  Georgia, 
owe  their  origin,  were  all  later  than  Phillis  "Wheatley  to  be  singled 
out  as  examples  of  the  possibilities  of  the  African  in  America. 
James  Durham,  the  celebrated  Negro  physician,  a  native  of 
Philadelphia,  and  whose  fame  was  established  by  his  professional 
success  in  New  Orleans,  though  about  the  same  age  as  Phillis 
Wheatley  did  not  rise  to  eminence  there  until  after  her  death. 
The  most  notable  fact  is  that  she  was  a  native  of  Africa  and — a 
woman.  As  woman  is  the  mother  of  the  race,  Phillis  Wheatley 's 
preeminence  among  the  representatives  of  her  race  stands  un- 
assailed  and  unassailable,  suggestive  and  significant,  a  fact  both 
pregnant  and  prophetic. 

Though  she  had  received  marked  attention  while  in  England, 
at  a  time  when  the  two  countries,  America  and  England,  were 
on  the  eve  of  war,  Phillis  Wheatley  was  loyal  to  the  colonies. 
That  she  shared  in  their  general  admiration  for  George  Washing- 


PHILLIS  WHEATLEY  83 

ton  this  correspondence  abundantly  proves.  In  a  letter  written 
to  him  from  Providence,  Rhode  Island,  under  date  of  October 
26, 1775,  she  says— 

Sir: 

I  have  taken  the  freedom  to  address  Your  Excellency  in  the  enclosed 
poem,  and  I  entreat  your  acceptance,  though  I  am  not  insensible  of  its 
inaccuracies.  Your  being  appointed  by  the  Grand  Continental  Con- 
gress to  be  generalissimo  of  the  Armies  of  North  America,  together 
with  the  fame  of  your  virtues  excite  sensations  not  easy  to  suppress. 
Your  generosity,  therefore,  I  presume,  wiU  pardon  the  attempt. 

Wishing  Your  Excellency  all  possible   success  in  the  gjeat  cause 
you  are  so  generously  engaged  in,  I  am  Your  Excellency's 
Most  Obedient  Humble  Servant, 

Phillis  Wheatley. 

Washin^on's  reply  was  characteristic  of  the  man.  He 
writes  as  follows: 

Cambiudge^  February  2,  1776. 

Miss  Phillis: 

Your  favor  of  the  26th  of  October  did  not  reach  my  hand  'till 
the  middle  of  December.  Time  enough,  you  say,  to  have  given  an 
answer  ere  this.  Granted.  But  a  variety  of  important  occurrences 
continually  iriteiposing  to  distract  the  mind  and  to  withdraw  the  at- 
tention, I  hope,  will  apologize  for  the  delay  and  plead  my  excuse  for 
the  seeming,  but  not  real  neglect.  1  thank  you  most  sincerely  for 
your  polite  notice  of  me,  in  the  elegant  lines  you  enclosed,  and  how- 
ever undeserving  I  may  be  of  such  encomium  and  panegyric,  the  style 
and  manner  exhibit  a  strikmg  proof  of  your  poetical  talents,  in  honor 
of  which,  and  as  a  tribute  justly  due  to  you,  1  would  have  published 
the  poem,  had  I  not  have  been  apprehensive  that  while,  I  only  meant  to 
give  the  world  this  new  instance  of  your  genius,  1  might  have  in- 
curred the  imputation  of  vanity.  This  and  nothing  else  determined 
me  not  to  give  it  place  in  the  public  prints. 

If  you  should  ever  come  to  Cambridge  or  near  headquarters,  1  shall 


84  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

be  happy  to  see  a  person  so  favored  by  the  muses,  and  to  whom  Nature 
has  been  so  liberal  and  beneficent  in  her  dispensations. 
I  am,  with  great  respect. 

Your  obedient  humble  servant, 

George  Washington. 

Jared  Sparks,  the  biographer  of  Washington,  thought  that  this 
poem  was  lost,  and  George  W.  WilUams,  the  Negro  historian, 
author  of  the  History  of  the  Negro  in  America,  being  unable  to 
produce  it  arrived  at  the  same  conclusion.  Fortunately,  how- 
ever, Washington's  modesty  in  refusing  it  publicity  lest  his  ene- 
mies might  charge  him  with  vanity  did  not  succeed  in  concealing 
the  poem  from  the  world;  for  it  appeared  in  the  Pennsylvania 
Magazine  or  American  Monthly  for  April,  1776,  a  publication  of 
which  there  are  very  few  copies  extant. 

Thus  runs  the  poem : 

Celestial  choir,  enthroned  in  realms  of  light, 
Columbia's  scenes  of  glorious  toils  I  ^vrite. 
While  Freedom's  cause  her  anxious  breast  alarms. 
She  flashes  dreadful  in  refulgent  arms. 


^&'- 


See  Mother  Earth  her  offspring's  fate  bemoan. 
And  Nations  gaze  at  scenes  before  unknown ; 
See  the  bright  beams  of  heaven's  revolving  light 
Involved  in  sorrows  and  the  veil  of  night ! 

The  goddess  comes,  she  moves  divinely  fair, 
Olive  and  laurel  binds  her  golden  hair; 
Wherever  shines  this  native  of  the  skies, 
Unnumbered  charms  and  recent  graces  rise. 

Muse !  bow  propitious  while  my  pen  relates 
How  pour  her  armies  through  a  thousand  gates; 
As  when  Eolus  heaven's  fair  face  deforms 
Enwrapped  in  tempest  and  a  night  of  storms; 


I 


PHILLIS  WHEATLEY  85 

Astonished  ocean  feels  the  wild  uproar, 
The  refluent  surges  beat  the  sounding  shore; 
Or  thick  as  leaves  in  autumn's  golden  reign, 
Such,  and  so  many,  moves  the  warrior's  train. 

In  bright  array  they  seek  the  work  of  war, 
Where  high  unfurled  the  ensign  waves  in  air. 
Shall  I  to  Washington  their  praise  recite? 
Enough  thou  know'st  them  in  the  fields  of  fight. 

Thee,  first  in  peace  and  honors,  we  demand 
The  grace  and  glory  of  thy  martial  band. 
Famed  for  thy  valor,  for  thy  virtues  more. 
Hear  every  tongue  thy  guardian  aid  implore! 

One  centui-y  scarce  perfoi-med  its  destined  round. 
When  Gallic  powers  Columbia's  fury  foimd; 
And  so  may  you,  whoever  dares  disgrace 
The  land  of  Freedom's  heaven-defended  race! 

Fixed  are  the  eyes  of  nations  on  the  scales, 
For  in  their  hopes  Columbia's  arm  prevails. 
Anon  Britannia  droops  the  pensive  head, 
While  round   increase  the  rising  hills  of  dead. 

Ah !  cruel  blindness  to  Columbia's  state ; 
Lament  thy  thirst  of  boundless  power  too  late. 
Proceed,  great  chief,  with  virtue  on  thy  side 
Thy  eveiy  action  let  the  goddess  guide, 

A  crown,  a  mansion,  and  a  throne  that  shine 
With  gold  unfading,  Washington,  be  thine ! 


XIX 

BENJAMIN  BANNEKER 

A  LITTLE  more  than  one  hundred  years  ago  a  black  prince 
arrived  on  the  shores  of  the  Chesapeake  Bay.  He  came  by 
compulsion,  not  by  choice;  he  was  brought  here  a  slave.  That 
he  was  no  ordinary  black  is  attested  by  the  fact  that  he  clung  to 
his  heathen  gods  and  refused  to  work  for  those  who  had  him  in 
control ;  yet,  he  was  of  noble  mien,  dignified  and  possessed  rare 
intelligence,  even  retaining  to  the  last  the  name  which  he  brought 
with  him  from  Africa — Banneker.^ 

In  the  same  year  in  which  WiUiam  Penn  established  his  colony 
on  the  banks  of  the  Delaware,  an  English  peasant  woman  having 
accidentally  spilled  a  can  of  milk — so  the  story  goes — was  charged 
with  and  found  guilty  of  stealing.  As  her  punishment  she  was 
transported  to  Maryland  where  she  was  bound  to  service  for  seven 
years,  a  mild  sentence  for  the  offense,  because  she  could  read.  A 
thrifty  woman  she  was  and  bought  a  small  farm  on  which  she 
subsequently  placed  Banneker,  the  exiled  black  African  prince. 

Though  he  would  not  work,  Banneker  touched  the  heart  of 
MoUy  Welsh  who  liberated  and  married  him. 

Four  children  was  the  result  of  this  union,  one  of  whom,  Mary 
Banneker,  was  married  about  the  year  1730  to  Robert,  a  native 
African  who  on  being  baptized  in  the  Episcopal  faith,  was  for- 
mally given  his  freedom.  Robert,  like  many  a  one  of  his  race  of 
whom  there  is  unfortunately  no  record,  did  not  take  the  name  of 
the  white  people  who  had  claimed  him  a  slave,  but  called  himself 
Banneker,  after  his  wife,  the  daughter  of  the  African  prince. 

1  Banaky. 

86 


BENJAMIN  BANNEKER  87 

Their  oldest  offspring,  Benjamin  Banneker,  was  born  November 
9,  1731,  just  about  three  months  before  George  Washington.  In 
the  year  1737  Robert  Banneker,  his  father,  purchased  for  the  sum 
of  seventeen  thousand  pounds  of  tobacco  a  farm  of  one  hundred 
acres.  It  was  in  a  primeval  wilderness,  though  only  ten  miles 
from  Baltimore,  then  a  village  of  less  than  thirty  houses.  Roads 
were  few,  houses  were  miles  and  miles  apart,  schools  and  churches 
were  exceedingly  scarce,  the  steam  whistle  had  not  yet  echoed 
through  the  valleys  nor  across  the  plains  of  that  primitive  coun- 
try, yet  there  were  a  few  private  schools,  and  to  one  of  these  the 
lad  Benjamin  w^as  sent. 

Here  he  w^as  a  most  apt  student  and  had  received  instruction 
as  far  as  * '  double  position, "  as  it  was  then  called,  proficiency  in 
which  even  a  century  later,  was  regarded  as  a  test  of  arithmetical 
skill,  and  to-day,  as  compound  proportion,  by  which  name  it  is 
now  known,  it  is  a  source  of  great  perplexity  to  pupils  in  our  ad- 
vanced grammar  schools.  This  was  the  limit  of  the  educational 
advantages  which  Banneker  received,  but  it  must  have  been  most 
thorough,  for  as  the  sequel  proved,  it  was  the  foundation  upon 
which  he  built  so  well  as  to  take  rank  with  the  greatest  scientific 
men  of  his  times,  to  achieve  a  world-wide  distinction  for  skill  as 
mathematician  and  astronomer  that  one  hundred  years  have  not 
obliterated.  Apart  from  his  studies,  his  life  was  not  eventful, 
yet  it  is  deserving  of  all  emulation.  The  oldest  and  only  son 
among  four  children,  he  assiduously  gave  his  service  on  his  farm 
even  after  he  had  attained  his  majority.  Upon  the  death  of  the 
father,  in  1757  (which  fact  is  learned  from  an  entry  in  Benja- 
min's Bible),  the  full  responsibility  of  the  management  of  the 
farm  fell  upon  him,  the  household  duties  being  performed  by 
Benjamin's  mother  whose  vigor  of  body  remained  until  she  was 
quite  advanced  in  years.  It  is  said  of  her  agility  that  even  when 
over  seventy  years  of  age  it  was  a  common  thing  for  her  to  run 
down  the  barn  yard  fowls  which  were  desired  for  the  table  or  for 
market. 


88  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

In  those  days  the  country^  stores  were  the  centers  of  informa- 
tion and  social  contact,  Plere  the  planters  brought  their  com, 
their  wheat,  their  tobacco,  for  sale  or  for  exchange ;  here  the  latest 
intelligence  from  London,  Boston  or  Philadelphia  was  obtained. 
The  country  store  also  contained  the  post-office  at  which  letters 
were  received  or  dispatched  at  the  weekly  or  monthly  mail.  Here 
the  weekly  newspaper,  of  which  there  were  only  two  at  that 
time  in  the  colony,  was  read  by  the  most  intelligent  and  the  af- 
fairs of  the  day  discussed.  Banneker,  himself  a  landed  pro- 
prietor, was  frequently  at  the  store  during  these  gatherings  at 
which  his  intelligent  conversation,  his  quiet  and  dignified  man- 
ner, and  his  accurate  information  on  current  affairs  made  him  a 
unique  but  welcome  visitor.  He  did  not  resort  there  to  the  neg- 
lect of  his  farm,  for  it  was  thoroughly  well-kept,  his  orchards 
abounded  in  fruit,  his  cattle  were  sleek  and  fat,  his  storehouse 
was  well  filled  with  grain  and  tobacco. 

It  was  in  his  early  manhood  about  1753  that  Banneker  having 
only  seen  a  watch,  with  it  for  a  model  constructed  a  wooden 
clock  all  the  parts  of  which — the  wheels,  the  springs,  the  bal- 
ances— were  the  result  of  his  own  ingenuity,  skill,  patience  and 
perseverance.  This  is  said  to  be  the  first  clock  ever  constructed 
in  America  all  the  parts  of  which  were  made  in  this  country. 
For  more  than  twenty  years  it  kept  good  time,  an  example  of  the 
cunning  workmanship  of  the  sable  artificer. 

An  event  of  very  great  significance  in  the  quiet  neighborhood 
of  Banneker 's  home  was  the  erection  in  1772  of  the  flour  mills  at 
what  is  now  EUicott  City.  The  machinery,  so  crude  and  anti- 
quated by  present  standards,  was  more  than  a  nine  days '  wonder 
in  these  far-off  days.  Among  others,  Banneker,  delighted  even 
after  the  novelty  had  worn  off,  lingered  to  study  it,  to  understand 
its  philosophy  and  to  enlarge  the  sphere  of  his  knowledge  of 
mechanics.  The  establishment  of  these  mills  was  not  only  an 
event  deigned  to  advance  the  material  interests  of  this  neighbor- 
hood.    It  was  a  means  to  him  of  great  intellectual  development. 


BENJAMIN  BANNEKER  89 

The  proprietors,  the  Ellicotts,  became  warmly  attached  to  him, 
especially  because  of  the  strong  personal  friendship  that  grew  up 
between  him  and  George  Ellicott.  Mr.  Ellicott  saw  in  Banneker 
an  intellect  that  not  only  was  ever  grasping  after  the  truth,  but 
one  capable  of  an  almost  infinite  development.  Though  Ban- 
neker was  black  he  was  to  Ellicott,  to  use  a  favorite  expression  of 
Frederick  Douglass — "a  kinsman,  a  clansman,  a  brother  be- 
loved." 

One  day  in  1787  Mr.  George  Ellicott  loaned  Banneker  Mayer's 
Tables,  Ferguson's  Astronomy,  Leadbeater's  Lunar  Tables  and 
some  astronomical  instruments,  which  only  those  far  advanced  in 
mathematics  could  comprehend — telling  Banneker  at  the  time 
that  at  the  earliest  opportunity  he  (Ellicott)  would  explain  them 
to  him.  Banneker  took  them  and  retired  to  the  seclusion  of  his 
cottage  where  without  any  aid  save  that  which  God  had  given, 
he  made  himself  so  familiar  with  the  contents  of  the  volumes  as 
to  detect  errors  in  their  calculations.  You  can  imagine  Mr.  Elli- 
cott's  surprise  to  find  on  next  meeting  the  philosopher  that  his 
services  as  instructor  were  not  needed.  Banneker  possessing  ' '  the 
cunning- warded  keys"  that  open  every  door  in  one's  pursuit  of 
knowledge,  at  the  mature  age  of  fifty-six  entered  zealously  upon 
the  study  of  astronomy,  closely  observing  all  the  natural  phenom- 
ena of  his  neighborhood,  as  well  as  the  movement  of  the  heavenly 
bodies,  making  records,  still  in  existence,  that  spread  his  fame 
far  and  wide. 

The  time  required  for  his  study  and  investigations  so  trenched 
upon  that  required  for  the  work  of  the  farm  that  the  necessity  of 
utilizing  his  scientific  knowledge  led  him  in  part  to  consider  the 
feasibility  of  compiling  an  ephemeris  or  almanac  for  the  States  of 
Pennsylvania,  Delaware,  IMaryland  and  Virginia.  For  this  work 
he  had  advanced  far  towards  the  construction  of  tables  of  loga- 
rithms for  the  necessary  calculations  when  Mr.  Ellicott  presented 
him  with  a  set. 

Many  observers  who  saw  Banneker  asleep  during  the  day  in  his 


90  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

cottage  which  on  a  knoll  commanded  a  fine  view  of  the  surround- 
ing country,  declared  him  to  be  a  worthless,  good-for-nothing 
fellow,  a  victim  to  an  old  propensity  for  intoxicating  liquors; 
but  it  was  untrue,  for  when, 

"Nature  let  her  curtain  down, 
And  pinned  it  with  a  star," 

they  might  have  seen  Banneker  enveloped  in  the  ample  folds  of 
his  cloak  reclining  on  the  ground,  his  eyes  watching  the  heavenly 
bodies  and  determining  their  laws.  In  these  days  of  observation 
this  would  be  unnecessary;  but  Banneker  was  his  own  observa- 
tory and  telescope — he  built  the  roadbed  on  which  he  trod  to  suc- 
cess. 

His  patience  and  determination  won.  He  solved  the  problems 
confronting  him,  if  not  to  his  own  satisfaction,  at  least  to  that 
of  mankind.  When  his  almanac  was  nearly  ready  for  publica- 
tion he  was  prevented  from  carrying  out  his  purpose  by  a  most 
fortunate  combination  of  circumstances. 

The  United  States  Government  had  begun  with  Washington's 
inauguration  in  1789,  but  there  was  yet  no  permanent  ofScial 
home.  In  keeping  with  a  provision  of  the  Constitutional  Conven- 
tion, Maryland  and  Virginia  had  ceded  to  the  central  government 
certain  territory,  known  as  the  Federal  Territory,  to  be  used  as 
the  Nation's  Capital,  but  its  exact  boundaries  had  not  been  fixed. 
Mr.  Andrew  Ellicott  was  commissioned  to  survey  the  boundaries 
and  Benjamin  Banneker  w^as  invited  as  a  man  of  scientific  attain- 
ments and  professional  skill  to  assist  in  the  work.  He  accepted 
the  invitation  and  shared  in  fixing  the  boundaries  of  the  District, 
in  the  selection  of  the  site  of  the  Capitol  Building,  in  locating  an 
eligible  spot  for  the  Executive  Mansion,  the  Treasury  and  other 
buildings.  So  satisfactory  was  his  work  and  so  agreeable  a  com- 
panion was  he  that  despite  prevailing  customs  the  Commissioners 
invited  him  again  and  again  to  a  seat  during  their  meals  at  the 


BENJAMIN  BANNEKER  91 

same  table  with  themselves,  but  he  was  content  to  occupy  a  seat 
at  a  side  table  in  the  same  dining  room. 

Banneker  having  completed  his  engagement  at  the  Federal 
Territory  with  which  he  was  very  well  pleased  as  he  recounted  to 
his  friends,  addressed  himself  to  the  publication  of  his  almanac. 

That  I  may  not  be  accused  of  exaggeration  or  giving  an  undue 
praise,  I  quote  from  Mr.  J.  H.  B.  Latrobe's  Memoir  before  the 
Maryland  Historical  Society: 

"The  first  almanac  which  Banneker  prepared  fit  for  publica- 
tion was  for  the  year  1792.  By  this  time  his  acquirements  had 
become  generally  kno\^Ti,  and  among  others  who  took  an  interest 
in  him  was  James  McHenry,  Esquire.  Mr.  McHenry  wrote  a  let- 
ter to  Goddard  and  Angell,  then  the  almanac  publishers  in  Balti- 
more. .  .  . 

"In  their  editorial  notice  Messrs.  Goddard  and  Angell  say, 
'they  feel  gratified  in  the  opportunity  of  presenting  to  the  pub- 
lic, through  their  press,  what  must  be  considered  as  an  extraor- 
dinary effort  of  genius;  a  complete  and  accurate  Ephemeris  for 
the  year  1792  calculated  by  a  sable  descendant  of  Africa.'  And 
they  further  say,  that  'they  flatter  themselves  that  a  philanthropic 
public  in  this  enlightened  era,  will  be  induced  to  give  their  pat- 
ronage and  support  to  this  work,  not  only  on  account  of  its  in- 
trinsic merits  (it  having  met  the  approbation  of  several  of  the 
most  distinguished  astronomers  of  America,  particularly  the  cele- 
brated Mr.  Rittenhouse),  but  from  similar  notices  to  these  which 
induce  the  editors  to  give  this  calculation  the  preference'  [mark 
the  words — the  preference]  'the  ardent  desire  for  drawing  modest 
merit  from  obscurity  and  controverting  the  long-established,  ill- 
bred  prejudice  against  the  blacks.'  " 

This  Mr.  McHenry  referred  to  was  a  division  surgeon  of  the 
Revolutionary  War,  a  trusted  friend  of  General  Washington,  a 
member  of  the  Constitutional  Convention  of  1787  and  a  Cabinet 
officer  under  both  Washington  and  John  Adams.     David  Ritten- 


92  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

house  was  the  celebrated  astronomer  and  statesman  who  wrote 
the  constitution  of  Pennsylvania,  and  a  professor  of  the  Uni- 
versity of  Pennsylvania.  Like  Banneker  he  had  at  an  early  age 
constructed  a  clock  and  for  several  years  was  the  most  noted  clock 
maker  in  America. 

The  endorsement  of  two  such  men  standing  in  the  very  first 
professional  and  political  rank  is  sufficient  to  establish  the  stand- 
ing and  claim  of  this  great,  this  monumental  work  of  Banneker. 
For  ten  years  this  almanac  was  the  main  dependence  of  the 
farmers  of  IMaryland,  Delaware  and  the  adjacent  States,  which 
demonstrated  its  utility,  in  fact  it  was  discontinued  only  with  the 
inability  of  Mr.  Banneker,  on  account  of  old  age  to  undergo  the 
intellectual  labor  incidental  to  its  further  publication. 

In  the  publication  of  his  almanac,  Banneker  was  not  unmind- 
ful of  the  service  rendered  to  the  race  of  which  he  was  a  part. 
It  was  an  opportunity  that  he  did  not  shrink  from  seizing  and 
improving.  Before  the  first  copy  was  received  from  the  printers, 
he  prepared  a  complete  autograph  copy  and  sent  it  accompanied 
by  a  letter  to  Thomas  Jefferson,  then  U.  S.  Secretary  of  State — a 
most  remarkable  letter,  a  most  manly  appeal  through  Jefferson 
to  the  American  people  on  behalf  of  a  class  of  people  who  had 
rendered  most  valuable  service  to  the  country.  The  entire  letter 
deserves  to  be  read  again  and  again  for  its  courteous  manner,  its 
nobility  of  thought,  its  dignified  utterances  as  well  as  for  its  elo- 
quence.    We  have  space  only  for  a  few  extracts : 

"Sir,  I  hope  I  may  safely  admit  in  consequence  of  the  report  which 
hath  reached  me,  .  .  .  that  you  are  measurably  friendly  and  well-dis- 
posed toward  us  and  that  you  are  willing  to  lend  your  aid  and  assist- 
ance to  our  relief  from  those  many  distresses  and  numerous  calamities  to 
which  we  are  reduced.  ...  I  apprehend  you  will  readily  embrace 
every  opportunity  to  eradicate  that  train  of  absurd  and  false  ideas 
and  opinions  which  so  generally  prevail  with  respect  to  us;  and  that 
your  sentiments  are  concurrent  with  mine,  which  are,  that  one  Universal 
Father  hath  given  being  to  us  all;  that  He  hath  not  only  made  us  all 


BENJAMIN  BANNEKER  93 

of  one  flesh,  but  he  hath  also,  without  partiality,  afforded  to  us  aU 
the  same  faculties,  and  that  however  variable  we  may  be  in  society  and 
religion,  however  diversified  in  situation  or  color,  we  are  all  of  the 
same  family  and  stand  in  the  same  relation  to  Him." 

He  next  makes  an  argument  that  it  is  the  duty  of  all  who  pro- 
fess the  obligations  of  Christianity  to  extend  their  power  and 
influence  for  the  relief  of  every  part  of  the  human  race. 

Notwithstanding  the  privileges  freely  accorded  to  him  person- 
ally, Banneker  keenly  felt  the  force  of  the  prejudice  against  the 
race  as  a  class.     He  says: 

I  freely  and  cheerfully  acknowledge  that  I  am  of  the  African  race, 
and  in  that  color  which  is  natural  to  them,  of  the  deepest  dye,  and  it  is 
under  a  sense  of  the  most  profound  gratitude  to  the  Supreme  Ruler  of 
the  universe,  I  now  confess  I  am  not  under  that  state  of  tyrannical 
and  inhuman  captivity  to  which  many  of  my  brethren  are  doomed,  but 
that  I  have  abundantly  tasted  of  the  fruition  of  those  blessings  which 
proceed  from  that  free  and  unequalled  liberty  with  which  you  are 
favored,  and  which  I  hope  you  will  willingly  allow,  you  have  received 
from  the  immediate  hands  of  that  Being  from  whom  proceedeth  every 
good  and  perfect  gift. 

And  so  he  makes  argument  after  argument,  and  then  apologiz- 
ing for  the  length  of  the  letter  he  concludes  as  follows : 

I  ardently  hope  that  your  candor  and  generosity  will  plead  with 
you  in  my  behalf  when  I  make  known  to  you  that  it  was  not  originally 
my  design ;  but  that  having  taken  up  my  pen  in  order  to  direct  to  you 
as  a  present  a  copy  of  an  almanac  which  I  have  calculated  for  the 
succeeding  year,  I  was  unexpectedly  and  imavoidably  led  thereto. 

This  calculation,  sir,  is  the  product  of  my  arduous  study  in  this  my 
advanced  stage  of  life;  for  having  long  had  mibounded  desire  to  be- 
come acquainted  with  the  secrets  of  nature,  I  have  had  to  gratify  my 
curiosity  herein  through  my  own  assiduous  application  to  astronomical 
study,  in  which  I  need  not  recount  to  you  the  many  difficulties  and 
disadvantages  which  I  have  had  to  encounter. 

And  although  I  had  almost  declined  to  make  my  calculations  for 


94  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

the  ensuing  year,  in  consequence  of  that  time  which  I  had  allotted 
therefor  being  taken  up  at  the  Federal  Territory,  by  the  request  of  Mr. 
Andrew  EUicott,  yet  finding  myself  under  engagements  to  printers  of 
this  State,  to  whom  I  had  communicated  my  design  on  my  return  to 
my  place  of  residence,  I  industriously  applied  myself  thereto  which  I 
hope  I  have  accomplished  with  correctness  and  accuracy,  a  copy  of 
which  I  have  taken  the  liberty  to  direct  to  you  and  which  I  humbly 
request  you  will  favorably  receive;  and  although  you  may  have  the 
opportunity  of  perusing  it  after  its  publication,  yet,  I  chose  to  send  it 
to  you  in  manuscript  previous  thereto,  that  thereby  you  might  not  only 
have  an  earlier  inspection,  but  that  you  might  also  view  it  in  my  own 
handwriting. 

Jefferson's  reply  is  brief,  but  characteristic. 

Philadelphia,  August  31,  1791. 

Sir:  I  thank  you  sincerely  for  your  letter  of  the  19th  instant  and 
for  the  almanac  it  contained.  Nobody  wishes  more  than  I  do  to  see 
such  proofs  as  you  exhibit  that  nature  has  given  to  our  black  brethren 
talents  equal  to  those  of  the  other  colors  of  men  and  that  the  appear- 
ance of  a  want  of  them  is  owing  only  to  the  degraded  condition  of 
their  existence  both  in  Africa  and  America.  I  can  add  with  truth,  that 
no  one  wishes  more  ardently  to  see  a  good  system  commenced  for  rais- 
ing the  conditions,  both  of  their  body  and  mmd  to  what  it  ought  to  be, 
as  fast  as  the  imbecility  of  their  present  existence,  and  other  circum- 
stances which  cannot  be  neglected,  will  admit. 

I  have  taken  the  liberty  of  sending  your  almanac  to  Monsieur  de 
Condorcet,  Secretary  of  the  Academy  of  Science  at  Paris,  and  mem- 
bers of  the  Philanthropic  Society,  because  I  considered  it  a  document 
to  which  your  color  had  a  right,  for  their  justification  against  the 
doubts  which  have  been  entertained  of  them. 

I  am,  with  great  esteem,  sir. 

Your  most  obedient  servant, 

Thomas  Jefferson. 

What  of  Banneker  as  a  social  being  ?  He  never  married.  So 
thoroughly  devoted  was  he  to  science  that  the  tender  passion, 
love,  never  gained  the  mastery.     He  lived  by  himself,  prepared 


BENJAMIN  BANNEKER  95 

his  own  food  and  washed  his  own  clothes  and  in  other  domestic 
necessities  his  wants  were  supplied  by  his  sisters  who  lived 
near  by, 

A  few  anecdotes  will  shed  a  light  on  other  traits  in  his  char- 
acter. 

When  he  was  no  longer  actively  engaged  in  agriculture,  he  di- 
vided his  holdings  into  smaller  tenancies,  but  since  tenants  were 
not  regular  in  their  payments  and  they  considered  it  a  personal 
affront  when  he  called  on  them  for  his  rent ;  nevertheless,  he  w^as 
determined  to  provide  for  his  maintenance,  so  he  sold  his  land 
for  an  annuity  based  on  the  market  value  of  his  land  and  his  ex- 
pectancy of  life,  reserving  a  residence  for  himself  for  life.  He 
lived  eight  years  longer  than  his  calculations,  and  therefore  got 
not  only  the  value  of  his  land  but  a  handsome  advance  on  it. 

Reference  has  been  made  to  his  abundant  orchards.  His  pear 
trees  were  especially  noted,  and  the  smaller  boys  of  those  days, 
the  great-grandfathers  of  those  who  live  in  our  midst  to-day, 
would  steal  them  while  the  old  gentleman  was  intent  on  his 
astronomical  calculations.  Once  when  some  boys  were  more  per- 
sistent or  bolder  than  usual  he  arose,  left  his  table  and  coming  to 
the  door  said,  "Boys,  you  are  perfectly  welcome  to  one-half  of 
the  fruit  if  you  will  leave  me  the  other."  With  that  he  re- 
turned to  his  room  and  resumed  his  studies.  When  he  had  oc- 
casion to  come  once  more  to  the  door  he  found  that  the  boys 
had  left  him — the  leaves. 

He  was  a  musician.  Like  that  other  gi'eat  son  of  Maryland  of 
three  generations  later,  Frederick  Douglass,  he  was  quite  a  violin- 
ist. Nothing  was  more  common  than  to  find  him  under  his 
favorite  tree  at  evening  tide  playing  his  violin. 

He  was  not  a  member  of  any  church  but  the  spirit  of  reverence 
for  the  Father  of  all  pervades  much  of  his  writings.  He  fre- 
quently attended  the  meetings  of  the  Society  of  Friends  during 
which  he  leaned  on  his  staff  in  the  spirit  of  humility  and  de- 
votion. 


96  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

There  was  nothing  to  indicate  the  slightest  trace  of  white  blood 
in  his  appearance.  "In  size  and  personal  appearance,"  says  one 
who  remembered  him  as  he  appeared  in  the  later  years  of  his  life, 
"the  statne  of  Franklin  at  the  library  in  Philadelphia  as  seen 
from  the  street  is  a  perfect  likeness  of  him.  This  likeness  is 
heightened  because  he  wore  a  superfine  drab  broadcloth  suit  made 
in  the  old  style,  plain  coat  with  a  straight  collar,  and  long  waist- 
coat and  a  broad-brimmed  hat."- 

The  excessive  mental  application  kept  up  with  intensity  for 
a  score  of  years  told  on  his  vigorous  constitution  and  he  became 
a  victim  to  a  complication  of  disorders,  but  his  indomitable  will 
added  years  to  his  life.  He  could  not  forego  the  pleasure  of  com- 
muning with  nature  under  the  open  sky.  It  was  during  one  of 
his  walks  one  bright  autumnal  Sunday  afternoon  of  1804  that  he 
complained  of  not  feeling  well — he  returned  to  his  cabin,  became 
speechless  and  in  a  few  hours  passed  from  contemplation  of  the 
terrestrial  to  an  enjoyment  of  prospects  celestial. 

His  surviving  relatives  promptly  carried  out  the  injunction 
he  had  given,  of  taking  over  to  Mr.  Ellicott  all  his  books,  mathe- 
matical instruments  and  papers  including  the  oval  table  on  which 
he  made  his  calculations — almost  as  soon  as  the  breath  had  left 
his  body. 

Two  days  later  the  last  funeral  rites  were  held.  While  these 
were  in  progress  a  fire  consumed  his  house  and  everything  that 
remained  in  it,  including  the  wooden  clock  that  first  evidenced 
his  mechanical  skill  and  inventive  genius. 

To-day  his  name  is  not  more  than  a  tradition ;  no  headboard  or 
other  monument  marks  his  final  resting  place,  if  even  it  be  known. 

In  the  Chautauqua  for  September,  1899,  Gabriella  M.  Jacobs  in 
winding  up  an  article  on  ' '  The  Black  Astronomer, ' '  says : 

"Neither  the  site  of  his  birthplace  nor  his  grave  was  ever 
marked  by  a  memorial.     He  was  buried  on  a  hillside  near  to  his 

2  J.  H.  B.  Latrobe's  Memoir. 


BENJAMIN  BANNEKER  97 

own  property,  but  by  the  strange  irony  of  fate,  the  exact  loca- 
tion of  his  grave  is  now  unknown. ' '  ^ 

She  says  in  concluding : 

"A  public  school  building  for  colored  pupils  in  Washington, 
D  C,  known  as  the  Banneker  school  is  believed  to  be  the  only 
monument  to  the  genius  of  the  Negro  who  at  the  dawn  of  the 
nineteenth  century  foreshadowed  the  advancement  of  his  race 
which  marks  the  century's  close." 

3  See  also  Bishop  Payne,  Infra. 


PAUL   CUFPfe,    NAVIGATOR   AND   PHILANTHROPIST 

Paul  Cuffe  was  bom  in  1759  on  the  island  of  Cutterhunker 
near  Westport,  Massachusetts.  There  were  four  sons  and  six 
daughters  of  John  Cuffe,  who  had  been  stolen  from  Africa,  and 
Ruth,  a  woman  of  Indian  extraction.  Paul,  the  youngest  son, 
lacked  the  advantage  of  an  early  education,  but  he  supplied  the 
deficiency  by  his  personal  efforts  and  learned  not  only  to  read 
and  write  with  facility,  but  made  such  proficiency  in  the  art 
of  navigation  as  to  become  a  skillful  seaman  and  the  instructor 
of  both  whites  and  blacks  in  the  same  art. 

His  father,  who  had  obtained  his  freedom  and  bought  a  farm 
of  one  hundred  acres,  died  when  Paul  was  about  fourteen.  When 
he  was  sixteen,  Paul  began  the  life  of  a  sailor.  On  his  third 
voyage  he  was  captured  by  a  British  brig  and  was  for  three 
months  a  prisoner  of  war.  On  his  release  he  planned  to  go  into 
business  on  his  own  account.  With  the  aid  of  an  elder  brother, 
David  Cuffe,  an  open  boat  was  built  in  which  they  went  to  sea; 
but  this  brother  on  the  first  intimation  of  danger  gave  up  the 
venture  and  Paul  was  forced  to  undertake  the  work  single- 
handed  and  alone,  which  was  a  sore  disappointment.  On  his 
second  attempt  he  lost  all  he  had. 

Before  the  close  of  the  Revolutionary  War,  Paul  refused  to 
pay  a  personal  tax,  on  the  ground  that  free  colored  people  did 
not  enjoy  the  rights  and  privileges  of  citizenship.  After  con- 
siderable delay,  and  an  appeal  to  the  courts,  he  paid  the  tax 
under  protest.  He  then  petitioned  to  the  legislature  which 
finally  agreed  to  his  contention.     His  efforts  are  the  first  of 

98 


— Fi  uni    .-in    Old    Print. 
PWh  (  IFFE,  Ki:VOLi;r?ONARY     PATRIOT. 


PAUL  CUFF^  99 

which  there  is  any  record  of  a  citizen  of  African  descent  making 
a  successful  appeal  in  behalf  of  his  civil  rights.  On  reaching 
the  age  of  twenty-five,  he  married  a  woman  of  the  same  tribe 
as  his  mother,  and  for  a  while  gave  up  life  on  the  ocean  wave; 
but  the  growth  of  his  family  led  him  back  to  his  fond  pursuit 
on  the  briny  deep.  As  he  was  unable  to  purchase  a  boat,  with 
the  aid  of  his  brother  he  built  one  from  keel  to  gunwale  and 
launched  into  the  enterprise. 

While  on  the  way  to  a  nearby  island  to  consult  his  brother 
whom  he  had  induced  once  more  to  venture  forth  with  him, 
he  was  overtaken  by  pirates  who  robbed  him  of  all  he  possessed. 
Again  Paul  returned  home  disappointed,  though  not  discouraged. 
Once  more  he  applied  for  assistance  to  his  brother  David  and 
another  boat  was  built.  After  securing  a  cargo,  he  met  again 
with  pirates,  but  he  eluded  them  though  he  was  compelled  to 
return  and  repair  his  boat.  These  having  been  made  he  began 
a  most  successful  career  along  the  coast  as  far  north  as  New- 
foundland, to  the  south  as  far  as  Savannah  and  as  distant  as 
Gottenburg. 

In  carrying  on  this  business,  starting  in  the  small  way  in- 
dicated, he  owned  at  different  times,  besides  smaller  boats.  The 
Ranger,  a  schooner  of  sixty  or  seventy  tons,  a  half  interest  in 
a  brig  of  162  tons,  the  brig  Traveller,  of  109  tons,  the  ship 
Alpha,  of  268  tons  and  three-fourths  interest  in  a  larger  vessel. 

A  few  noble  incidents  may  illustrate  his  resourcefulness,  dif- 
ficulties and  success  over  all  obstacles.  When  engaged  in  the 
whaling  business  he  was  found  with  less  than  the  customary 
outfit  for  effectually  carrying  on  this  work.  The  practice  in 
such  eases  was  for  the  other  ships  to  loan  the  number  of  men 
needed.  They  denied  this  at  first  to  Cuffe,  but  fair  play  pre- 
vailed and  they  gave  him  what  was  customary,  with  the  result 
that  of  the  seven  whales  captured,  Paul's  men  secured  five,  and 
two  of  them  fell  by  his  own  hand ! 

In  1795  he  took  a  cargo  to  Norfolk,  Virginia,  and  learning 


100  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

that  com  could  be  bought  at  a  decided  advantage,  he  made  a 
trip  to  the  Nanticoke  River,  on  the  eastern  shore  of  Maryland. 
Here  his  appearance  as  a  black  man  commanding  his  own  boat 
and  with  a  crew  of  seven  men  all  of  his  own  complexion,  alarmed 
the  whites,  who  seemed  to  dread  his  presence  there  as  the  signal 
for  a  revolt  on  the  part  of  their  slaves.  They  opposed  his 
landing,  but  the  examination  of  his  papers  removed  all  doubts 
as  to  the  regularity  of  his  business,  while  his  quiet  dignity 
secured  the  respect  of  the  leading  white  citizens,  with  one  of 
whom  he  accepted  an  invitation  to  dine.  He  had  no  difficulty 
after  this  in  taking  a  cargo  of  three  thousand  bushels  of  corn, 
from  which  he  realized  a  profit  of  $1,000.  On  a  second  voyage 
he  was  equally  successful. 

Although  without  the  privilege  of  attending  a  school  when 
a  boy,  he  endeavored  to  have  his  friends  and  neighbors  open 
and  maintain  one  for  the  colored  and  Indian  children  of  the 
vicinity.  Failing  to  secure  their  active  cooperation,  he  built  in 
1797  a  schoolhouse  wdthout  their  aid. 

Because  of  his  independent  means  and  his  skill  as  a  mariner, 
he  visited  with  little  or  no  difficulty  most  of  the  larger  cities 
of  the  country,  held  frequent  conferences  with  the  representative 
men  of  his  race,  and  recommended  the  formation  of  societies 
for  their  mutual  relief  and  physical  betterment.  Such  societies 
he  formed  in  Philadelphia  and  New  York,  and  then  having 
made  ample  preparation  he  sailed  in  1811  for  Africa  in  his 
brig  The  Traveler,  reaching  Sierra  Leone  on  the  "West  Coast 
after  a  voyage  of  about  two  months.  Here  he  organized  the 
Friendly  Society  of  Sierra  Leone  and  then  went  to  Liverpool. 
Even  here  one  of  his  characteristic  traits  manifested  itself  in 
taking  with  him  to  England  for  education  a  native  of  Sierra 
Leone.  While  in  England,  Cuffe  visited  London  twice  and 
consulted  such  friends  of  the  Negro  as  Granville  Sharp,  Thomas 
Clarkson  and  William  Wilberforee !  These  men  were  all  in- 
terested in  a  proposition  to  promote  the  settlement  on  the  West 


PAUL  CUFFE  101 

Coast  of  Africa  of  the  free  people  of  color  in  America,  many 
of  whom  had  come  into  the  domains  of  Great  Britain  as  an 
outcome  of  the  Revolutionary  War.  This  opinion  was  at  this 
period  the  prevailing  sentiment  of  England  respecting  what 
was  best  for  the  Negro.  Sir  J.  J.  Crooks,  a  former  governor 
of  Sierra  Leone,  in  alluding  to  its  origin  says:  "There  is  no 
doubt  that  the  influence  of  their  opinion  was  felt  in  America 
and  that  it  led  to  emigration  thence  to  Africa  before  Liberia 
was  settled.  Paul  Cuffe,  a  man  of  color  .  .  .  who  was  much 
interested  in  the  promotion  of  the  civil  and  religious  liberty 
of  his  colored  brethren  in  their  native  land,  had  been  familiar 
with  the  ideas  of  these  philanthropists,  as  well  as  with  the  move- 
ment in  the  same  direction  in  England. ' '  ^ 

This  explains  Cuffe 's  visit  to  England  and  to  Africa — a 
daring  venture  in  these  perilous  days — and  the  formation  of  the 
Friendly  Societies  in  Africa  and  in  his  own  country,  the  United 
States. 

When  his  special  mission  to  England  was  concluded,  he  took 
out  a  cargo  from  Liverpool  for  Sierra  Leone,  after  which  he 
returned  to  America. 

Before  he  had  made  his  next  move,  Cuffe  consulted  with  the 
British  Government  in  London  and  President  Madison  at  Wash- 
ington. But  the  strained  relations  between  the  two  nations, 
as  well  as  the  financial  condition  of  the  United  States  at  the 
time,  made  governmental  cooperation  impracticable  if  not  im- 
possible. 

In  1815  he  carried  out  the  ideas  long  In  his  mind.  In  this 
year  he  sailed  from  Boston  for  Sierra  Leone  with  thirty-eight 
free  Negi'oes  as  settlers  on  the  Black  Continent.  Only  eight 
of  these  could  pay  their  own  expenses,  but  Cuffe,  nevertheless, 
took  out  the  entire  party,  landed  them  safe  on  the  soil  of  their 
forefathers  after  a  journey  of  fifty-five  days  and  paid  the  ex- 
pense for  the  outfit,  transportation  and  maintenance  of  the  re- 

1  History  of  Sierra  Leone,  Dublin.   1903.  p.  97. 


102  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

maining  thirty,  amounting  to  no  less  than  twenty-five  thousand 
dollars  ($25,000)  out  of  his  own  pocket.  The  colonists  were 
cordially  welcomed  by  the  people  of  Sierra  Leone,  and  each 
family  received  from  thirty  to  forty  acres  from  the  Crown 
Government.  He  remained  with  the  settlers  two  months  and 
then  returned  home  with  the  purpose  of  taking  out  another 
colony.  Before,  however,  he  could  do  so,  and  while  preparations 
were  being  made  for  the  second  colony,  he  was  taken  ill.  After 
a  protracted  illness  he  died  September  7,  1817,  in  the  fifty-ninth 
year  of  his  age.  At  the  time  of  his  death  he  had  no  less  than 
two  thousand  names  of  intending  emigrants  on  his  list  await- 
ing transportation  to  Africa. 

As  to  his  personal  characteristics:  Paul  Cuffe  was  "tall, 
well-formed  and  athletic,  his  deportment  conciliating  yet  digni- 
fied and  prepossessing.  He  was  a  member  of  the  Society  of 
Friends  [Quakers]  and  became  a  minister  among  them.  .  .  . 
He  believed  it  to  be  his  duty  to  sacrifice  private  interest,  rather 
than  engage  in  any  enterprise,  however  lawful  ...  or  however 
profitable  that  had  the  slightest  tendency  to  injure  his  fel- 
low men.  He  would  not  deal  in  intoxicating  liquors  or  in 
slaves. ' ' 

A  current  newspaper  speaking  of  him  says,  **A  descendant  of 
Africa,  he  overcame  by  native  strength  of  mind  and  firm  ad- 
herence to  principle  the  prejudice  with  which  its  descendants 
are  too  generally  viewed.  Industrious,  temperate  and  prudent, 
his  means  of  acquiring  property,  small  at  first,  were  gradually 
increased;  and  the  strict  integrity  of  his  conduct  gained  him 
numerous  friends  to  whom  he  never  gave  occasion  to  regret  the 
confidence  they  had  placed  in  him.  His  mercantile  pursuits 
were  generally  successful  and  blessed  with  competence  if  not 
with  wealth.  The  enlarged  benevolence  of  his  mind  was  mani- 
fested not  only  in  acts  of  charity  to  individuals  and  in  the  pro- 
motion of  objects  of  general  ability,  but  more  particularly  in 


PAUL  CUFF:^  103 

the  deep  interest  he  sought  for  the  welfare  of  his  brethren  of 
the  African  race. ' '  ^ 

That  he  became  a  successful  navigator,  crossing  the  Atlantic 
in  the  path  of  the  slave  ship,  thence  journeying  to  England,  re- 
turning to  the  United  States  and  actually  carrying  the  first 
American  Negroes  to  the  land  of  their  ancestry,  the  cost  of 
which  was  borne  almost  entirely  by  himself,  and  before  the 
settlement  of  Liberia  or  even  the  organization  of  the  American 
Colonization  Society  by  white  men — is  sufficient  reason  to  con- 
nect Paul  Cuffe  with  the  history  of  two  continents  and  to  make 
him  an  example  worthy  of  emulation  for  his  persistence  and  his 
pluck,  his  philanthropy  and  his  patriotism. 

2  A  Tribute  for  the  Negro.     Wilson  Armistead. 


XXI 

SOJOURNER   TRUTH 

Isabella,  known  to  history  as  Sojourner  Truth,  and  without 
a  rival  in  the  annals  of  the  American  Negro,  was  born  a  slave 
of  one  Col,  Ardinburgh  in  Hurley,  Ulster  County,  New  York, 
sometime  during  the  latter  part  of  the  eighteenth  century. 

Her  experiences  and  those  of  her  parents  as  to  the  cruel,  harsh 
and  brutal  treatment  received  at  the  hands  of  those  who  claimed 
their  service,  the  many  whippings  for  alleged  disobedience  and 
their  abandonment  when  no  longer  able  to  be  profitable  as 
laborers  and  the  sale  of  others  of  her  kindred  on  the  auction 
block  by  which  family  ties  were  broken,  made  it  clear  that 
slavery  in  the  North  *  at  that  distant  day  was  not  unlike  what 
it  was  two-thirds  of  a  century  later  south  of  Mason  and  Dixon's 
line. 

Up  to  the  time  she  was  ten,  Isabella  spoke  principally  the 
Low  Dutch,  while  those  for  whom  she  was  employed  were  Eng- 
lish. Constant  blunders  were  inevitable  and  whippings  as  in- 
evitably followed. 

The  death  of  both  father  and  mother  occurred  while  Isabella 
was  quite  young.  The  details  of  their  death  are  pathetic  in  the 
extreme.  Isabella's  troubles  were  of  the  common  lot  of  the 
slave.  In  course  of  time  she  married  and  became  the  mother 
of  several  children.     Among  these  was  a  son  whose  abduction 

1  Her  age  "is  approximately  fixed  because  she  was  liberated  under  the 
act  of  1817  which  freed  all  slaves  who  were  forty  years  old  and  upward. 
Ten  thousand  slaves  were  then  set  at  liberty.  Those  under  forty  years 
of  age  were  retained  in  servitude  ten  years  longer,  when  all  were  eman- 
cipated. 

104 


SOJOURNER  TRUTH  105 

and  sale  beyond  the  boundaries  of  the  State,  contrary  to  law, 
fired  her  soul  and  she  began  that  vigorous  protest  against  the 
.common  practices  of  the  day  and  appeal  for  justice  that 
subsequently  made  her  fame  national  and  opened  up  a  career 
that  is  not  only  unique  but  deserving  of  perpetual  remembrance. 

At  an  early  period  she  became  sensible  of  the  influence  of 
Christianity  in  her  own  life.  She  became  a  Methodist  and  on  her 
removal  to  New  York  she  joined  the  John  Street  Church,  the 
mother  of  American  Methodism  and  later  she  attached  herself 
to  the  Zion  Church  in  the  same  city,  the  mother  of  the  African 
Methodist  Episcopal  Zion  denomination.  By  the  purest  accident 
she  learned  that  a  sister  whom  she  had  never  known  had  been 
a  member  in  the  same  church,  but  Sojourner  did  not  obtain 
this  knowledge  until  after  that  sister's  death,  when  she  re- 
membered having  met  this  sister  frequently  in  class  meetings. 

The  circumstances  leading  to  Isabella's  removal  from  the  city 
of  New  York  was  her  connection  with  what  is  known  as  the 
Mathias  delusion  about  the  year  1837-1840.  This  led  to  her 
giving  up  her  own  name  and  assuming  that  of  Sojourner,  to 
which  she  added  Truth. 

From  New  York  she  went  to  New  England  where  she  ulti- 
mately became  an  Anti-slavery  lecturer.  Wholly  without  edu- 
cation, advanced  in  years,  her  influence  as  a  public  speaker  is  a 
marvel.  Nature  had  given  her  a  very  acut€  mind.  She  was 
quick  at  repartee,  was  thoroughly  in  earnest  and  her  judg- 
ments were  shrewd.  Her  belief  in  God  and  that  in  due  time 
He  would  deliver  her  people  from  bondage  was  phenomenal. 
These  facts  had  much  to  do  with  the  very  strong  hold  she 
had  on  all  who  heard  her  lectures.  ]\Iany  of  the  predictions 
which  she  made  became  true  in  manner  and  form  as  she  had 
uttered  them. 

In  those  dark  days  at  a  meeting  of  anti-slavery  men  held  at 
Boston,  Frederick  Douglass  struck  in  the  minor  key  a  most  de- 
spairing song.     At  his  conclusion  Sojourner  Truth  rose  in  the 


106  THE  NEGKO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

audience  and  stretching  forth  her  arms  in  a  shrill  voice  ex- 
claimed, "Frederick,  is  God  dead?"  The  effect  was  electrical. 
By  a  flash  the  sentiment  of  the  house  was  changed  to  one  of  hope 
and  assurance. 

Sojourner  did  not  hesitate  to  call  on  anyone  whom  she  desired 
to  see,  whether  she  had  received  an  introduction  to  them  or  not. 
Thus  it  was  that  she  called  to  see  Harriet  Beecher  Stowe,  the 
authoress  of  '  *  Uncle  Tom 's  Cabin. ' ' 

Mrs.  Stowe  who  had  company  at  the  time  evidently  did  not  care 
to  be  bothered  with  the  quaint  old  woman,  but  she  was  no  sooner 
in  Sojourner's  company  than  she  realized  the  superior  character 
of  her  visitor.  Instead  of  abruptly  tearing  herself  away  from 
Sojourner  or  rudely  dismissing  her  as  a  bore  she  requested  the 
privilege  from  Sojourner  of  calling  in  her  guests.  This  was 
granted  and  all  were  made  to  feel  the  superior  moral  power 
of  this  untutored  black  woman  of  the  North. 

During  the  Civil  War  Sojourner  spent  a  protracted  period  at 
"Washington  in  alleviating  the  sufferings  of  our  sick.  Sometimes 
she  was  at  the  hospitals ;  at  other  times  the  * '  contraband ' '  camps 
then  numerous  about  the  National  Capital,  found  her  an  angel 
of  mercy.  While  here  she  called  on  President  Lincoln,  who 
received  her  kindly.  It  was  not  merely  to  gratify  curiosity 
nor  to  express  her  gratification  that  such  a  broad-minded  presi- 
dent was  in  the  White  House,  but  to  receive  his  commendation 
on  her  mission  as  counselor  to  the  freedmen  that  were  assembled 
by  the  thousands  in  and  around  Washington.  In  this  capacity 
she  visited  them  in  their  slab  houses,  instructing  women  in 
domestic  duties,  preaching  the  gospel  of  cleanliness  and  how  to 
maintain  their  liberty,  the  shackles  of  slavery  having  been  struck 
from  their  limbs. 

In  those  days  "Jim  Crow"  street  cars  prevailed  in  Washing- 
ton, and  it  was  with  difficulty  at  times  that  colored  people  could 
get  seats  even  in  them.  Restive  under  this  treatment,  Sojourner 
complained   to   the   president   of   the  street   railroads   and   the 


SOJOURNER  TRUTH  107 

"'Jim  Crow"  sign  was  ordered  to  be  taken  off,  yet  everything 
was  not  plain  sailing.  The  following  incident  deserves  atten- 
tion. 

"Not  long  after  this,  Sojourner  having  occasion  to  ride  sig- 
naled the  car,  but  neither  conductor  nor  driver  noticed  her. 
Soon  another  followed,  and  she  raised  her  hand  again,  but  they 
also  turned  away.  She  then  gave  three  tremendous  yelps,  'I 
want  to  ride!  I  want  to  ride!!  i  want  to  ride.'.'/'  Conster- 
nation seized  the  passing  crowd ;  people,  carriages,  go-carts  of 
every  description  stood  still.  The  car  was  effectually  blocked 
up,  and  before  it  could  move  on.  Sojourner  had  jumped  aboard. 
Then  there  arose  a  great  shout  from  the  crowd,  '  Ha !  Ha !  Ha ! ! 
She  has  beaten  him,  etc'  The  angry  conductor  told  her  to  go 
forward  where  the  horses  were,  or  he  would  put  her  out. 
Quietly  seating  herself,  she  informed  him  that  she  was  a 
passenger.  'Go  forward  where  the  horses  are,  or  I  will  throw 
you  out, '  said  he  in  a  menacing  voice.  She  told  him  that  she  was 
neither  a  Mary  lander  nor  a  Virginian  to  fear  his  threats;  but 
was  from  the  Empire  State  of  New  York,  and  knew  the  laws 
as  well  as  he  did.  Several  soldiers  were  in  the  car  and  when 
other  passengers  came  in,  they  related  the  circumstance  and 
said,  'You  ought  to  have  heard  that  old  woman  talk  to  the 
conductor.'  Sojourner  rode  farther  than  she  needed  to  go; 
for  a  ride  was  so  rare  a  privilege  that  she  determined  to  make 
the  most  of  it.  She  left  the  car  feeling  very  happy,  and  said, 
'Bless  God !    /  have  had  a  ride.'  " 

Another  incident  is  equally  suggestive:  "She  was  sent  to 
Georgetown  to  obtain  a  nurse  for  the  hospital,  which  being 
accomplished  they  went  to  the  station  and  took  seats  in  an 
empty  car,  but  had  not  proceeded  far  before  two  ladies  came 
in  and  seating  themselves  opposite  the  colored  woman  began  a 
whispered  conversation,  frequently  casting  scornful  glances  at 
the  latter.  The  nurse,  for  the  first  time  in  her  life  finding 
hei-self  on  a  level  with  poor  white  folks  and  being  much  abashed, 


108  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

hung  her  poor  old  head  nearly  down  to  her  lap,  but  Sojourner, 
nothing  daunted,  looked  fearlessly  about.  At  length  one  of 
the  ladies  called  out  in  a  weak,  faint  voice,  'Conductor,  con- 
ductor, does  ''niggers"  ride  in  these  cars?'  He  hesitatingly 
answered  '  Yes — yes — yes, '  to  which  she  responded,  '  'Tis  a 
shame  and  a  disgrace.  They  ought  to  have  a  "nigger"  car  on 
the  track.'  Sojourner  remarked,  'Of  course  colored  people 
ride  in  the  cars.  Street  cars  are  designed  for  poor  white  and 
colored  folks.  Carriages  are  for  ladies  and  gentlemen.  There 
are  carriages,'  pointing  out  of  the  window,  'standing  ready  to 
take  you  three  or  four  miles  for  a  sixpence,  and  then  you  talk 
of  a  "nigger"  car!!!'  Promptly  acting  upon  this  hint,  those 
white  women  critics  arose  to  leave.  'Ah!'  said  Sojourner, 
'Now  they  are  going  to  take  a  carriage.     Good-by,  ladies.'  " 

There  are  many  anecdotes  told  that  indicate  her  quickness  at 
repartee,  humor,  sarcasm,  her  original  and  quaint  philosophy. 

"As  Sojourner  was  returning  to  the  home  of  Amy  Post  in 
Rochester,  one  evening,  after  having  delivered  a  lecture  in 
Corinthian  Hall,  a  little  policeman  stepped  up  to  her  and  de- 
manded her  name.  She  paused,  struck  her  cane  firmly  upon 
the  ground,  drew  herself  up  to  her  greatest  height,  and  in  a 
loud,  deep  voice  deliberately  answered,  'I  am  that  I  am.'  The 
frightened  policeman  vanished,  and  she  concluded  her  walk 
without  further  questioning. 

"During  the  war  Sojourner  met  one  of  her  Democratic  friends, 
w^ho  asked  her,  'What  business  are  you  now  following?'  She 
quietly  replied,  'Years  ago,  when  I  lived  in  the  city  of  New 
York,  my  occupation  was  scouring  brass  door  knobs  but  now 
I  go  about  scouring  copperheads.'  "~ 

At  a  temperance  meeting  in  one  of  the  towns  of  Kansas,  So- 
journer, whilst  addressing  the  audience,  was  much  annoyed  by 
frequent  expectorations  of  tobacco  juice  upon  the  floor.  Pausing 
and   contemplating  the   pools   of  liquid   filth,   with   a   look   of 

2  Northern  sympathizer  with   Confederates  during  the  Civil  War. 


SOJOURNER  TRUTH  109 

disgust  upon  her  face,  she  remarked  that  it  had  been  the  custom 
of  her  Methodist  brethren  to  kneel  in  the  house  of  God  during 
prayers,  and  asked  how  they  could  kneel  upon  these  floors.  Said 
she,  speaking  with  emphasis,  "If  Jesus  was  here  He  would 
scourge  you  from  this  place." 

Previous  to  the  war.  Sojourner  held  a  series  of  meetings  in 
northern  Ohio.  She  sometimes  made  very  strong  points  in  the 
course  of  her  speech,  which  she  knew  hit  the  apologists  of 
slavery  pretty  hard.  At  the  close  of  one  of  these  meetings  a 
man  came  up  to  her  and  said,  "Old  woman,  do  you  think  that 
your  talk  about  slavery  does  any  good?  Do  you  suppose  peo- 
ple care  what  you  say?  Why,"  continued  he,  "I  don't  care 
any  more  for  your  talk  than  I  do  for  the  bite  of  a  flea."  "Per- 
haps not,"  she  responded,  "but,  the  Lord  willing,  I'll  keep  you 
scratching. ' ' 

Sojourner  was  invited  to  speak  at  a  meeting  in  Florence,  Mass. 
She  had  just  returned  from  a  fatiguing  trip,  and  not  having 
thought  of  anything  in  particular  to  say,  arose  and  said,  ' '  Chil- 
dren, I  have  come  here  to-night  like  the  rest  of  you  to  hear  what 
I  have  got  to  say."  Wendell  Phillips  was  one  of  the  audience. 
Soon  after  this  he  was  invited  to  address  a  lyceum,  and  being 
unprepared  for  the  occasion,  as  he  thought,  began  by  saying, 
"I  shall  have  to  tell  you  as  my  friend.  Sojourner  Truth,  told  an 
audience  under  similar  circumstances,  'I  have  come  here  like  the 
rest  of  you  to  hear  what  I  have  to  say.'  " 

After  the  close  of  the  Civil  War,  when  more  than  four  score 
years  and  ten,  Sojourner  Truth,  unlike  others  who  had  labored 
for  the  abolition  of  slavery,  discerned  by  intuition  what  men  like 
Phillips,  Garrison  and  even  Douglass,  seemed  not  to  compre- 
hend— that  the  protection  and  elevation  of  the  Negro  lay  not 
through  the  exercise  of  the  elective  franchise  alone,  but  through 
the  ownership  of  the  soil  and  industrial  education.  She  advo- 
cated the  location  of  the  newly  emancipated  masses  of  the  South 
on  the  public  lands  of 'the  West.     To  that  end  she  addressed 


110  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMEEICAN  HISTORY 

meetings  urging  this  course,  in  different  parts  of  the  North,  the 
West  and  the  South,  circulating  petitions  to  Congress,  and  even 
visiting  Washington  and  endeavoring  to  create  public  sentiment 
in  this  behalf. 

It  was  during  one  of  these  visits  to  Washington,  while  U.  S. 
Grant  was  President,  that  the  writer  listened  to  her  lecture  at 
the  First  Congregational  Church  of  this  city,  where,  in  her 
quaint  and  original  style,  she  drew  crowds  to  hear  her,  many 
of  whom  had  heard  her  in  their  youthful  days  in  New  York  or 
in  New  England. 

Sojourner  had  foreseen  that  the  cities  of  the  North  and  East 
would  attract  large  numbers  of  colored  people  from  the  South, 
and  that  the  over-crowding  of  the  labor  market  would  react 
upon  the  race  in  increasing  the  criminal  element  and  in  weak- 
ening their  physical  stamina.  But  if  they  were  settled  on  the 
public  lands  of  the  West,  there  would  follow  careful  economy, 
regular  habits  of  life,  thrift,  wealth,  and  ultimately  political 
power.  She  had,  however,  lived  more  than  her  three  score 
years  and  ten  and  was  reaching  the  century  mark.  It  was  not 
among  the  possibilities  for  her  to  take  up  successfully  the  work 
of  the  new  era  which  emancipation  and  its  new  conditions  had 
created.  Her  work  belonged  to  another  epoch,  that  of  the 
anti-slavery  era,  in  which  her  service  was  as  unique  as  her 
pei*sonality. 

Speaking  of  her  death  which  occurred  at  Battle  Creek,  Nov. 
26,  1883,  where  she  had  spent  her  last  years,  the  Detroit  Post 
and  Tribune  says,  "The  death  of  Sojourner  Truth  takes  away 
the  most  singular  and  impressive  figure  of  pure  African  blood 
that  has  appeared  in  modern  times."  A  most  positive  and  re- 
markable declaration,  yet  as  true  as  it  was  emphatic  and  sweep- 
ing. 

Another  authority  says,  "Her  mysterious  communings  with 
what  she  believed  to  be  a  supernatural  power,  her  strange  and 
weird  appearance,  her  solemn  demeanor,  with  her  wit  and  elo- 


SOJOURNER  TRUTH  111 

quenee,  her  boldness,  her  unselfishness,  her  deep  religious  feel- 
ing, that  colored  all  her  life  and  conversation,  her  earnestness 
and  truthfuLriess,  make  up  a  character  at  once  curious,  admirable 
in  many  respects,  and  certainly  unique.  We  shall  not  look  upon 
her  like  again." 

This  review  of  her  career  was  made  in  an  influential  news- 
paper : 

"The  labors  of  this  woman  in  behalf  of  the  slaves  and  of 
every  class  and  condition  of  men  and  women  who  appealed 
to  her  sympathy  for  help  are  too  familiar  to  the  people  of 
Michigan  to  need  recapitulation  here.  She  was  the  most  interest- 
ing of  all  the  peculiar  people  of  her  race  who  have  come  in- 
to prominence  from  the  conditions  of  slavery.  .  .  .  Sojourner 
Truth  was  too  old  and  too  much  occupied  by  other  matters  to 
set  about  learning  to  read  when  the  time  came  that  she  might 
have  done  so.  Her  learning  was  of  a  kind  not  to  be  found  in 
books,  and  neither  her  oratory  nor  her  religion  was  fashioned  in 
the  schools.  Quaint  in  language,  grotesque  in  appearance  and 
homely  in  illustrations,  she  was  nevertheless  a  power  in  a  meet- 
ing, and  there  was  no  tongue  M^hose  teachings  were  more  feared 
than  hers.  There  was  a  native  nobility  about  her  which  broke 
down  all  barriers.  'People  ask  me,'  she  once  said,  'how  I  came 
to  live  so  long  and  keep  my  mind;  and  I  tell  them  it  is  because 
I  think  of  the  gi-eat  things  of  God;  not  the  little  things.'  Has 
any  learned  philosopher  said  a  better  thing  than  that?  She 
was  brave  enough  to  face  ordeals  that  were  almost  worse  to 
her  than  death.  On  one  occasion,  while  pleading  the  cause 
of  the  slaves,  the  effect  of  her  eloquence  was  in  danger  of 
being  overcome  by  a  charge  made  by  one  of  the  audience  that 
she  was  an  impostor,  a  man  in  woman's  clothes.  Her  tall, 
bony  form,  and  heavy  voice  gave  support  to  the  charge  and 
the  current  was  turning  against  her.  She  stepped  to  the  front 
of  the  platform  and  bared  her  breast  to  the  assembly,  telling 
them  it  was  their  shame  and  not  hers  that  such  a  sacrifice  was 


112  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

made  necessary  for  her  vindication.  This  is  not  so  poetical  as 
the  story  of  Lady  Godiva,  but  is  it  less  honorable  to  woman- 
kind? 

"There  is  not  in  aU  the  annals  of  eloquence  a  more  striking 
passage  than  one  in  the  speech  made  by  Sojourner  at  a  AYoman's 
Rights  convention  at  Akron,  Ohio,  in  1857.  The  cause  was  un- 
popular and  one  of  the  male  speakers  took  pains  to  ridicule 
Avomen  for  their  feebleness,  helplessness  and  general  uselessness. 
The  meeting  was  in  a  church,  and  at  the  conclusion  Sojourner 
rose  up  in  her  white  turban  from  her  seat  on  the  pulpit  steps, 
moved  slowly  and  solemnly  to  the  front,  laid  her  old  sunbonnet 
at  her  feet,  opened  with  words  that  were  thus  repeated  in  a 
local  paper : 

"  'AY ell,  chillen,  when  dar  is  so  much  racket  dar  must  be 
something  out  of  kilter.  But  what's  all  dis  yer  talkin'  about? 
Dat  man  over  dar  say  dat  a  woman  needs  to  be  helped  into 
carriages  and  lifted  over  ditches  and  to  have  tTie  best  places 
everywhere.  Nobody  ever  helped  me  into  carriages  or  over  mud 
puddles  or  gives  me  any  best  place,  and  ain't  I  a  woman?  Look 
at  me!  Look  at  my  arms'  (and  she  bared  her  right  arm  to  the 
shoulder,  showing  her  tremendous  muscular  power).  'I  have 
plowed  and  planted  and  gathered  into  barns,  and  no  one  could 
head  me  off,  and  ain't  I  a  woman?  I  could  work  as  much  and 
eat  as  much  as  any  man  (when  I  get  it)  and  bear  the  lash  as 
well,  and  ain't  I  a  woman?  Den  dey  talk  about  dis  ting  in  de 
head — what  is  it  dey  calls  it?'  ('Intellect,'  whispered  someone 
near.)  'Dat's  it,  honey.  What's  dat  got  to, do  with  woman's 
rights?  If  my  cup  would  hold  but  a  pint  and  yourn  hold  a 
quart,  wouldn't  you  be  mean  not  to  let  me  have  my  little  half 
measure  full?  Don't  dat  little  man  in  black  dar  say  woman 
can't  have  as  many  rights  as  men  'cause  Christ  wa'n't  a  woman. 
Whar  did  your  Christ  come  from?'  (Raising  her  voice  still 
louder,  she  repeated:)  'Whar  did  your  Christ  come  from? 
From  God  and  a  woman.     Man  had  nothing  to  do  with  Him ! '  " 


c?    Jl    _. 


3T0DAK  . 


An     J\ia>lfi]iii'cv     iii~|iiM-(i     li\     Snituniici-    Tnilli 


I 


SOJOURNER  TRUTH  113 

W.  W.  Story,  the  great  American  sculptor,  first  learned  from 
the  lips  of  Mrs.  Stowe  the  story  of  Sojourner  Truth,  and  dubbed 
her  The  Libyan  Sibyl,  The  artist  seemed  impressed  by  it  and 
after  his  "Cleopatra"  had  been  finished  he  told  the  authoress 
of  "Uncle  Tom's  Cabin,"  some  years  after,  that  the  conception  of 
another  type  of  beauty  in  which  "the  elements  of  life,  physical 
and  spiritual,  were  of  such  excellence  that  the  dark  hue  of  the 
skin  should  seem  only  to  add  an  appropriate  charm,"  had  never 
left  him.  In  one  of  the  World's  Exhibitions  he  has  a  statue  in 
which  these  ideas  are  worked  out.  It  is  called  "The  Libyan 
Sibyl"  and  was  a  companion  to  his  "Cleopatra."  The  London 
Athenceiim  thus  described  them: 

"The  'Cleopatra'  and  the  'Sibyl'  are  seated,  partly  draped, 
with  the  characteristic  Egyptian  gown,  that  gathers  about  the 
torso  and  falls  freely  around  the  limbs ;  the  first  is  covered  to 
the  bosom,  the  second  bare  to  the  hips. 

' '  Queenly  Cleopatra  rests  back  against  her  chair  in  meditative 
ease,  leaning  her  cheek  against  one  hand,  whose  elbow  the  rails 
of  the  seat  sustain;  the  other  is  outstretched  upon  her  knee, 
nipping  its  forefinger  upon  the  thumb  thoughtfully,  as  though 
some  firm  wilful  purpose  filled  her  brain,  as  it  seems  to  set  these 
luxurious  features  to  a  smile  as  if  the  whole  woman  'would.' 
Upon  her  head  is  the  coif,  beanng  in  front  the  mystic  urceus,  or 
twining  basilisk  of  sovereignty,  while  from  its  sides  depend  the 
wide  Egyptian  lappels,  or  wings,  that  fall  upon  her  shoulders. 
The  Sibylla  Lihyca  has  crossed  her  knees — an  action  universally 
held  among  the  ancients  as  indicative  of  reticence  or  secrecy 
and  of  power  to  bind.  A  secret-looking  dame  she  is,  in  the 
full-bloom  proportions  of  ripe  womanhood,  wherein  choosing  to 
place  his  figure  the  sculptor  has  deftly  gone  between  the  dis- 
puted point — whether  these  women  were  blooming  and  wise 
in  youth,  or  deeply  furrowed  with  age  and  burdened  with  the 
knowledge  of  centuries.  Her  forward  elbow  is  propped  upon 
one  knee;  and  to  keep  her  secret  closer,  for  this  Libyan  woman 


114  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

is  the  closest  of  all  the  sibyls,  she  rests  her  shut  mouth  upon  one 
closed  palm,  as  if  holding  the  African  mystery  deep  in  the 
brooding  brain  that  looks  out  through  mournful,  warning  eyes, 
seeing  under  the  white  shade  of  the  strange-horned  (Ammonite) 
crest  that  bears  the  mystery  of  the  Tetragrammaton  upon  its 
upturned  front.  Over  her  full  bosom,  mother  of  myriads  as  she 
was,  hangs  the  same  symbol.  Her  face  has  a  Nubian  cast,  her 
hair  wavy  and  plaited,  as  is  meet. ' ' 

Another  critic  says: 

"The  mission  of  the  Sibyl  ...  is  not  to  lure  men  on  to 
destruction — she  is  the  custodian  of  secrets,  the  secrets  of  Africa 
and  the  African  race.  And  how  close  she  keeps  them,  with  her 
locked  lower  limbs,  her  one  hand  pressing  her  chin  as  if  to  keep  in 
the  torrent  of  words  that  threatens  to  burst  forth,  while  the 
other  grasps  a  scroll  covered  with  strange  characters,  which 
would  recall  much  could  we  be  permitted  to  decipher  it." 

As  such,  Art  immortalizes  the  ideals  which  Sojourner  Truth 
suggested  to  America's  greatest  author-sculptor,  W.  W.  Story, 
whose  Libyan  Sibyl  he  considered  his  best  work.^ 

3  "Story  and  his  Friends,"  by  Henry  James,  Vol.  II,  p.  70. 


XXII 

DANIEL  A.  PAYNE 

Daniel  A.  Payne,  eminent  as  a  pioneer  educator,  advocate  for 
an  educated  and  consecrated  ministry,  first  president  of  a 
Negro  college  and  bishop  of  the  African  Methodist  Episcopal 
Church,  was  bom  of  London  and  Martha  Payne,  both  free,  in 
Charleston,  South  Carolina,  February  24,  1811.  The  father  was 
a  native  of  Virginia,  kidnapped  to  South  Carolina,  but  subse- 
quently ransomed.  Like  Samuel  of  old  the  parents  dedicated 
their  infant  child  to  the  service  in  which  he  grew  to  be  so 
conspicuous  and  so  distinguished.  Before  the  lad  was  ten,  they 
died  and  Daniel  was  cared  for  by  a  relative.  The  father  had 
taught  his  son  his  alphabet  and  easy  words  of  one  syllable  be- 
fore he  was  five  years  old.  The  first  school  in  which  he  was  a 
pupil  was  that  of  the  Miner's  Moralist  Society,  established  as 
early  as  1803  by  seven  free  colored  men,  for  the  education  of 
orphan  or  indigent  colored  children.  Young  Payne  remained 
here  for  two  years.  The  ''Columbian  Orator,"  a  self-interpret- 
ing Bible,  and  the  "Scottish  Chiefs"  were  favorite  books. 
.  He  served  a  shoemaker's  apprenticeship  a  few  months,  but 
spent  four  years  at  carpenter's  trade  and  nine  months  with  a 
tailor.  He  early  manifested  a  love  for  study.  At  this  tender 
age  he  was  anxious  to  learn  both  French  and  Latin  and  he  was 
determined  to  study  them  without  a  teacher.  When  his  day's 
work  was  at  an  end  he  would  study  until  near  midnight  and, 
rising  early  the  next  morning,  would  be  at  his  books  from  four 
to  six.  His  early  religious  impressions  were  lasting.  He  joined 
church  on  probation  at  fifteen  and  was  converted  at  eighteen. 

115 


116  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

Three  years  later  he  began  a  day  school  with  three  pupils  from 
whom  he  received  fifty  cents  each.  At  night  he  taught  three 
adult  slaves,  realizing  three  doUars  a  month.  The  next  year  he 
had  a  plain  building  erected  in  which  he  taught  until  April, 
1835.  For  fifty  years  this  building  stood  a  witness  of  the  labors 
of  his  early  manhood.  Young  Payne  taught  himself  geography 
and  six  months  after,  having  meanwhile  obtained  an  atlas,  he 
was  constructing  maps  and  teaching  these  subjects  in  his  school. 
He  had  not  as  yet  known  anything  of  English  grammar,  but  he 
mastered  Murray's  Primary  Grammar  after  going  over  it  thor- 
oughly three  times.  He  then  added  this  study  to  the  course  of 
his  school.  The  subjects  of  botany,  chemistry,  natural  phi- 
losophy and  astronomy  next  engaged  his  attention.  He  studied 
not  only  the  best  books,  but  made  original  investigations.  While 
zealously  pursuing  his  scientific  studies,  his  ambition  for  the 
languages  did  not  abate.  The  discipline  acquired  in  his  mastery 
of  English  grammar  showed  itself,  for  three  days  after  entering 
upon  the  study  of  Greek  he  was  able  to  translate  the  first 
chapter  of  Matthew  into  English.  Latin  and  French  were  next 
taken  up  with  the  same  success. 

His  method  of  the  study  of  zoolog;^'  is  thus  illustrated : 

'  *  I  bought  a  live  alligator  and  made  one  of  my  pupils  provoke 
him  to  bite,  and  whenever  he  opened  his  mouth  I  discharged  a 
load  of  shot  from  a  small  pistol  down  his  throat.  As  soon  as 
he  was  stunned  I  threw  him  on  his  back  and  cut  his  throat, 
ripped  open  his  chest,  hung  him  up  and  studied  his  viscera  till 
they  ceased  to  move." 

Such  enthusiasm  on  the  part  of  the  teacher  was  sure  to  inspire 
the  pupils,  and  the  popularity  of  his  school  overcame  all  preju- 
dices and  doubts  as  to  his  ability  as  an  instructor. 

Such  investigations  led  some  of  his  students  into  the  country 
to  buy  a  live  moccasin  snake.  There  they  met  the  owners  of  the 
slaves  from  whom  the  snake  was  to  be  obtained.  Their  curiosity 
was  aroused,  inquiry  followed  and  the  discovery  was  made  that 


DANIEL  A.  PAYNE  117 

Payne's  pupils  in  Charleston  were  engaged  in  such  studies  and 
with  such  thoroughness  that  great  danger  to  slavery  was  in- 
evitable. This  was  in  the  early  part  of  1834.  That  winter  the 
legislature  passed  a  rigid  law  forbidding  the  continuance  of  any 
schools  whatever  for  colored  children.  Payne 's  work  in  Charles- 
ton was  thus  brought  to  an  untimely  end,  and  May  9,  1835,  after 
a  sad  parting  from  the  city  of  his  birth  and  the  burial  place  of 
his  parents  and  friends,  he  turned  his  face  northward. 

On  his  arrival  in  New  York  he  called  on  Rev.  Peter  Williams, 
the  Rector  of  St.  Philip's  P.  E.  Church.  While  there  "a  lad 
of  dark  complexion  entered,  with  step  quick  and  elastic,  eyes 
beaming  with  the  light  of  superior  intellect  and  an  aspect  of 
one  possessed  with  more  than  ordinary  mental  power."  This 
youth  was  Alexander  Crummell. 

It  was  the  opinion  and  advice  of  those  to  whom  young  Payne 
had  brought  letters  of  commendation  that  he  should  engage  in 
the  work  of  the  ministry.  With  this  purpose  he  went  as  advised 
to  the  Gettysburg,  Pennsylvania,  Lutheran  Seminary,  matric- 
ulated as  a  student,  and  remained  for  two  years.  While  there 
he  cut  wood,  blacked  and  cleaned  boots  and  shoes,  acted  as 
barber  and  did  other  work  to  help  himself  along. 

Owing  to  a  prejudice  against  educated  ministers  which  at  that 
time  existed  in  the  A.  M.  E.  Church,  he  did  not  at  first  enter 
that  denomination,  but  was  licensed  in  1837,  and  in  1839  or- 
dained, by  the  Franklin  Synod  of  the  Lutheran  Church.  There 
w^as  demand  for  his  services;  he  was  immediately  invited  to 
serve  a  Presbyterian  church  in  East  Troy,  N.  Y.,  and  he  received 
another  invitation  from  the  Second  Colored  Presbyterian  Church 
in  Philadelphia.  He  accepted  the  former.  He  was  also  offered 
three  hundred  dollars  a  year  and  traveling  expenses  as  agent  of 
the  American  Anti-slavery  Society,  but  bitterly  opposed  as  he 
was  to  slaverj^  he  declined  the  offer  because  it  was  not  in  har- 
mony with  his  work  as  a  preacher  pure  and  simple. 

The  same  earnestness  and  energy  which  he  had  displayed  in 


118  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

the  schoolroom,  he  carried  into  the  pulpit.  So  rigorous  were 
his  utterances  that  he  soon  ruptured  the  left  gland  of  his  throat 
and  lost  the  use  of  his  voice  for  about  a  year.  He  was  com- 
pelled to  take  a  slate  and  pencil  with  him  to  carry  on  the 
slightest  conversation.  But  though  he  could  not  preach,  Payne 
was  not  idle.  In  1840  he  opened  a  private  school  in  Phila- 
delphia, beginning,  as  in  Charleston,  with  three  pupils  and 
taught  with  such  success  that  before  giving  it  up  in  1843  he  had 
enrolled  sixty  pupils.  In  the  winter  of  1841  he  joined  the 
Bethel  A.  M.  E.  Church  of  that  city  and  was  received  in  the 
Philadelphia  Conference  of  the  same  denomination  as  a  local 
preacher  in  1842.  The  next  year  he  was  received  into  full 
membership  and  joined  the  traveling  ministry. 

Rev.  Payne's  first  appointment  was  Israel  Bethel  (A.  M.  E. 
Church)  in  Washington,  D.  C,  then  located  on  South  Capitol 
Street,  immediately  south  of  the  Capitol.  Before  he  could  begin 
his  work,  he  had  to  give  a  bond  of  $1,000.^  As  the  church  was 
too  poor  to  put  seats  in  the  basement,  liis  apprenticeship  as 
carpenter  in  Charleston  became  of  service,  for  he  pulled  off 
his  coat  and  with  a  plane  and  other  carpenter's  tools  constructed 
the  pews  for  the  basement  of  the  church. 

His  first  year  was  a  very  active  one.  Besides  his  labors  in 
the  pulpit  he  organized  the  first  colored  pastors'  association  in 
the  District  of  Columbia,  possibly  in  the  country,  though  there 
were  only  two  other  members  besides  himself.  Rev.  John  F. 
Cook,  organizer  of  the  Fifteenth  Street  Presbyterian  Church, 
and  Rev.  Levi  Collins.  The  next  year,  1844,  he  attended  the 
General  Conference,  the  legislative  body  of  the  church,  and  as 
Chairman  of  the  Committee  on  Education  secured  the  adoption, 
though  not  without  stubborn  opposition,  of  a  course  of  studies 
for  young  preachers.     He  also  laid  the  foundation  for  the  Home 

1  Slavery  in  the  District  of  Columbia — Tremain,  also  Special  Report 
U.  S.  Commissioner  of  Education,  1870;  Ordinance  supplementary  to  that 
of  1827,  October  29,  1836. 


DANIEL  A.  PAYNE  119 

and  Foreign  Mission  Society.  After  two  years  at  Washington 
during  which  he  published  Education  of  the  Ministry — the 
development  of  letters  originally  contributed  by  him  when 
at  Baltimore  to  a  monthly  magazine  the  organ  of  the  A.  M.  E. 
Church — he  went  to  Baltimore  where  he  remained  five  years. 
It  is  notable  among  other  things  that  Rev.  Payne  delivered  a 
lecture  on  Benjamin  Banneker  and  personally  located  the  burial 
place  of  the  black  astronomer  ^  beneath  two  tulip  trees  so  grown 
as  to  seem  one  and  had  planned  a  fitting  design  for  a  monu- 
ment to  mark  Banneker 's  last  resting  place. 

The  interest  which  Rev.  Payne  manifested  in  the  cause  of 
education  of  the  young  soon  found  him  as  at  Philadelphia,  at 
the  head  of  a  school.  This  it  was  not  his  original  purpose  to  do, 
but  he  yielded  to  the  urgent  request  of  one  of  his  members  by 
consenting  to  instruct  her  elder  children  in  his  private  study ; 
but  before  a  year  had  passed  there  were  fifty  children  under 
his  instruction.  Such  was  the  growth  and  development  of  tliis 
school  that  it  fixed  his  stay  in  Baltimore  two  years  beyond  the 
time  which  a  preacher  could  under  the  rules  and  regulation  of 
his  denomination  remain  in  one  city. 

As  an  example  of  his  energy  and  executive  ability  a  brief 
statement  of  the  work  accomplished  by  him  seems  incredible. 
He  rose  daily  at  five  o'clock,  took  his  regular  morning  walk, 
studied  from  six  to  nine,  was  in  the  schoolroom  from  nine  to 
two  p.  M.,  after  which  he  made  five  to  ten  pastoral  visits — he 
had  a  membership  from  one  thousand  to  fifteen  hundred — and 
retired  regularly  at  ten  o'clock.  Bethel,  Ebenezer  and  Union 
Bethel  were  his  ministerial  charges. 

The  Evangelical  Alliance  was  organized  in  London  in  1846 
and  Rev.  Payne  was  sent  as  a  delegate  by  his  church.  A  stormy 
voyage  compelled  his  return  to  America,  but  there  are  storms 
on  land  as  well  as  on  sea,  and  he  was  the  victim  of  one  of  the 
former.     A  church  mob  that  was  opposed  to  his  straightfor- 

2  Supra,  Banneker. 


120  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

ward,  upright  manner,  and  his  opposition  to  the  noisy  worship 
of  those  times,  led  to  his  refusal  by  Ebenezer  Church  as  pastor. 
A  special  reason  was  because  he  lived  in  too  grand  style  and 
would  not  take  tea  with  them.  But  this  refusal  gave  him  op- 
portunity to  render  a  most  invaluable  service  for  the  entire  con- 
nection. The  General  Conference  of  1848  had  appointed  him  to 
write  the  history  of  the  connection,  so  he  visited  every  church  in 
all  the  Eastern  and  Western  States,  collecting  material  for  the 
work — going  as  far  South  as  New  Orleans  and  even  extending 
his  journey  through  the  villages,  townas  and  cities  of  Canada, 
meanwhile  supporting  himself  by  delivering  lectures  on  edu- 
cation. He  had  about  completed  the  tour  when  the  General 
Conference  of  1852  drew  nigh.  At  this  Conference  he  was, 
against  his  opposition,  elected  a  bishop,  which  must  be  regarded 
as  the  most  important  step  up  to  that  time  taken  by  the  grow- 
ing church.  When  the  outspoken  opposition  to  educated  preach- 
ers is  considered,  and  the  very  few  there  were  who  had  even 
elementary  qualifications,  the  election  of  a  man  of  Bishop 
Payne's  capabilities  can  only  be  accounted  for  on  the  ground 
that  it  was  providential. 

With  his  election  and  that  of  his  colleague.  Rev.  Willis  Nazrey, 
there  were  three  bishops.  The  work  was  divided  between  them 
and  the  first  bishops'  council  was  held. 

Bishop  Payne  was  a  most  active  and  energetic  worker  in  the 
first  twelve  years  of  his  service  in  this  higher  office.  He  traveled 
far  and  wide — to  New  Orleans,  St.  Louis  and  Washington,  all 
slave  territory  and  at  peril  to  his  safety.  He  also  visited  Canada, 
the  home  of  thousands  of  fugitive  slaves.  At  several  of  these 
places  he  lectured  the  people  on  education  and  established  liter- 
ary and  historical  associations  to  improve  the  ministry  and  peo- 
ple. During  these  years  he  also  organized  mothers'  associations 
thereby  showing  his  interest  in  home  training. 

The  Civil  War  came  on  apace,  and  in  1862  he  was  in  Washing- 
ton M^here  he  consulted  with  such  statesmen  as  Elihu  B.  Wash- 


DANIEL  A.  PAYNE  121 

burne,  the  friend  of  General  U.  S.  Grant,  Carl  Scliurz,  the 
brilliant  orator,  Charles  Sumner,  the  statesman,  and  more  than 
once  saw  President  Lincoln. 

The  following  in  Bishop  Payne's  own  words  gives  what  took 
place  at  one  of  these  interviews :  ' '  The  following  JMonday  night, 
April  14,  1862,  I  called  on  President  Lincoln  to  know  if  he  in- 
tended to  sign  the  bill  of  emancipation  and  thereby  exterminate 
slavery  in  the  District  of  Columbia.  Having  been  previously 
informed  of  my  intention  to  interview  him,  and  having  on  my 
arrival  at  the  White  House  sent  in  my  card,  he  met  me  at  the 
door  of  the  room  in  which  he  and  Senator  "Washbume  were 
conversing.  Taking  me  by  the  hand,  he  said:  'Bishop  Payne, 
of  the  African  M.  E.  Church?'  I  answered  in  the  affirmative; 
so  with  my  hand  in  his  he  led  me  to  the  fireplace,  introduced 
me  to  Senator  Washbume,  and  seated  me  in  an  arm  chair  be- 
tween himself  and  the  Senator.  At  that  moment  Senator  Carl 
Schurz  entered  the  room  and  seated  himself  on  the  right  of 
Senator  Washburne.  ...  I  said:  *I  am  here  to  learn  whether 
or  not  you  intend  to  sign  the  bill  of  emancipation?'  He  an- 
swered and  said :  '  There  was  a  company  of  gentlemen  here  to- 
day requesting  me  by  no  means  to  sign  it.'  To  which  Senator 
Carl  Schurz  replied:  'But,  Mr.  President,  there  will  be  a 
committee  to  beg  that  you  fail  not  to  sign  it,  for  all  Europe  is 
looking  to  see  that  you  fail  not.'  Then  said  I:  'Mr.  President, 
you  will  remember  that  on  the  eve  of  your  departure  from 
Springfield,  Illinois,  you  begged  the  citizens  of  the  Republic  to 
pray  for  you.'  He  said:  'Yes.'  Said  I:  'From  that  moment 
we,  the  colored  citizens  of  the  Republic,  have  been  praying,  "O 
Lord,  just  as  Thou  didst  cause  the  throne  of  David  to  wax 
stronger  and  stronger,  while  that  of  Saul  should  wax  weaker 
and  weaker,  so  we  beseech  Thee  cause  the  power  at  Washington 
to  grow  stronger  and  stronger,  while  that  at  Richmond  shall 
grow  weaker  and  weaker."  '  Slightly  bending  his  head,  the 
President  saidf     'Well,   I   must  believe   that  God  has  led  me 


122  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

thus  far;  for  I  am  conscious  that  I  never  would  have  accom- 
plished what  has  been  done,  if  He  had  not  been  with  me  to 
counsel  and  to  shield.'  But,  neither  Carl  Schurz  nor  I  could 
induce  him  to  say  'Yes'  or  *No'  to  our  direct  question." 

The  most  important  act,  however,  of  Bishop  Payne  was  his 
purchase,  March  10,  1863,  of  Wilberforce  University,  an  insti- 
tution started  in  1856  by  the  Methodist  Episcopal  Church  at 
Xenia,  Ohio,  for  the  instruction  of  colored  youth.  This  power- 
ful religious  body  found  such  an  undertaking  far  beyond  their 
disposition  to  maintain.  "What  to  do  with  this  was  a  most 
serious  problem.  It  was  burdened  with  a  heavy  mortgage  which 
those  in  charge  did  not  feel  themselves  able  and  willing  to  wipe 
out.  At  a  critical  moment  Bishop  Payne  bought  it  for  the 
African  Methodist  Episcopal  Church  for  the  sum  of  ten  thou- 
sand dollars,  although  he  did  not  have  a  single  dollar  in  his 
possession,  the  property  of  the  A.  M.  E.  Church,  with  which  to 
make  good  the  obligation.  He  thus  narrates  the  circumstances 
of  its  purchase :  "I  met  the  trustees  who  urged  me  to  purchase 
the  property  of  Wilberforce  for  the  A.  M.  E.  Church.  I  begged 
for  three  months'  time  in  which  I  could  consult  the  spring  con- 
ferences in  order  that  I  might  secure  their  sanction  and  co- 
operation. But  the  trustees  refused  for  the  reason  that  the 
State  of  Ohio  desired  the  property  for  one  of  its  asylums,  that 
the  legislature  then  in  session  demanded  an  answer  by  noon  on 
the  11th.  Still  I  hesitated  and  begged  for  time  to  consult  and 
secure  the  pledge  of  the  spring  conferences.  Said  they:  'Now 
or  never.'  Then  immediately  I  threw  myself  on  the  strong  arm 
of  the  Lord,  and  said:  'In  the  name  of  the  Lord,  I  buy  the 
property  of  Wilberforce  for  the  African  Methodist  Episcopal 
Church.'  The  brethren  (all  white  men)  cried  out,  'Amen, 
Amen,  Amen,'  then  fell  on  their  knees  and  prayed  for  my 
success. ' ' 

United  in  his  early  effort  for  Wilberforce  were  the  late  Bishop 
James  A.  Shorter  and  Rev.  John  6.  Mitchell.     The  wife  of  the 


DANIEL  A.  PAYNE  123 

former  gave  the  first  hundred  dollars.  Within  three  months  the 
first  payment  of  $2,500  was  made  and  the  title  deeds  were 
handed  the  three,  Payne,  Mitchell,  and  Shorter,  as  agents  of 
the  A.  M.  E.  Church.  Bishop  Payne  was  elected  to  its  presi- 
dency, which  made  him  the  first  Negro  college  president  in  the 
United  States.  Within  eighteen  months  $5,000  more  of  the 
purchase-money  was  paid. 

By  a  remarkable  coincidence,  on  the  day  when  the  Nation  was 
mourning  the  assassination  of  Abraham  Lincoln,  April  15,  1865, 
the  main  building  was  destroyed  by  fire,  believed  to  be  the 
work  of  an  incendiary.  Bishop  Payne  was  then  in  Baltimore 
holding  a  conference. 

In  the  sixteen  years  in  which  the  bishop  was  president  of 
Wilberforee  his  work  was  tremendous.  As  bishop  he  exacted  of 
all  applicants  for  the  ministry  that  they  should  give  considerable 
time  to  systematic  study  and  lead  exemplary  lives;  as  an  edu- 
cator in  this  critical  period,  the  first  ten  years  of  the  Negro 
after  emancipation  and  through  the  Reconstruction  Period,  he 
trained  scores  of  young  men  and  women  to  usefulness,  both  in 
the  pulpit  and  the  schoolroom.  They  and  the  result  of  their 
work  are  found  all  over  the  country. 

Bishop  Payne  had  frequently  visited  President  Lincoln  dur- 
ing the  last  two  years  of  the  Civil  War.  He  had  also  visited 
Andrew  Johnson  while  governor  of  Tennessee  and  among  others 
had  looked  in  the  large  schools  for  freedmen  under  the  instruc- 
tion of  white  teachers  from  New  England  and  the  West  at 
different  points  of  the  South.  Such  a  school  was  on  the  plan- 
tation of  former  Governor  Henry  A.  Wise  in  Princess  Anne 
County,  near  Norfolk,  Va.  But  the  greatest  satisfaction  of  all 
was  his  return  to  Charleston,  South  Carolina,  reaching  there 
exactly  thirty  years  to  the  day  and  hour  from  that  at  which  he 
was  forced  to  leave  it  hy  the  laivs  of  the  State.  He  found  a  few 
old  friends,  preached  with  eloquence  to  the  sons  and  daughters 
of  those  who  knew  him  as  their  wonderful  teacher  of  a  gener- 


124  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

ation  past,  but  the  crowning  work  of  this  visit  was  the  organi- 
zation of  the  South  Carolina  Conference,  May  15,  1865.  From 
this  as  a  center  the  A.  M.  E.  Church  was  carried  into  North 
Carolina,  to  the  remotest  corner  of  the  Palmetto  State,  and 
throughout  Georgia,  Florida  and  Alabama. 

Service  similar  to  that  rendered  by  him  twenty  years  before 
throughout  the  North  and  West,  Bishop  Payne  now  performed 
in  the  South.  Bright-eyed  boys  and  girls  were  encouraged 
through  his  influence  to  pursue  their  studies  to  the  point  where 
as  teachers  or  preachers  they  could  help  lift  burdens  of  ignorance 
and  immorality  in  the  way  of  the  elevation  and  progress  of  their 
race. 

He  twice  visited  Europe.  In  1867,  going  out  in  the  same 
steamer  with  William  Lloyd  Garrison,  the  American,  and  George 
Thompson,  the  English  abolitionist.  Both  in  England  and 
France  he  received  much  social  attention.  Fourteen  years  later 
he  was  delegate  to  the  First  Ecumenical  Conference  of  the  Meth- 
odist Church,  a  world-wide  federation  that  met  in  London,  where 
his  dignified,  refined  and  consecrated  manner,  added  to  his 
splendid  abilities,  gave  a  very  high  place  to  the  work  of  the 
A.  M.  E.  Church.  On  the  17th  of  September,  1881,  he  presided 
over  this  body. 

When  he  resigned  the  active  management  of  the  university 
he  gave  his  principal  energies  to  his  religious  work  and  his 
literary  labors.  Among  his  published  works  are,  "Domestic 
Education,"  "Poems,"  "Education  of  the  Ministry,"  "A.  M. 
E.  Semi-Centenary,"  "Recollections  of  Seventy  Years"  and 
"History  of  the  A.  M.  E.  Church." 

The  literary  associations  connected  with  the  A.  M.  E.  Churches 
throughout  the  country  and  indirectly  the  lyceums  of  other  de- 
nominations is  a  part  of  the  fruitage  of  the  seed  sown  by  Bishop 
Payne  in  his  early  years. 

During  the  last  ten  years  of  his  life  his  work  as  a  bishop  was 
comparatively  nominal,  as  he  gave  much  of  his  time  to  literary 


DANIEL  A.  PAYNE  125 

work  and  spent  his  winters  in  Jacksonville,  Florida.  In  no 
organization,  not  strictly  denominational,  was  he  more  success- 
ful than  in  the  establishment  and  fostering  care  of  the  Bethel 
Literary  Association  at  the  National  Capital,  whose  reputation 
is  world-wide. 

In  the  World's  Parliament  of  Religions,  held  in  Chicago  in 
connection  with  the  Columbian  Exposition  of  1893,  Bishop 
Payne  was  a  most  striking  figure.  No  one  commanded  more 
respect.  At  the  celebration  of  the  liberties  of  the  American 
Continent,  held  September  22,  the  bishop  presided,  a  fitting 
recognition  of  his  eminence  as  a  prelate  and  a  representative 
of  the  "despised  race"  whose  liberties  had  been  but  lately  en- 
larged. 

The  bishop  shortly  afterwards  left  Chicago  for  his  home  at 
Wilberforce  where  he  made  his  usual  preparation  for  his  fall 
and  winter  sojourn  in  Florida,  but  November  20,  the  day  be- 
fore the  time  fixed  for  his  departure  for  Jacksonville,  his  spirit 
took  its  flight. 

The  appearance  of  Bishop  Payne  was  that  of  chronic  invalid- 
ism; thin  almost  to  emaciation,  below  the  average  height;  feat- 
ures sharp;  keen,  penetrating  eyes;  voice,  sharp  and  shrill,  but 
with  an  ample  forehead  indicating  intellectual  strength  and  re- 
finement. 


XXIII 

HENRY   HIGHLAND   GARNET    ^ 

The  Convention  Movement  developed  a  leadership  among  the 
American  Negroes  that  exerted  a  wide  influence  upon  the  race 
throughout  the  North  and  on  the  Nation.  Among  the  foremost 
stands  Henry  Highland  Garnet,  whose  address  to  the  slaves  of 
the  country,  while  it  stirred  the  Convention  held  in  1843,  at 
Buffalo,  to  a  degree  of  enthusiasm  unequaled  by  any  other 
single  deliverance  in  the  thirty  years  of  the  Movement,  never- 
theless was  so  bold  and  aggressive  that  the  Convention 
actually  refused  to  adopt  it.  They  feared  the  consequences  of 
giving  sanction  to  so  revolutionary  and  radical  a  doctrine. 
Garnet,  however,  was  not  playing  to  the  galleries.  The  same 
defiant,  militant  spirit  exliibited  when  he  learned  on  his  return 
to  New  York  fourteen  years  before,  that  slaveholders  from 
Maryland,  tracing  the  flight  of  the  family  to  New  York  had 
dared  to  attempt  to  apprehend,  seize  and  return  them  to  slavery ; 
the  spirit  which  had  actually  taken  the  offensive  against  the 
New  Hampshire  mob  that  had  closed  the  Academy  at  Canaan  in 
which  he,  Alexander  Crummell  and  Thomas  S.  Sidney  were 
students — this  spirit  before  the  chosen  delegates  of  the  freemen 
of  the  North  threw  down  the  gage  to  slaveholding  America.  It 
was  a  command  for  the  slaves  to  rise  in  their  might  and  strike 
a  blow  for  freedom.  Though  the  Convention  refused  to  adopt 
the  address,  it  was  nevertheless  published.  John  Brown,  who 
sixteen  years  later  led  the  insurrection  at  Harper's  Ferry,  pub- 
lished and  circulated  Garnet's  address  at  his  own  expense. 

No  extract  from  this  address  can  give  a  clear  idea  of  its  logic, 

126 


iDWAUT)W.3l.YD^I^j 


HENRY  HIGHLAND  GARNET  127 

its  aptness  of  statement,  its  indignant  protest  against  slavery,  its 
eloquence.  It  deserves  to  be  printed  and  preserved  as  a  docu- 
ment of  like  :-liaracter  as  Magna  Charta  and  the  Declaration  of 

Independence.  _  -,  ^^,     ^^ 

-Brethren,  arise,  arise!  Strike  for  your  lives  and  liberties. 
Now  is  the  day  and  hour.  Let  every  slave  throughout  the  land 
do  this  and  the  days  of  slavery  are  numbered.  You  can  not 
be  more  oppressed  than  you  have  been.  You  can  not  suffer 
greater  cruelties  than  you  have  already.  Bather  die  freemen 
than  live  to  he  slaves.  Remember  that  you  are  four  miUions! 
It  is  in  your  power  so  to  torment  the  God-cursed  slaveholder  that 
they  will  be  glad  to  let  you  go  free.  If  the  scale  was  turned,  and 
black  men  were  the  masters  and  white  men  the  slaves,  every  de- 
structive agent  and  element  would  be  employed  to  lay  his  op- 
pressor low."  ,,    ,,       1  A.        f 

"Rather  die  freemen  than  live  to  be  slaves,"  the  keynote  of 
the  address  was  more  than  a  mild  protest  against  the  pro-slavery 
prosecutions  to  which  freemen  of  color  were  subjected  through- 
out the  North  seventy  years  ago.  .  ^x    i    ^    ir     ^ 

Garnet  was  bom  December  23,  1815,  at  New  Market  Kent 
County,  Maryland.  At  the  early  age  of  ten  the  family  left  by 
the  Underground  Railroad  for  the  North  and  stopped  m  New 
York  City  Here  he  availed  himself  of  the  meager  educational 
advantages  which  the  metropolis  gave  colored  youth.  Aspiring 
for  higher  education,  he  went  fii^t  in  vain  to  New  Hampshire  as 
indicated  and  subsequently  to  Oneida  Institute,  Whitesboro,  New 
York  of  which  Beriah  Green,  a  very  capable  educator,  was 
Drincipal  In  1840  he  graduated  and  shortly  afterward  entered 
the  Presbyterian  Ministry,  founded  a  Presbyterian  Church  at 
Troy,  New  York,  meanwhile  editing  a  weekly  newspaper  caUed 

The  school  attended  by  Garnet  included  among  other  boys, 
Ira  Aldridge,  who  became  the  great  actor,  Patrick  H.  Reason,  the 
splendid  engraver,  who  twenty-five  years  afterwards  engraved 


128  THE  NEGKO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

the  massive  coffin  plate  of  Daniel  Webster,  his  brother,  Prof. 
Charles  L.  Reason,  Rev.  Alexander  Cruimnell,  Dr.  James  Mc- 
Cune  Smith  and  Samuel  Ringgold  Ward,  ' '  the  ablest  thinker  on 
his  legs." 

Garnet  was  a  natural  born  orator.  He  had  keen  wit,  was 
fond  of  the  poets,  possessed  a  lively  imagination,  was  quick 
at  repartee  and  was  endowed  with  a  sympathetic  voice  that  alike 
reached  the  child  of  tender  years,  the  man  in  his  prime  and  those 
past  the  meridian.  He  was  also  combative.  Few  were  the  men 
at  that  time  who  would  dare  to  meet  him  in  debate  before  an 
audience.  On  the  platform  in  behalf  of  the  slave,  or  in  the  pul- 
pit as  a  champion  of  Christianity,  his  voice  once  heard  echoed 
and  reechoed  throughout  the  chambers  of  memory,  carrying  its 
message  and  fulfilling  its  mission. 

In  the  darkest  hour  of  the  anti-slavery  struggle,  from  1855 
to  1864,  and  after  the  Civil  War,  he  was  in  charge  of  Shiloh 
Presbyterian  Church  in  New  York  City,  where  his  voice  was 
heard  not  only  by  his  congregation  but  his  sermons  and  addresses 
reported  in  the  press  of  that  city,  found  their  way  throughout 
the  country.  For  a  time  he  was  pastor  of  the  15th  Street  Pres- 
byterian Church  in  Washington,  D.  C,  a  position  now  filled  by 
Rev.  F.  J.  Grimke.  Here  Members  of  Congress  and  other  dis- 
tinguished men  in  the  war  time  listened  to  his  voice.  After 
the  adoption  by  Congress  of  the  Thirteenth  Amendment  abolish- 
ing slaverj^  at  the  request  of  Representatives,  the  Chaplain  of 
the  House  of  Representatives,  Rev.  William  H.  Channing,  ex- 
tended to  Dr.  Garnet  an  invitation  to  preach  in  the  House  of 
Representatives  a  sermon  in  memorial  of  the  triumph  of  the 
Union  Army  and  the  deliverance  of  the  country  from  chattel 
slavery.  The  contrast  was  the  more  remarkable  that  no  colored 
person  was  permitted  to  have  access  to  the  Capitol  grounds. 
Dr.  Garnet  rose  to  the  occasion.  A  memorial  volume  was  pub- 
lished with  a  biographical  sketch  by  Dr.  James  A.  McCune  Smith 
of  New  York,  the  foremost  literary  Negro  of  that  period. 


HENRY  HIGHLAND  GARNET  129 

From  the  National  Capital  he  went  to  Avery  College,  Alle- 
gheny, Pennsylvania,  as  its  president,  but  although  he  was  a 
great  admirer  of  youth,  the  position  of  college  president  was  not 
to  his  taste  and  he  returned  to  his  old  pulpit  in  New  York. 

The  passage  of  the  Fifteenth  Amendment  which  removed  the 
restriction  against  the  use  of  the  elective  franchise,  gave  to  the 
Negro  in  the  North  a  potential  political  influence,  and  power 
to  men  who  could  sway  the  multitude  by  their  eloquence 
and  oratory.  Henry  Highland  Garnet  in  addition  to  being  the 
magnetic  pulpit  orator  became  in  emergencies  the  popular  polit- 
ical leader.  In  18i72  Frederick  Douglass  was  chosen  elector  in 
the  Presidential  canvass  that  reelected  Ulysses  S.  Grant  as  Presi- 
dent, and  in  1880  when  James  A.  Garfield  was  chosen,  the  Em- 
pire State  was  honored  in  the  nomination  and  confirmation  of 
Henry  Highland  Garnet,  as  Minister  Resident  and  Consul  Gen- 
eral to  Liberia.  He  was  now  sixty-six  years  old  and  his  personal 
friends  advised  against  the  acceptance  of  the  new  position,  which 
required  residence  in  a  treacherous  and  unhealthy  climate,  but 
worn  out  by  long,  unrequited  service  in  behalf  of  his  people, 
broken  in  health,  with  his  domestic  circle  no  longer  the  ideal 
home  of  his  prime.  Garnet  gladly  accepted  the  honor.  The 
author  recalls  this  language  from  Garnet's  lips  expressed  during 
a  dinner  tendered  him  during  his  last  visit  to  the  Capital :  ' '  Oh, 
Alexander,"  addressing  his  host,  Dr.  Crummell,  ''if  I  can  just 
reach  the  land  of  my  forefathers  and  with  my  feet  press  her 
soil,  I  shall  be  content  to  die."  This  was  a  prophecy  shortly  ful- 
filled. Dr.  Garnet  reached  ^Monrovia  late  in  the  year  1881,  and 
before  two  months  had  passed  away,  his  proud  spirit  was  re- 
leased. He  was  given  a  public  funeral,  honors  befitting  his  high 
station  were  given  his  remains.  Edward  W.  BIyden  who  had 
known  him  for  two  decades,  delivered  the  eulogy. 


XXIV 

ALEXANDER  CRUMMELL 

Alexander  Crummell  was  born  in  New  York  City  March  3, 
1819.  His  father,  Boston  Crummell,  was  the  son  of  a  Timanee 
Chief  in  "West  Africa,  and  his  mother  and  her  ancestors  for  sev- 
eral generations  were  free  New  Yorkers.  One  of  his  earliest 
recollections  was  the  sight  of  the  landing  in  New  York  of  several 
refugees  who  had  escaped  in  an  open  boat  from  Southampton 
County,  Virginia,  the  scene  of  the  Nat  Turner  Insurrection. 
They  disappeared  almost  as  suddenly  as  they  came. 

Among  his  companions  at  a  school  established  by  Quakers  were 
Henry  Highland  G-arnet  and  Thomas  S.  Sidney,  who  like  him- 
self were  bent  on  obtaining  an  education  beyond  the  meager 
facilities  offered  in  the  public  schools.  They  went  in  1835  to 
Canaan,  New  Hampshire,  where  an  academy  had  been  opened  by 
some  abolitionists,  without  restriction  as  to  race  or  sex.  Though 
welcomed  by  the  principal,  the  ruling  sentiment  of  the  neighbor- 
hood was  against  such  an  institution  for  the  higher  education  of 
Negroes.  On  the  fourth  of  July,  Crummell,  Garnet  and  Sidney 
took  part  as  speakers  at  the  National  Holiday  Celebration. 
This  added  fuel  to  the  smoldering  flame,  and  in  the  next  month, 
August,  a  mob  assembled  and  with  the  aid  of  ninety-five  yoke  of 
oxen  and  two  days'  hard  labor,  removed  the  academy  from  its 
site  to  a  swamp. 

When  the  young  lads  were  leaving  the  community  the  mob  cele- 
brated their  departure  by  a  salute  of  many  guns  from  an  old 
field  piece.  At  Hanover,  New  Hampshire,  the  seat  of  Dartmouth 
College,  and  only  five  miles  from  Canaan,  these  three  began  their 

130 


ALEXANDER  CRUMMELL  131 

journey  homeward,  which  occupied  a  day  and  a  night,  across  the  ^" 

border  of  the  State,  through  Vermont  to  Albany,  New  York,  on 
the  top  of  a  stage.  There  was  no  railroad  communication  and 
colored  travelers  were  not  permitted  to  ride  inside. 

The  next  year  the  three  entered  Oneida  Institute  at  which 
Rev.  Beriah  Green  was  president  where  young  Crummell  re- 
mained three  years. 

In  1839  he  applied  for  admission  to  the  General  Theological 
Seminary  of  the  Protestant  Episcopal  Church  at  New  York  as  a 
candidate  for  holy  orders  on  the  recommendation  of  his  rector, 
Rev.  Peter  Williams  of  St,  Philip's  Church,  in  that  city. 
Notwithstanding  the  rules  of  the  Seminary  provided  for  the 
admission  of  any  candidate  who  presented  himself  thus  recom- 
mended, the  application  was  referred  to  the  trustees  and  their 
committee  reported  that ' '  having  deliberately  considered  the  said 
petition  they  are  of  opinion  that  it  ought  not  to  be  granted." 
This  report  was  adopted.  Pending  action,  however,  Mr.  Crum- 
meU  was  advised  to  withdraw  his  petition,  but  he  declined  to  do 
so  or  to  accept  the  private  instruction  by  the  faculty  which,  he 
was  assured,  they  were  perfectly  ■v\illing  to  give.  The  conven- 
tion also  passed  a  canon  prohibiting  admission  to  one  of  the  de- 
spised race. 

He  then  went  to  Boston  where  he  was  more  fortunate,  for  here 
he  was  ordained  to  the  diaconate  in  1842  by  Bishop  Griswold. 
Two  years  later,  after  due  preparation  under  Dr.  A.  H.  Vinton  of 
Providence,  Rhode  Island,  he  was  ordained  priest  by  Bishop  Lee 
of  Delaware  at  St.  Paul's  Church,  Philadelphia,  December,  1844, 
and  given  work.  But  owing  to  poverty  and  ill  health  his  lot  was 
a  hard  one.  He  conducted  a  private  school  for  boys,  which 
though  patronized  by  some  of  the  best  citizens  did  not  yield  him 
adequate  support. 

Failing  to  obtain  the  necessary  financial  support  for  his  mis- 
sionary work  and  advised  by  friends,  he  went  to  England.  There 
he  was  cordially  received ;  he  preached  throughout  England  and 


132  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

laid  the  foundation  for  friendship  with  many  representative 
citizens  that  continued  through  his  life.  In  1851  he  entered 
Queen's  College,  Cambridge  University,  from  which  he  took  his 
A.  B.  degree  in  1853,  His  purpose  was  then  to  return  to  America 
and  renew  his  ministerial  work,  but  owing  to  failing  health 
he  went  to  Africa  and  there  began  his  missionary  career. 

For  twenty  years  he  labored  both  as  clergyman  and  educator, 
visiting  different  parts  of  Liberia  and  Sierra  Leone,  delivering 
speeches  and  addresses  without  taking  any  active  part  in  poli- 
tics. 

During  this  time  he  made  two  visits  to  the  United  States,  re- 
turning here  permanently  in  1873  when  he  was  put  in  charge  of 
the  St,  Mary's  P.  E.  Mission  in  Washington.  He  took  hold  of 
the  work  with  such  energy  and  zeal  that  at  once  a  flourishing 
congregation  was  built  up  and  the  St,  Luke's  P.  E,  Church  sub- 
sequently erected.  During  his  nearly  twenty-two  years  of  serv- 
ice, Dr,  Crummell  made  extensive  trips  to  the  leading  cities  of 
the  country.  North,  South,  and  West,  delivering  sermons,  lec- 
tures and  addresses  to  colleges  and  religious  conventions  on  a 
variety  of  topics,  attracting  large  and  interested  audiences  by 
his  charm  of  manner,  his  choice  diction,  his  broad  scholarship, 
his  wide  range  of  information  and  his  splendid  optimism. 

One  of  his  most  striking  traits  was  the  championship  of  the 
cause  of  his  race,  his  readiness  and  eagerness  to  defend  it  from 
vicious  assaults.  The  topics  for  his  popular  addresses  were  sug- 
gested by  some  racial  weakness,  his  exalted  ideals,  or  in  opposi- 
tion to  some  popular  fallacy.  His  productions,  from  his  early 
days,  when  not  thirty  he  delivered  in  New  York  the  eulogy  on 
Thomas  Clarkson,  the  great  English  abolitionist,  throughout  his 
career  in  Liberia  and  since  his  return  from  abroad  to  round  out 
his  activities  here,  stamp  him  as  thinker,  ripe  scholar,  able  advo- 
cate and  eloquent  defender.  While  a  citizen  of  Liberia  he  pub- 
lished in  1862  * '  The  Future  of  Africa, ' '  a  volume  of  ten  addresses 
sermons  and  lectures,  which  was  well  received  in  America,  Eng- 


ALEXANDER  CRUMMELL  133 

land  and  Africa.  This  was  followed  in  1882  by  ''The  Greatness 
of  Christ  and  Other  Sermons, ' '  a  book  of  three  hundred  and  fifty- 
two  pages,  published  in  response  to  the  request  of  many  literary 
friends.  It  also  met  with  a  large  sale,  but  as  it  did  not  include 
many  secular  addresses  of  surpassing  excellence,  another  work 
' '  Africa  and  America ' '  of  four  hundred  and  sixty-six  pages  fol- 
lowed in  1891. 

In  1882  Rev.  J.  L.  Tucker,  D.D.,  a  well-known  white  Protes- 
tant Episcopal  clergj' man  of  ]\Iississippi,  made  a  most  libelous 
attack  on  the  Negro  race  before  the  Church  Congress  of  that  de- 
nomination at  Richmond,  Virginia.  The  purpose  of  this  attack 
was  to  close  all  Northern  and  Negro  agencies  for  the  promotion  of 
Church  work  at  the  South.  To  this  Dr.  Crummell  replied  at 
length  in  a  pamphlet  entitled  "A  Defence  of  the  Negro  Race 
in  America,"  with  such  directness,  crushing  logic  and  ability 
that  its  publication  created  a  sensation  equal  to  Dr.  Tucker 's  in- 
dictment, which  it  completely  demolished.  It  may  be  pertinent 
to  add  that  Dr.  Tucker  never  subsequently  entered  the  lists, 
especially  against  the  Negro.  With  ''The  Black  "Woman  of  the 
South ;  Her  Neglects  and  Her  Needs, ' '  as  his  theme,  Dr.  Crummell 
delivered  a  most  remarkable  address  before  the  Freedmen's  Aid 
Society  of  the  Methodist  Episcopal  Church,  at  Ocean  Grove,  New 
Jersey,  August  15,  1883,  and  repeated  it  at  various  other  places 
throughout  the  country.  It  had  a  circulation  of  500,000  copies 
and  brought  more  than  a  million  of  dollars  into  the  coffers  of 
that  society  for  which  it  was  specifically  prepared. 

Dr.  Crummell  was  for  many  years  president  of  the  Colored 
Ministers'  Union  of  Washington,  an  undenominational  organi- 
zation and  a  member  of  the  "Commission  for  Church  Work 
Among  Colored  People."  But  his  latest  and  by  many  con- 
sidered the  crowning  work  of  his  life  was  the  founding  by  him, 
March  5,  1897,  of  the  American  Negro  Academy,  "an  organiza- 
tion of  authors,  scholars,  artists,  and  those  distinguished  in  other 
walks  of  life ;  men  of  African  descent,  for  the  promotion  of  let- 


134  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

ters,  science  and  art;  for  the  promotion  of  scholarly  work,  the 
aiding  of  youth  of  genius  in  the  attainment  of  the  higher  culture 
at  home  and  abroad  and  the  gathering  into  its  archives  of  valu- 
able data. ' '  A  brief  extract  from  his  inaugural  address  will  best 
give  the  idea  of  the  scope  of  this  institution  and  at  the  same 
time  his  faith  in  the  future  of  his  race  in  the  United  States. 

"Wliat  then,  it  may  be  asked,  is  the  special  undertaking  we 
have  before  us,  in  this  Academy  ?  My  answer  is  the  civilization 
of  the  Negro  race  in  the  United  States,  by  the  scientific  processes 
of  literature,  art,  and  philosophy,  through  the  agency  of  the  cul- 
tured men  of  this  same  Negro  race.  And  here,  let  me  say,  that 
the  special  race  problem  of  the  Negro  in  the  United  States  is  his 
civilization. 

"I  doubt  if  there  is  a  man  in  this  presence  who  has  a  higher 
conception  of  Negro  capacity  than  your  speaker;  and  this  of 
itself,  precludes  the  idea,  on  my  part,  of  race  disparagement. 
But,  it  seems  manifest  to  me  that,  as  a  race  in  this  land,  we  have 
no  art;  we  have  no  science;  we  have  no  philosophy;  we  have 
no  scholarship.  Individuals  we  have  in  each  of  these  lines;  but 
mere  individuality  cannot  be  recognized  as  the  aggregation  of  a 
family,  a  nation,  or  a  race;  or,  as  the  interpretation  of  any  of 
them.  And  until  we  attain  the  role  of  civilization,  we  can  not 
stand  up  and  hold  our  place  in  the  world  of  culture  and  enlight- 
enment.  And  the  forfeiture  of  such  a  place  means  despite,  in- 
feriority, repulsion,  drudgery,  poverty,  and  ultimate  death! 
Now,  gentlemen,  for  the  creation  of  a  complete  and  rounded  man, 
you  need  the  impress  and  the  molding  of  the  highest  arts. 
But  how  much  more  so  for  the  realizing  of  a  true  and  lofty  race 
of  men.  What  is  true  of  a  man  is  deeply  true  of  a  people. 
The  special  need  in  such  a  case  is  the  force  and  application  of  the 
highest  arts;  not  mere  mechanism;  not  mere  machinery;  not 
mere  handicraft;  not  the  mere  grasp  on  material  things;  not 
mere  temporal  ambitions.  These  are  but  incidents;  important 
indeed,  but  pertaining  mainly  to  man's  material  needs,  and  to 


ALEXANDER  CRUMMELL  135 

the  feeding  of  the  body.  And  the  incidental  in  life  is  incapable 
of  feeding  the  living  soul.  For  ' '  man  cannot  live  by  bread  alone, 
but  by  every  word  that  proceedeth  out  of  the  mouth  of  God." 
And  civilization  is  the  secondary  word  of  God,  given  for  the 
nourishment  of  humanity. 

"To  make  men  you  need  civilization;  and  what  I  mean  by 
civilization  is  the  action  of  exalted  forces,  both  of  God  and  man. 
For  manhood  is  the  most  majestic  thing  in  God's  creation;  and 
hence  the  demand  for  the  very  highest  art  in  the  shaping  and 
molding  of  human  souls. 

"What  is  the  great  difficulty  with  the  black  race,  in  this  era, 
in  this  land?  It  is  that  both  within  their  ranks,  and  external 
to  themselves,  by  large  schools  of  thought  interested  in  them, 
material  ideas  in  divers  forms  are  made  prominent,  as  the  master- 
need  of  the  race,  and  as  the  surest  way  to  success.  Men  are 
constantly  dogmatizing  theories  of  sense  and  matter  as  the  salv- 
able  hope  of  the  race.  Some  of  our  leaders  and  teachers  boldly 
declare,  now,  that  property  is  the  source  of  power;  and  then, 
that  money  is  the  thing  which  commands  respect.  At  one  time 
it  is  official  position  which  is  the  masterful  influence  in  the  ele- 
vation of  the  race ;  at  another,  men  are  disposed  to  fall  back  upon 
6Zoo(Z  and  lineage,  as  the  root  (source)  of  power  and  progress. 

' '  Blind  men !  For  they  fail  to  see  that  neither  propertj^  nor 
money,  nor  station,  nor  office,  nor  lineage,  are  fixed  factors,  in  so 
large  a  thing  as  the  destiny  of  man ;  that  they  are  not  vitalizing 
qualities  in  the  changeless  hopes  of  humanity.  The  greatness  of 
peoples  springs  from  their  ability  to  grasp  the  gi'and  conceptions 
of  being.  It  is  the  absorption  of  a  people,  of  a  nation,  of  a  race, 
in  large  majestic  and  abiding  things  which  lifts  them  up  to  the 
skies.  These  once  apprehended,  all  the  minor  details  of  life  fol- 
low in  their  proper  places,  and  spread  abroad  in  the  details  and 
the  comfort  of  practicality.  But  until  these  gifts  of  a  lofty 
civilization  are  secured,  men  are  sure  to  remain  low,  debased  and 
groveling. ' ' 


136  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

Of  the  many  occasions  which  brought  to  his  feet  the  culture 
of  the  Capital,  none  will  be  longer  remembered  than  when  he  cele- 
brated, December,  1894,  the  fiftieth  anniversary  of  his  ordination 
as  a  priest  in  the  Episcopal  Church,  It  was  thus  described  by 
an  occasional  correspondent^  in  the  Netv  York  Age.  "Sunday 
morning  witnessed  a  scene  as  replete  with  interest  to  all  colored 
Episcopalians  as  it  should  be  to  Christians  regardless  of  denomi- 
national or  racial  ties.  Rev.  Alexander  Crummell,  D.D.,  rector 
of  St.  Luke's  P.  E.  Church  of  this  city  celebrated  the  fiftieth  an- 
niversary of  his  consecration  to  the  priesthood  of  the  Protestant 
Episcopal  Church  of  this  country.  The  church  was  filled  by  a 
congregation  in  which  representatives  from  all  the  different 
denominations  of  our  city  could  be  found,  and  such  men  as 
Hon.  Frederick  Douglass,  C.  H.  J.  Taylor,  H.  C.  C.  Astwood, 
John  F.  Cook,  members  of  the  faculty  of  Howard  University, 
principals  and  subordinate  teachers  of  our  public  schools  were 
numbered  among  the  worshipers. 

' '  The  sermon  which  followed  held  entranced  the  entire  congre- 
gation from  its  beginning  to  the  end.  It  was  based  on  Leviticus 
XXV,  10:  'And  ye  shall  hallow  the  fiftieth  year.  It  shaU  be  a 
year  of  jubilee  to  you. '  The  topic  selected  was  '  The  Lights  and 
Shadows  of  a  Ministry  of  a  Half  a  Century.'  Three  priests  of 
color  had  antedated  him  in  this  country,  Absalom  Jones  of  Pliila- 
delpliia,  Peter  Williams  of  New  York,  and  William  Levering  of 
Baltimore,  and  all  had  been  ordained  on  condition  that  they 
would  never  apply  for  membership  in  their  dioceses. 

**The  lessons  which  the  eloquent  divine  drew  from  this  half- 
century  of  service  convinced  him  of  two  facts  thus  summarized : 
First,  that  the  age  of  chivalry  had  not  gone ;  that  great  men  and 
true,  now  as  in  the  past,  spring  up  to  aid  a  worthy  cause  or 
succor  an  honestly  deserving,  struggling  individual ;  next,  that  the 
providence  of  God  has  not  deserted  the  Negro,  but  that  there  need 
be  no  doubt  of  the  manifestatioas  of  his  power. 

1  The  author. 


ALEXANDER  CRUMMELL  137 

"Conspicuous  among  these  who  championed  the  cause  of  the 
right  of  a  Negi'o  to  be  admitted  to  holy  orders  at  the  time  of  Dr. 
Crummell's  application  were  Honorable  "William  Jay,  John  Jay, 
Charles  King,  Manton  Eastburn,  George  W.  Doane  of  New  Jer- 
sey, Rev.  Stephen  H.  Tyng,  Rev.  Thomas  M.  Clark,  Alexander 
Vintin  and  Rev.  AVilliam  Croswell,  all  of  whom  became  distin- 
guished in  their  communion.  Dr.  Whittingham,  dean  of  the 
General  Theological  Seminary  at  the  time  and  whose  counsels 
first  led  Dr.  Crummell  to  apply  for  holy  orders,  by  a  singular 
coincidence  was  the  Bishop  of  Maryland  on  Dr.  Crummell 's  re- 
turn to  Washington  in  1873." 

Dr.  Crummell  was  easily  the  ripest  literary  scholar,  the  writer 
of  the  most  graceful  and  faultless  English  and  the  most  brilliant 
conversationalist  the  race  has  produced  in  this  country.  More 
than  this,  his  life  w^as  without  reproach.  In  his  manner  he  was 
austere,  fearless  and  dignified,  yet  he  was  as  easy  to  approach  as 
a  child.  Tall,  erect,  majestic  and  noble  in  his  carriage,  he  was 
a  distinguished  man  in  any  social  gathering,  and  on  the  public 
highway;  his  natural  stride,  and  his  commanding  appearance 
gave  him  a  most  striking  individuality,  pointing  him  out  in  any 
assemblage.  Unlike  many  of  the  representative  men  of  his  race 
gathered  unto  their  fathers,  the  reputation  and  influence  of 
Alexander  Crummell  will  be  greater  with  each  revolving  year. 

As  an  instance  of  his  mental  vigor  almost  up  to  the  last,  in  a 
letter  to  the  author  written  just  five  weeks  before  his  death,  are 
these  optimistic  and  prophetic  words:  "I  don't  believe  the 
Negro  is  going  to  the  devil.  That  disease  and  penury  are  carry- 
ing off  a  large  contingent,  is  doubtless  true.  This  is  the  inevi- 
table incident  in  all  revolutions  of  society;  and  our  change  of 
condition  is  a  revolution,  a  long  continued  revolution  just  as  the 
French  Revolution  of  '98  is  still  on,  and  still  producing  its  re- 
sults and  influences.  But  neither  one  of  these  revolutions  ia 
death.  Fully  one-third  of  our  people  are  going  up — vitally,  in- 
dustrially, religiously  and  monetarily.    Another  third  are  at  a 


138  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

standstill,  and  still  another  third  are  going  rapidly  to  destruc- 
tion, through  untlirift,  dissipation,  disease  and  deviltry  and  it  is 
a  shame  on  our  ministers  and  churches  that  they  are  allowed  to  go 
to  ruin." 

In  his  last  year,  as  stated  in  a  letter  to  his  friend,  J.  E.  Bruce, 
he  said :  "I  work  daily  six  to  seven  hours  at  my  desk  when  I  am 
able  to  write.  But  time  tells  on  me,  and  at  times  I  have  to  sit 
and  do  nothing  and  wait  upon  the  Lord.  Some  day  ere  long  He 
will  call  me  away;  but  I  trust  through  Jesus,  my  Lord  and 
King,  to  be  numbered  with  the  just." 

On  his  return  from  Europe  which  he  visited  in  1807  to  witness 
the  Queen 's  Diamond  Jubilee  he  wrote  the  following  to  the  same 
friend : 

' '  I  am  inclined  to  think  we  have  a  severe  battle  before  us  .  .  . 
I  have  one  or  two  things  I  am  thinking  of  doing,  of  which  more 
•anon ;  but  I  shan  't  be  surprised  if  you  laugh  in  your  sleeve  at  an 
old  man,  nigh  four  score,  projecting  new  work.  I  can't  help  it. 
Work  is  life.  Nevertheless,  not  a  day  passes  in  which  I  do  not 
call  to  remembrance  the  fact  that  I  am  right  on  the  threshold  of 
eternity ;  and  strive  to  open  my  eyes  to  behold  the  Lamb  of  God 
which  taketh  away  the  sins  of  the  world." 

The  next  year,  September  10,  1898,  while  sojourning  at  Point 
Pleasant,  New  Jersey,  he  passed  away. 

His  last  days  were  calm  and  peaceful.  Though  physically 
weak,  he  dictated  within  a  few  hours  of  his  demise,  without  a 
break  in  the  connection,  a  letter  to  Paul  Laurence  Dunbar  on  the 
philosophy  of  poetry,  also  one  to  a  well-known  clergyman  presag- 
ing the  outcome  of  the  debate  on  divorce  in  the  Triennial  Epis- 
copal Convention  held  the  next  month  at  Washington. 


XXV 

FREDERICK   DOUGLASS 

Frederick  Douglass  stands  easily  the  foremost  American  of 
Negro  descent,  during  the  nineteenth  century.  His  career  is 
typical  of  the  history  of  the  race  in  the  times  in  which  he  lived. 
Other  men  may  have  excelled  him  in  some  special  activities,  but 
he  stands  preeminent  in  the  estimate  of  the  American  people 
and  of  the  world. 

He  was  bom  in  an  out-of-the-way  plantation  on  the  eastern 
shore  of  Maryland,  far  from  any  large  town  and  city  and  at  a 
time  when  the  whole  country  was  almost  a  primitive  wilderness. 
Although  like  nearly  all  other  slaves  he  did  not  know  the  year  or 
time  of  his  birth,  he  had  good  reason  for  believing  that  it  was  in 
February,  1817. 

His  first  recollections  are  of  his  grandmother  to  whose  care  his 
master,  Aaron  Anthony,  entrusted  the  care  of  the  slave  children 
in  their  youngest  years.  He  remained  with  her  until  his  seventh 
year,  when  after  traveling  twelve  miles  on  a  rough  road  he  was 
left  with  other  children — brothers,  sisters  and  kin  on  the  planta- 
tion of  this  master.  Here  the  tenderness  of  his  grandmother 
was  supplanted  by  that  of  an  unkind  woman.  Aunt  Katy,  who 
was  often  coarse  and  cruel.  "While  here  he  saw  at  infrequent  in- 
tervals his  own  mother,  a  woman  of  attractive  personal  charms 
and  the  only  one  of  the  race  for  miles  who  could  read.  She 
came  a  distance  of  twelve  miles  after  the  day 's  work  was  done  to 
see  her  darling  boy  and  then  hurried  back  before  the  rising  of 
the  next  day's  sun. 

To  this  mother  he  ran  for  protection  one  night  after  being 

139 


140  THE  NEGEO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

threatened  by  his  cruel  persecutor.  This  was  the  mother's  last 
visit,  for  shortly  afterwards  she  died,  long,  long  before  her  son 
grew  up  to  be  a  fine  specimen  of  manliness  and  to  have  his  name 
on  every  tongue  in  three  continents,  as  the  great  orator  and  re- 
former. 

Douglass'  lot  was  a  hard  one.  His  supply  of  food  was  so 
scant  that  often  he  fought  with  the  dog  Nep  for  the  crumbs  of 
the  table,  and  his  clothes  consisted  only  of  a  plain  tow  shirt. 
He  had  neither  hat  nor  shoes.  "'.   \^ 

As  early  as  ten  years  of  age  he  was  sent  to  Baltimore  where 
lived  Hugh  Auld,  a  brother  of  Thomas  Auld,  the  husband  of  ■ 
Lucretia,  the  daughter  of  Captain  Anthony.  In  this  new  home 
there  was  a  boy  whom  he  had  to  watch  and  protect.  Mrs.  Auld  ' 
who  was  not  herself  a  slaveholder  was  fond  of  Frederick,  and  so  '  .  \ 
assured  was  the  slave  boy  of  it  that  he  asked  her  to  teach  him  to  \ 
read.  She  readily  assented  and  was  so  proud  of  the  rapid  prog- 
ress he  was  making  that  she  told  her  husband  of  it.  He  was 
alarmed  and  forbade  her  to  give  him  any  other  lessons.  ' '  It.  will 
never  do  to  teach  a  'Nigger.'  It  unfits  him  for  slavery,  makes 
him  discontented  and  is  of  no  benefit  whatever  to  him."  The 
lessons  were  stopped,  but  Frederick,  who  overheard  the  conver- 
sation, was  more  determined  than  ever  to  learn. 

He  paid  fifty  cents  for  a  copy  of  ' '  The  Columbian  Orator, ' '  a 
popular  school  book  of  that  time.  His  mind  and  soul  were  fired 
by  the  literary,  patriotic  and  philanthropic  selections  contained 
therein.  They  also  added  to  his  learning  and  fixed  a  strong  basis 
for  his  future  culture.  He  used  the  boys  with  whom  he  played 
to  help  him  to  write.  It  was  at  this  period  that  the  first  religious 
impressions  were  deeply  stamped  on  his  mind.  Charles  Lawson, 
a  religious  exhorter,  was  a  great  help  to  him  as  was  also  Beverly 
Waugh,  the  class  leader  of  Mrs.  Auld,  who  subsequently  became 
one  of  the  bishops  of  the  M.  E.  Church. 

The  idea  of  running  away  as  a  means  of  obtaining  his  free- 
dom first  came  to  his  mind  from  the  suggestion  of  two  Irishmen 


FREDERICK  DOUGLASS  141 

whom  he  had  assisted  in  unloading  a  boat  of  ballast.  How  could 
he  escape  without  a  pass?  How  could  he  get  a  pass  unless  he 
could  write?  By  this  the  idea  of  writing  as  well  as  reading 
leaped  into  his  mind.  His  slirewdness  gave  him  teachers  in 
learning  how  to  write.  He  observed  the  marks  placed  on  timber 
in  sliipyards  and  thus  in  one  way  found  out  the  names  and  form 
of  certain  letters  of  the  alphabet.  After  having  satisfied  himself 
that  he  could  make  a  few  letters,  he  learned  to  make  words  and 
thus  the  way  was  opened.  As  in  the  matter  of  reading,  the  boys 
of  his  own  age  were  the  teachers  whose  aid  he  secured. 

But  the  course  of  a  slave's  life  may  be  changed  at  any  time 
by  incidents  in  the  life  of  others.  The  death  of  Richard  An- 
thony and  his  father  caused  Frederick's  return  to  the  Eastern 
Shore  where  it  was  necessary  for  him  to  be  during  the  settlement 
of  the  estate. 

Fortune  favored  him  and  Frederick  fell  to  Lucretia  Auld  and 
his  return  to  Baltimore  removed  the  anxiety  and  fear  that  were 
on  his  mind.  But  the  wheel  of  fortune  turned.  His  new  mis- 
tress, Lucretia,  died.  Two  years  thereafter  her  husband  remar- 
ried and  shortly  after  this  time  it  was  that  owing  to  a  quarrel 
between  Thomas  and  Hugh  Auld,  Frederick  was  returned  to  the 
Eastern  Shore. 

Thomas  Auld  belonged  to  what  were  known  as  poor  whites — in 
fact  he  had  never  owned  any  slaves,  and  these  who  were  now  his 
came  by  his  marriage  to  the  daughter  of  Captain  Aaron  Anthony. 
He  was  a  severe  and  cruel  man  who  determined  to  let  his  slaves 
feel  his  authority.  Frederick  soon  experienced  this;  the  con- 
version of  his  "master"  gave  the  slave  boy  a  hope  that  mercy 
would  temper  his  dealing  with  the  unfortunate  blacks,  but  in  this 
he  was  mistaken.  Frederick's  hope  that  he  could  engage  in  a 
colored  Sunday  school  started  by  a  white  man  named  Wilson 
was  shattered,  for  on  the  second  Sunday  they  had  not  more  than 
begun  when  a  crowd  of  whites,  among  them  two  class  leaders,  his 
''master"  Thomas  at  the  head,  armed  with  whips  and  switches 


/ 


142  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

broke  up  their  assembly.  Shortly  afterwards  Frederick  was  sent 
to  Edward  Covey,  whose  eminence  was  that  he  was  a  successful 
breaker  of  stubborn  young  Negroes.  Frederick's  experience  with 
Covey  was  by  no  means  a  bed  of  roses,  it  lay  over  thorns  which 
pierce  and  lacerate  the  flesh,  inflicting  wounds  that  one  carries 
through  life.  Frederick  was  now  sixteen  years  old,  in  the  pos- 
session of  a  strong,  manly  frame;  he  was  determined,  high- 
spirited,  and  longed  to  be  free,  yet  he  knew  the  power  of  author- 
ity and  was  ready  to  yield  it  a  willing  obedience.  He  had  not 
been  a  field  hand  and  therefore  was  not  prepared  to  render  the 
service  such  as  Covey  exacted.  He  was  put  to  breaking  in  a 
yoke  of  oxen  during  his  first  month's  experience.  This  led  to 
his  receiving  injuries  that  threatened  his  life ;  but  Covey  received 
no  explanations  nor  excuses.  This  gave  the  pretext  he  was  seek- 
ing, for  he  proceeded  to  administer  a  very  severe  flogging,  leav- 
ing welts  on  Frederick's  back  as  large  as  a  finger.  This  was 
followed  with  increasing  frequency  by  whippings  just  as  severe. 
Frederick's  spirit  was  at  last  broken.  He  despaired  of  free- 
dom, took  no  interest  in  reading  or  writing, — in  short,  he  was 
being  reduced  to  the  level  of  a  beast.  Covey  then  tried  another 
tack,  and  worked  his  hands  late  and  early — as  late  as  eleven 
and  twelve  o'clock  at  night,  when  he  would  remain  out  with 
them  urging  them  on,  either  by  blows  or  words  as  best  suited  his 
convenience.  His  method  to  get  all  the  work  possible  out  of  his 
hands  was  to  pretend  to  go  to  some  distance,  when  he  would 
suddenly  reappear  from  behind  a  tree  or  rear  his  head  above  the 
banks  of  a  ditch.  Because  of  these  characteristics  he  was  known 
as  the  snake. 

One  hot  day  in  August  while  threshing  wheat,  Frederick  over- 
come by  heat,  fell,  and  could  do  no  more.  Covey  on  observing  the 
cessation  of  the  work  and  ascertaining  the  cause,  ordered  him  to 
get  back  to  his  work.  Frederick  tried  once  or  twice  in  vain,  and 
failing  to  respond  was  knocked  on  the  head  and  kicked  most 
brutally  in  the  side  by  Covey.     This  stunned  him  and  caused  the 


?  > 


FREDERICK  DOUGLASS  143 

blood  to  flow  copiously.  Frederick  determined  upon  escape  and 
ran  away.  Covey  called  for  and  pursued  him,  but  Frederick  took 
to  the  woods.  After  several  hours  in  hiding  Frederick  went  to 
Mr.  Auld  and  told  him  of  the  brutal  treatment  he  had  re- 
ceived; but  his  master,  instead  of  sympathizing  with  him,  justi- 
fied Covey  and  ordered  Frederick  to  return  at  once. 

It  was  Sunday  morning  when  as  he  approached  home  he  found 
Covey  and  his  wife  on  their  way  to  church.  Frederick  was 
agreeably  surprised  to  find,  instead  of  a  severe  countenance  be- 
tokening brutality,  one  more  in  harmony  with  the  holy  day  and 
its  duties.  He  considered  this  a  good  omen  and  felt  compara- 
tively at  ease.  The  next  morning  as  if  nothing  had  happened 
Covey  ordered  Frederick  to  perform  some  work  which  caused  the 
lad  to  go  to  the  stable.  He  had  no  more  than  fairly  got  to  work 
at  it,  when  he  spied  Covey  endeavoring  to  catch  his  leg  in  a 
noose  so  as  to  hold  him  securely  and  whip  him,  but  the  boy  was 
too  alert  and  again  ran  away.  In  a  day  or  so  he  returned  when 
Covey  once  more  attempted  to  whip  him,  whereupon  the  boy 
showed  fight  to  the  surprise  of  the  slave-breaker.  Covey  called 
first  on  one  and  another  of  the  hired  slaves  and  even  his  own 
slave  Caroline,  but  all  refused  to  assist,  so  the  struggle  fierce 
and  relentless  was  between  the  two.  Frederick  was  more  than  a 
match  for  Covey.  From  that  time  to  the  end  of  the  year  Covey 
frequently  threatened  but  made  no  more  attempts  to  whip  Fred- 
erick. 

The  next  two  years  was  spent  with  another  master,  during  the 
last  of  which  he  was  the  leader  of  a  plot  to  run  away  with  other 
slaves.  They  were  betrayed  before  attempting  to  run  away,  put 
in  prison  and  released.  Frederick  was  ordered  to  return  once 
more  to  Baltimore  where  he  was  apprenticed  by  Hugh  Auld  to 
the  trade  of  calker.  Here  everything  went  on  smoothly  until 
he  was  set  upon  and  beat  almost  to  death  by  four  white  boys, 
but  nothing  could  be  legally  done  to  punish  the  boys  because  no 
white  man  could  be  induced  to  testify  and  no  Negro's  word  could 


/ 


144  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

be  taken.  During  these  years  at  Baltimore,  Frederick  found 
time  to  cultivate  his  love  for  music  by  joining  a  choir  and  ex- 
horting in  churches  and  Sunday  schools.  Mr.  Douglass  has  fre- 
quentlj'  in  public  addresses  and  private  conversation  referred  to 
this  diversion.  Preferable  as  his  lot  as  apprentice  was  in  Balti- 
more, it  was  not  like  being  free,  so  he  planned  for  his  escape  from 
bondage.  At  last,  disguised  as  a  saUor,  with  a  certificate  of  pro- 
tection, he  succeeded  in  escaping  from  Baltimore  and  reaching 
New  York.  Here  he  was  married  by  Rev.  J.  W.  C.  Pennington  ^ 
to  Anna  Murray,  a  free  woman  of  Baltimore.  They  did  not  re- 
main in  New  York  but  continued  their  journey  to  New  Bedford, 
Massachusetts.  Upon  arriving  in  this  place  Frederick  found 
many  friends,  among  them  Mr.  Nathan  Johnson,  who  suggested 
as  he  must  have  some  other  name  beside  Frederick,  that  it  be 
Douglass,  taken  from  a  favorite  character  in  Scott's  Lady  of  the 
Lake. 

Mr.  Douglass  found  employment  in  doing  such  odd  jobs  as 
shoveling  coal,  carrying  out  ashes,  as  a  common  laborer  at  work 
in  an  oil  refinery  and  in  a  foundry.  Race  prejudice  prevented 
his  finding  employment  as  a  calker.  For  three  years  he  thus 
supported  his  family  and  frequently  on  Sunday  he  exhorted 
in  the  meetings  of  the  local  A.  M.  E.  Zion  Church.  He  became  a 
reader  and  regular  subscriber  to  The  Liberator,  the  paper  edited 
by  WiUiam  Lloyd  Garrison  in  the  interest  of  the  abolition  cause. 
He  approved  its  sentiments  for  Xh&y  were  those  of  his  own  heart. 

He  was  invited  to  attend  an  anti-slavery  convention  at  Nan- 
tucket, in  August,  1841.  To  his  surprise  he  was  called  on  to  ad- 
dress it.  After  much  solicitude  he  reluctantly  consented  and 
did  so  with  such  earnestness  that  he  drew  from  Mr.  Garrison  one 
of  his  most  eloquent  and  passionate  appeals.  As  a  further  re- 
sult of  the  effect  of  this  address,  Mr.  Douglass  was  invited  to 

2  One   of  the  most   scholarly  Negro   clergymen   of   the    19th   century,   a^ 
man   who   himself  had   escaped   from   slavery   in   IMaryland   and   who  had 
secured  the  degree  of  D.D.  from  the  university  of  Heidelberg,  Germany. 


FREDERICK  DOUGLASS  145 

travel  as  the  agent  of  the  society  and  to  advocate  its  principles. 
He  promised  to  undertake  the  work  for  three  months  only  be- 
cause he  distrusted  his  ability  to  interest  them  for  a  longer 
period.  But,  his  success  was  marvelous  and  his  engagement  con- 
tinued. 

That  this  speech  was  not  only  a  turning  point  in  the  career 
of  Mr.  Douglass  but  in  the  anti-slavery  movement,  the  follow- 
ing account  taken  from  the  "Acts  of  the  Anti-Slavery  Apostles" 
page  327,  by  Parker  Pillsbury,  an  eyewitness,  leaves  little  room 
to  doubt:  "When  the  young  man  (Douglass)  closed,  late  in  the 
evening  though  none  seemed  to  know  nor  to  care  for  the  hour, 
Mr.  Garrison  rose  to  make  the  concluding  address.  I  think  he 
never  before  nor  afterwards  felt  more  profoundly  the  sacredness 
of  his  mission,  or  the  importance  of  a  crisis  moment  to  his 
success.  I  surely  never  saw  him  more  deeply,  more  divinely 
inspired.  The  crowded  congregation  had  been  WTOught  up  al- 
most to  enchantment  during  the  whole  long  evening,  particularly 
by  some  of  the  utterances  of  the  last  speaker,  as  he  turned  over 
the  terrible  Apocalypse  of  his  experiences  in  slavery.  But  Mr. 
Garrison  was  singularly  serene  and  calm.  It  was  well  that  he 
was  so.  He  only  asked  a  few  simple  direct  questions.  I  can  re- 
call but  a  few  of  them,  though  I  do  remember  the  first  and 
the  last.  The  first  was :  *  Have  we  been  listening  to  a  thing,  a 
piece  of  property,  or  to  a  man?'  'A  man!  A  man!'  shouted 
fully  five  hundred  voices  of  women  and  men.  'And  should  such 
a  man  be  held  a  slave  in  a  republican  and  Christian  land?' 
was  another  question.  '  No,  no !  never,  never ! '  again  swelled  up 
from  the  same  voices,  like  the  billows  of  the  deep.  But  the  last 
was  this :  '  Shall  such  a  man  ever  be  sent  back  to  slavery  from 
the  soil  of  old  Massachusetts?' — this  time  uttered  with  all  the 
power  of  voice  of  which  Garrison  was  capable.  .  .  .  Almost  the 
whole  assembly  sprang  with  one  accord  to  their  feet,  and  the 
walls  and  roof  of  the  Athenaeum  seemed  to  shudder  with  the  '  No, 
no ! '  loud  and  long-continued  in  the  wild  enthusiasm  of  the  scene. 


146  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

As  soon  as  Garrison  could  be  heard  he  snatched  the  acclaim,  and 
superadded :  '  No  ! — a  thousand  times  no  !  Sooner  let  the  light- 
nings of  heaven  blast  Bunker  Hill  Monument  till  not  one  stone 
shall  be  left  standing  on  another ! '  " 

He  rapidly  developed  into  the  most  effective  advocate  of  the 
Anti-slavery  Movement  that  had  yet  appeared.  By  its  friends 
he  was  cordially  welcomed  as  the  most  valuable  contribution  to 
the  movement  made,  but  by  others  he  was  pronounced  a  fraud. 
They  said  he  had  never  been  a  slave,  for  his  appearance,  his  man- 
ner and  his  language  were  those  of  a  man  of  education.  He  de- 
cided to  convince  them  that  he  was,  as  he  said,  a  fugitive  from 
slavery,  so  he  prepared  for  publication,  against  the  advice  of 
friends,  an  account  of  his  life  in  slavery  entitled  ' '  Douglass '  Nar- 
rative. ' ' 

From  New  England  he  extended  his  work  in  1843  to  New 
York,  Ohio,  Indiana  and  Pennsylvania,  speaking  in  public  halls, 
in  churches,  in  public  parks,  wherever  occasion  presented  it- 
self with  uniform  success,  so  far  as  interest  goes,  but  at  times 
with  great  opposition.  He  was  ' '  rotten-egged, ' '  and  set  upon  by 
a  mob  in  Indiana,  in  encountering  which  his  arm  was  broken. 

The  extension  of  his  reputation  by  his  protracted  tour  and  the 
publication  of  his  "Narrative"  fixed  his  identity  with  the  slave 
lad  who  on  the  eastern  shore  of  Maryland  had  successfully  re- 
sisted Covey  and  who  in  Baltimore,  while  ship-calker  and  ex- 
horter,  had  suddenly  and  mysteriously  taken  flight  by  the  Under- 
ground Railroad.^  To  continue  traveling  thus  advertised  as  a 
fugitive  slave  whose  personality  was  known  would  be  to  defy 
the  law  of  the  land  and  to  result  in  his  capture  and  return  to 
slavery.  Because  of  these  facts  and  to  further  the  Anti-slavery 
Cause,  in  1845  he  set  sail  for  England. 

On  shipboard  he  was  the  victim  of  the  same  race  prejudice  that 
confronted  him  in  America.  Some  Southerners  on  board  actually 
threatened  to  throw  him  overboard  because  they  were  stung  by 

3  See  Underground  Railway,  Appendix. 


FREDERICK  DOUGLASS  147 

his  eloquent  attacks  against  slavery.  At  this  time  Negroes  in 
many  parts  of  the  North  could  ride  only  in  Jim  Crow  ears. 
They  were  denied  entrance  in  menageries,  circuses,  theaters,  in 
many  churches,  and  at  lectures.  On  steamboats  they  were  re- 
stricted to  certain  places,  and  to  the  top  of  stage-coaches. 

In  England  Mr.  Douglass  felt  at  once  the  happy  contrast.  As 
in  America  he  lectured  against  slavery,  every^vhere  creating  the 
greatest  enthusiasm  and  enlisting  on  behalf  of  the  cause,  friend- 
ship and  aid.  Though  the  enemies  of  freedom  were  here  as  in 
America,  with  a  fair  field  against  them,  he  overcame  them  one 
and  all.  The  sympathies  of  the  English  people  for  Mr.  Douglass 
manifested  itself  in  their  raising  a  fund  with  which  his  legal 
freedom  was  effected.  Mrs.  Ellen  Richardson  and  her  sister, 
Mrs.  Henry  Richardson,  both  Quakers,  conceived  and  managed 
the  plan  by  which  this  was  done. 

He  heard  such  orators  as  Cobden,  Bright,  Brougham, 
O  'Connell,  Disraeli,  and  Peel,  and  met  Hans  Christian  Andersen, 
the  great  story  writer,  Andrew  Combe,  the  philosopher,  and  the 
last  of  the  great  English  emancipators,  the  venerable  Thomas 
Clarkson.  The  English  people  were  first  averse  to  his  return- 
ing to  America,  a  country  in  which  he  would  be  subjected  to  so 
many  humiliations  and  persecutions,  and  it  was  because  he  had 
determined  to  cast  Ms  lot  among  his  own  people  that  the  one 
hundred  and  fifty  pounds  sterling  was  paid  Thomas  Auld  and 
in  addition  two  thousand  five  hundred  dollars  raised  with  which 
he  could  publish  a  paper  devoted  to  the  interest  of  his  race. 

In  1847  after  having  remained  abroad  for  nearly  two  years  he 
returned  to  America.  After  much  hesitation  and  conference 
with  friends,  and  looking  over  the  field  he  decided  to  publish  his 
paper  in  Rochester,  whither  he  removed  his  family.  In  1848  he 
published  The  North  Star  and  afterwards  Frederick  Douglass' 
Paper  until  1863,  every  issue  of  which  was  an  arsenal  of  am- 
munition against  slavery  and  proscription.  His  most  effective 
work  is  during  this  period.     Its  circulation  ran  up  into  the  thou- 


148  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

sands.  It  was  not  only  read  throughout  the  North,  but  in  the 
halls  of  Congress  its  power  was  recognized. 

As  an  anti-slavery  lecturer  he  was  more  fearless  than  ever 
before.  He  was  not  only  feared  and  hated  as  an  engine  of  de- 
struction against  the  evil  of  slavery;  but  he  was  recognized  as 
a  thinker  and  orator  of  the  highest  intellectual  gifts.  This  was 
seen  in  liis  frequent  appearance  in  the  lecture  bureaus  of  New 
England  and  the  Middle  States  and  his  addresses  before  learned 
societies  and  colleges.  As  a  leader  of  his  people,  his  voice  in 
their  conventions,  which  developed  and  drew  together  their 
representative  men  and  women,  was  recognized  by  the  wisdom 
of  his  counsel.  He  had  a  definite  line  of  policy  which  he  advo- 
cated with  all  the  energy  and  eloquence  of  his  nature.  He  was 
the  dreaded  foe  of  colonization,  which  aimed  at  the  emigration  of 
the  entire  free  colored  population  to  Africa  and  the  West  Indies 
as  the  only  road  by  which  they  could  enjoy  the  sweets  of  free- 
dom and  the  blessings  of  citizenship.  He  advocated  self-reliance 
and  the  independence  of  the  people.  He  advised  them  to  go  on 
the  farms  and  to  teach  their  sons  trades.*  Long  before  Booker 
T.  Washington  was  born  he  outlined  a  plan  for  an  Industrial 
College  for  colored  people  in  a  letter  addressed  by  request  to 
Mrs.  Harriet  Beecher  Stowe,  the  author  of  "Uncle  Tom's  Cabin." 

The  colored  convention  that  assembled  at  Rochester  in  1853 
enthusiastically  endorsed  the  views  of  Mrs.  Stowe  and  she  went 
abroad  and  collected  funds  for  this  purpose.  How  much  was 
received,  what  disposition  was  made  of  it,  is  a  mystery  never 
solved  by  Mrs.  Stowe  in  her  lifetime,  nor  by  her  friends  since, 
for  she  was  its  sole  custodian  and  to  ]\Ir.  Douglass  she  acknowl- 
edged in  a  conversation  with  him  a  change  in  her  plans,  though 
for  reasons  that  were  never  satisfactory  to  him,  and  respecting 
which  the  public  were  never  enlightened.  Had  the  author  of 
' '  Uncle  Tom ' '  carried  out  this  trust  in  the  spirit  in  which  it  was 
entrusted  to  her,  the  Hampton  and  Tuskegee  Normal  and  In- 

4  My  Life  and  Times. — Douglass. 


FREDERICK  DOUGLASS  149 

dustrial  Institutes  would  have  been  followers  of  the  ideas  and 
the  experience  of  Frederick  Douglass. 

When  he  began  his  work  as  a  reformer,  Frederick  Douglass 
followed  William  Lloyd  Garrison.  But  as  his  own  powers  were 
developed  by  his  own  active  labors  and  the  range  of  his  informa- 
tion was  extended  by  his  contact  with  men  and  books,  he  grew 
to  have  views  which  differed  materially  from  those  of  Garrison, 
especially  with  respect  to  the  Constitution  of  the  United  States. 
Garrison  believed  it  to  be  a  pro-slavery  document  and  that  aboli- 
tionists should  not  recognize  its  binding  force  by  voting  in  com- 
pliance with  the  laws  thereof.  Douglass,  on  the  other  hand, 
reading  it  in  the  light  of  the  Declaration  of  Independence  and 
its  own  preamble,  construed  it  to  contain  no  guarantees  for 
slavery  and  oppression.  The  advocacy  of  these  views  M'hieh  be- 
gan to  develop  after  the  publication  of  The  North  Star  brought 
him  in  a  debate  in  1849  with  Reverend  Samuel  Ringgold  Ward, 
one  of  the  very  greatest  debaters  and  orators  the  Negro  race  has 
yet  produced ;  a  man  of  whom  it  is  alleged  by  such  an  authority 
as  Daniel  Webster  that  "he  (Ward)  is  the  ablest  thinker  on  his 
legs  before  the  American  people. ' ' 

A  frequent  visitor  at  the  home  of  Mr.  Douglass  in  Rochester 
was  Old  Jolin  Brown  of  Osawatomie,  as  he  was  known.  They 
were  great  friends,  between  whom  there  were  frequent  consulta- 
tions as  to  the  best  means  by  which  slavery  could  receive  the 
greatest  injury.  Mr.  Douglass  knew  the  plans  of  John  BroAvn 
that  were  attempted  at  Harper's  Ferry.  While  Mr.  Douglass  ad- 
mired BrowTi,  especially  for  his  intense  hatred  of  slavery  and 
his  willingness  to  make  himself  Freedom's  martyr  he  could  not 
follow  Brown  in  the  hazardous  attack  made  on  Harper's  Ferry. 
When  the  outbreak  came  off  at  Harper's  Ferry  that  memorable 
day  in  October,  1859,  Mr.  Douglass  was  in  Philadelphia.  In  the 
mad  excitement  of  the  hour  a  requisition  for  his  arrest  was 
issued  by  Governor  Henrj^  A.  Wise  of  Virginia,  which  but  for 
remarkable  combination  of  circumstances  would  have  cut  short 


150  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

the  career  of  Mr.  Douglass  by  his  arrest  and  execution  on  the 
scaffold  with.  Brown  and  his  confederates  among  whom  were  two 
other  colored  men,  John  Copeland  and  Shields  Green. 

Mr.  Douglass  went  to  Canada,  thence  once  more  to  England, 
where  he  remained  until  the  Harper's  Ferry  excitement  had  died 
out  to  be  supplanted  by  the  greater  excitement  over  the  presi- 
dential struggle  of  1860  and  impending  Civil  War. 

The  Civil  War  began  in  1861  shortly  after  the  inauguration 
of  Abraham  Lincoln ;  in  fact,  it  had  begun  earlier  by  the  seizure 
of  the  fort  and  navy  yards  of  the  United  States  authorities  by 
the  governments  of  the  States  that  seceded. 

There  was  henceforth  less  necessity  for  agitation  by  the  aboli- 
tionists. Slavery  had  its  main  support  in  the  States  that  went 
into  the  rebellion  to  uphold  slavery.  From  the  first  Frederick 
Douglass  advocated  a  vigorous  prosecution  of  the  war  which  was 
a  legitimate  consequence  of  his  belief  that  the  Constitution  is  an 
anti-slavery  document.  His  theme  was  now  '  *  union  and  emanci- 
pation." He  advocated  the  enlistment  of  the  colored  soldier. 
He  came  to  Washington  and  conferred  with  President  Lincoln 
who  esteemed  him  very  highly.  At  one  time  a  commission  as  As- 
sistant Adjutant-General  in  the  United  States  Army  was  prom- 
ised him  by  Secretary  of  War  E.  M.  Stanton,  which  however  Mr. 
Douglass  never  received. 

Notwithstanding  this  personal  disappointment  and  the  atti- 
tude of  the  nation  discriminating  against  colored  soldiers,  Mr. 
Douglass  labored  zealously  in  the  work  of  colored  enlistments 
and  in  upholding  the  Union  cause.  An  almost  forgotten  speech 
was  one  at  a  colored  mass-meeting  in  Philadelphia  held  when  Lee 
was  at  Chambersburgh  threatening  the  former  city. 

With  the  close  of  the  war,  the  assassination  of  Lincoln  and 
the  inauguration  of  Andrew  Johnson,  the  civil  status  of  the 
Negro  became  an  all  important  question.  The  abolitionists  were 
divided  as  to  their  future  policy.  Garrison's  influence  caused 
the  abolition  of  the  anti-slavery  society,  the  discontinuance  of 


FREDERICK  DOUGLASS  151 

their  newspapers  and  the  cessation  of  their  various  missions. 
Andrew  Johnson  set  his  face  as  flint  against  the  recognition  of 
the  Negro  as  a  citizen  in  the  work  of  reconstruction.  Frederick 
Douglass  first  took  issue  with  him  at  the  head  of  a  delegation 
of  colored  men  at  the  White  House,  February  7,  1866.  The 
electric  wires  carried  the  news  throughout  the  country  and  the 
issue  of  the  elective  franchise  for  the  Negro  was  then  first  defi- 
nitely raised.  The  meetings  of  the  National  Loyalist  Convention 
at  Philadelphia  in  1866  emphasized  the  issue,  and  Frederick 
Douglass  was  no  insignificant  factor  in  that  body,  having  been 
elected  by  the  citizens  of  Rochester  to  represent  that  community. 
There  was  a  strong  protest  of  white  Republicans  especially,  all 
over  the  country  against  his  taking  a  seat  in  that  convention. 
On  his  way  to  Philadelphia,  Mr.  Douglass  was  waited  on  by  a 
delegation  who  advised  him  not  to  attempt  to  occupy  a  seat  in 
the  Convention ;  but  the  manly  reply  of  Mr.  Douglass  announcing 
his  decision,  and  exposing  the  wealmess,  inconsistency  and  hy- 
pocrisy of  their  objection,  ceased  their  opposition.  Even  rumors 
of  personal  violence  to  him  if  he  attempted  to  walk  in  the  pro- 
cession to  be  made  through  the  streets  of  Philadelphia  on  the 
morning  of  the  meeting  of  the  Convention,  did  not  daunt  him. 
When  the  critical  time  arrived  and  it  seemed  as  if  he  would  have 
to  walk  alone,  Theodore  Tilton,  the  brilliant  editor  of  the  New 
York  Independent,  came  forward,  offered  Mr.  Douglass  his  arm 
and  the  two  thus  walked  amid  the  applause  of  the  bystanders. 
A  most  interested  wdtness  of  the  ovation  tendered  him  was  the 
daughter  Amanda,  of  his  former  mistress  Lucretia  Auld,  now 
married  to  a  Mr.  Sears,  a  coal  merchant  of  Philadelphia. 

Time  brings  many  strange  revenges.  The  next  year,  1867,  the 
reconstruction  measures  of  Congress  were  passed.  Mr.  Douglass, 
July  4,  1867,  delivered  a  masterly  oration  for  the  Negro's  right 
to  vote  before  thousands  of  freedmen,  in  the  presence  of  both 
federal  and  ex-confederate  privates  and  generals,  at  Portsmouth, 
Virginia.     This  was  his  first  utterance  in  ' '  the  enemy 's  country, ' ' 


152  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

aud  the  first  political  address  in  the  South  by  a  colored  man 
of  national  reputation  where  blacks  aud  whites  were  present  in 
large  numbers. 

"With  the  passage  of  the  15th  Amendment  in  1870,  the  first 
direct  outcome  of  the  reconstruction  act  upon  the  status  of  the 
American  Negro  North  and  South,  the  active  career  of  Mr. 
Douglass  may  be  said  to  have  nearly  closed ;  but  abundant  honors 
were  in  store  for  him.^  He  was  at  the  head  of  the  Neiv  National 
Era,  which  his  three  sons,  Lewis  H.,  Frederick,  Jr.,  and  Charles 
R.  edited  and  published.  He  occasionally  contributed  to  its  col- 
umns. He  was  in  1870  made  secretary  of  a  commission  ap- 
pointed by  President  Grant  to  San  Domingo.  He  was  nominated 
and  confirmed  as  member  of  the  Legislative  Council  of  the  Dis- 
trict of  Columbia,  which  he  held  only  for  a  short  time.  He  was 
one  of  the  presidential  electors  of  New  York,  in  1872,  and  was 
appointed  the  messenger  of  its  electoral  college  to  bear  its  vote 
for  U.  S.  Grant  to  be  President,  to  Washington.  In  1874  he 
was  elected  president  of  the  Freedmen's  Bank,  an  institution 
chartered  by  Congress  in  1865  to  receive  the  deposits  of  the 
freedmeu  of  the  South. 

He  purchased  a  tract  of  land  near  Anacostia,  in  the  District 
of  Columbia,  which  he  made  his  home,  called  Cedar  Hill.  A 
very  remarkable  coincidence  is  that  this  place  belonged  to  one 
of  the  aristocracy  in  slavery  days  who  in  his  will  stipulated 
that  no  Negro,  mulatto  nor  Irishman  should  ever  become  o^^^ler 
of  a  foot  of  his  possessions.  In  this  mansion  Mr.  Douglass  spent 
the  last  twenty  years  of  his  life,  surrounded  by  his  books,  letters, 
and  other  souvenirs  of  his  busy  life  and  travels.     His  home  was 

5  Tlie  'New  York  Independent  edited  at  the  time  by  Theodore  Tilton.  is 
authority  for  the  statement  that  IMr.  Douglass  by  his  silence  until  after 
the  confirmation  of  Minister  Ebenezer  D.  Bassett,  prevented  his  own 
nomination  for  the  same  post.  The  editor  quotes  from  a  private  letter  as 
follows:  "It  is  quite  true  that  I  never  sought  this  or  any  other  office; 
but  is  equally  true  that  I  have  never  declined  it,  and  it  is  also  true  that  I 
would  have  accepted,  had  it  been  offered." 


pN;i<, 


kitmrn'^m^ 


r  '^..,*i. 


Douglass    Statue,    Rochester,   N.   Y. 


FREDERICK  DOUGLASS  153 

always  open  and  few  there  were  interested  in  the  cause  of  the 
Colored  American  who  visited  the  National  Capital  without 
visiting  the  Sage  of  Anacostia  at  Cedar  Hill. 

Among  the  honors  bestowed  on  him  was  the  U.  S.  Marshalship 
by  President  Hayes  in  1877,  the  Recorder  of  Deeds  by  President 
Gai-field  in  1881,  and  the  U.  S.  Ministership  to  Haiti  in  1889, 
by  President  Harrison.  In  1893  he  was  Haitian  Commissioner 
at  the  AVorld's  Exposition  at  Chicago,  and  for  several  years 
one  of  the  trustees  of  Howard  University.  He  died  February 
20,  1895,  at  his  home  after  having  attended  a  Woman 's  Suffrage 
Convention  in  session. 

The  intelligence  of  his  death  occasioned  sadness  and  sorrow 
throughout  the  land,  memorials  were  held  in  his  honor  and  the 
expression  was  unanimous  that  one  of  the  greatest  men  of  the 
century  had  passed  away.  His  funeral  ceremonies  were  held 
at  the  Metropolitan  A.  M.  E.  Church  in  Washington,  of  which 
he  was  a  worshiper,  where  his  remains  were  viewed  by  thousands. 

Tens  of  thousands  of  the  city's  population  lined  the  sidewalks, 
as  the  funeral  procession  made  its  way  to  the  depot,  thence  to 
Rochester  his  former  home,  where  his  remains  were  deposited 
in  Mount  Hope  Cemeterj^  by  the  side  of  his  former  wife,  Anna 
Murray  Douglass. 

In  1899  a  monument  erected  in  his  honor  was  unveiled  in 
Rochester  in  one  of  the  most  conspicuous  parts  of  his  city.  The 
Republic  of  Haiti  appropriated  $1,000  towards  its  erection.  The 
only  other  monument  in  Rochester  is  one  to  Abraham  Lincoln. 
A  bust  of  Mr.  Douglass  occupies  a  niche  in  the  University  of 
Rochester,  placed  there  during  his  life  by  act  of  the  municipal 
council  and  on  one  of  the  pillars  of  the  State  House  at  Albany, 
are  the  lineaments  of  the  great  orator  and  reformer.® 

e  Visitors  of  .  .  .  will  be  attracted  by  the  grand  stairway  of  the  majestic 
Capitol  at  Albany  that  leads  to  its  legislative  chambers.  Ascending  to 
the  third  floor,  they  will  behold  on  a  line  with  the  entrance  to  the  State 
Library   four   finely  executed  heads  handsomely   carved   in   Scottish   sand- 


154  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

A  corporation  has  been  formed  to  preserve  Cedar  Hill  as  a 
historical  memorial  to  be  visited  by  millions  as  the  years  go 
by  in  grateful  acknowledgment  of  the  work  of  a  man  who  more 
than  any  other  made  the  abolition  movement  a  vital  issue  in  the 
history  of  the  country. 

stone  and  forming  one  of  the  capitals  of  its  massive  pillars;  a  rock  of 
brownish  hue,  more  durable  than  granite  and  capable  of  better  artistic 
effect.  Here  you  behold  the  rugged  lineaments  of  Abraham  Lincoln,  the 
martyred  emancipator  president;  there,  that  of  U.  S.  Grant,  the  silent  sol- 
dier who  immortalized  Appomattox;  in  a  third  you  recognize  Gen.  Philip  H. 
Sheridan,  the  hero  of  Winchester,  bold,  defiant,  invincible;  while  the  fourth, 
near  the  entrance  to  the  assembly  chamber,  is  the  leonine  countenance  of 
Frederick  Douglass.  Not  far  distant  on  the  same  floor  carved  on  similar 
pillars  are  busts  of  men  famous  in  their  country's  history  and  all  oppo- 
nents of  slavery. — The  author,  before  the  Bethel  Literary. 


XXVI 

JOHN   MERCER  LANGSTON 

John  Mercer  Langston,  slave  and  son  of  Captain  Ralph 
Quarles,  veteran  of  the  Revolutionary  War,  and  Lucy  Langston, 
whom  he  had  manumitted  in  1806,  first  saw  the  light  in  Louisa 
County,  Virginia,  December  14,  1829.  Captain  Quarles  was  a 
large  landed  proprietor  with  peculiar  views  as  to  the  manage- 
ment of  his  slaves.  No  white  man  was  allowed  by  him  to  over- 
see them,  this  work  being  done  by  his  own  men.  On  his  death 
in  1834,  Captain  Quarles  manumitted  all  his  slaves  and  ap- 
pointed trustees  to  remove  them  to  Ohio  with  liberal  provisions 
for  the  education  of  those  recognized  by  him  as  his  children. 

In  those  days  it  was  not  uncommon  for  free  Negroes  to  be 
kidnapped  in  the  Northern  States  and  be  sold  into  slavery. 
John,  when  quite  a  lad,  was  being  tal^en  away  from  Chillicothe, 
Ohio,  by  Colonel  William  D.  Gooeh,  his  guardian,  under  circum- 
stances that  made  it  appear  as  if  he  were  to  be  the  victim  of  one 
of  these  attempts.  Had  it  not  been  for  the  forethought  of  an 
elder  brother  and  the  legal  skill  of  the  lawyer,  Allen  G.  Thur- 
man,  afterwards  Senator  from  Ohio,  Langston  might  have  been 
sold  into  slavery.  In  due  time  young  Mercer  entered  Oberlin 
College,  living  meantime  in  the  family  of  George  Whipple,  one 
of  the  professors  and  later  better  known  as  Secretary  of  the 
American  Missionary  Association  which  did  such  phenomenal 
work  in  the  normal  and  higher  education  of  the  Negro  at  the 
South.  While  in  college  he  spent  a  vacation  as  a  teacher  in  a 
country  school  at  a  salary  of  ten  dollars  a  month  and  board,  the 
salary  being  paid  in  five-cent  and  ten-cent  pieces.    Fifty  dollars 

155 


156  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

Avas  the  sum  realized  from  this  service.  Langston  graduated 
from  the  college  in  1849 ;  but  he  aspired  to  be  a  lawyer  and  with 
this  end  in  view  he  made  an  application  to  the  Albany  Law- 
School  and  Avas  frank  enough  to  let  it  be  knoAATi  that  he  was  in 
part  of  Negro  blood.  This  caused  his  refusal,  but  it  Avas  in- 
timated that  if  he  were  to  claim  other  than  African  blood  he 
could  enter.     Langston  scorned  to  sail  under  such  false  colors. 

He  returned  to  Oberlin  and  took  up  a  course  there  in  theology 
for  its  disciplinary  effect  and  graduated  once  more  in  1853.  He 
also  pursued  legal  studies  in  the  laAV  office  of  Pliilimon  Bliss 
and  was  admitted  to  the  bar  in  1855  after  an  examination  in 
open  court,  and  Avas  the  first  of  his  race  to  pursue  that  vocation 
in  the  West.  Thus  he  began  his  remarkable  career.  He  filled 
several  electiA^e  toAvnship  offices,  was  twice  elected  to  the  Oberlin 
council  and  for  eleven  years  was  a  member  of  the  board  of 
education.  During  these  years  he  diligently  practiced  his  pro- 
fession and  Avas  a  factor  in  the  events  of  that  epoch  AA'hich 
include  the  election  of  Lincoln,  the  Civil  War  and  Emancipation. 

When  the  policy  of  Negro  enlistments  was  settled,  he  became 
a  successful  recruiting  officer  for  these  regiments,  and  his  first 
Adsit  to  Washington  was  to  suggest  the  propriety  of  obtaining 
a  colonel's  commission  in  one  of  these  regiments.  Gen.  James 
A.  Garfield,  subsequently  President,  accompanied  him  to  the 
White  HiOuse  and  introduced  him  to  President  Lincoln. 

At  the  National  Convention  of  colored  men  held  at  Syracuse 
in  1864,  he  Avas  chosen  head  of  the  Equal  Rights  League,  the  plan 
for  which  had  been  adopted  by  that  body.  Mr.  Langston  entered 
upon  the  w-ork  of  organizing  the  league  wdth  enthusiasm  and 
energy,  contributing  very  largely  to  the  success  of  this  first 
movement  among  colored  men,  which  embraced  the  South  as 
AA'ell  as  the  North.  Upon  the  undertaking  by  the  Freedmen's 
Bureau  of  the  Avork  of  assisting  in  the  maintenance  of  colored 
schools  in  the  South,  Langston  was,  at  the  suggestion  of  Chief 
Justice  Chase,  appointed  its  Inspector-General,  Avith  the  duty  of 


JOHN  MERCER  LANGSTON  157 

visiting  the  schools  under  its  control  for  the  colored  youth  of 
the  South,  and  reporting  their  condition  from  time  to  time  to 
General  0.  0.  Howard,  the  head  of  the  Bureau. 

In  the  discharge  of  this  work  he  found  opportunity  to  arouse 
the  recently  emancipated  with  respect  to  education.  The  pop- 
ularity and  strength  he  developed  led  Andrew  Johnson,  Presi- 
dent, to  tender  Langston  the  position  then  held  by  General 
Howard,  but  it  was  courteously  declined  as  was  also  the  minister- 
ship to  Haiti.  When  Howard  University  was  established  and 
a  law  department  opened,  the  task  of  organizing  it  was  imposed 
on  Mr.  Langston,  and  he  was  equal  to  the  emergency.^  Young 
men  came  from  different  sections  of  the  country  and  the  West 
Indies  and  began  the  study  of  the  law,  an  opening  denied  colored 
youth  twenty  years  before.  He  gave  all  his  energy  to  this  new 
opportunity,  resigned  from  the  Oberlin  Board  of  Education  and 
brought  his  family  to  Washington. 

In  1871,  the  year  of  the  first  commencement,  the  presence  of 
Charles  Sumner  as  the  orator  attracted  wide  attention,  as  he 
had'  made  it  a  rule  to  refuse  all  such  invitations.  His  accept- 
ance was  an  act  of  courtesy  to  Langston  and  an  encouragement 
to  colored  men  to  study  law.  Through  the  good  offices  of  Sen- 
ator Sumner  the  presence  of  Ralph  Waldo  Emerson  was  secured 
in  one  of  the  Sunday  morning  course  of  lectures  on  Ethics,  given 
to  the  law  students. 

President  Grant  appointed  Mr.  Langston  a  member  of  the  first 
Washington  Board  of  Health,  a  position  held  by  him  for  seven 
years.  This  Board  of  Health  had  plenary,  almost  absolute, 
powers  in  the  sphere  of  municipal  sanitation  and  hj^giene.  The 
only  lawyer  on  the  board,  Mr.  Langston 's  abilities  were  called 
into  constant  use. 

Shortly  after  their  organization  they  visited  several  Northern 

1  He  was  admitted  to  practice  in  the  U.  S.  Supreme  Court,  Jan.  17,  18G7, 
on  motion  of  General  J.  A.  Garfield.  The  first  Negro  was  John  A.  Rock 
of  Massachusetts. 


158  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

cities  to  get  the  benefit  of  the  experience  of  other  local  health 
boards.  The  following  story  displays  Mr.  Langston's  wit  and 
repartee:  "You  have  a  Negro  on  your  board?"  "Yes," 
answered  Professor  Langston,  "And  he  knows  as  much  of  sani- 
tation as  any  of  them;  he  has  as  much  common-sense,  is  as  elo- 
quent and" — turning  to  the  darkest  one  in  the  party,  said — 
"Allow  me  to  introduce  him,  Dr.  Bliss."  Taking  the  joke,  Dr. 
Bliss  said,  "I  may  be  darker  than  you,  Professor  Langston,  but 
your  hair  is  not  so  straight  as  mine." 

Professor  Langston  was  also  a  trustee  of  the  Freedmen's  Sav- 
ing and  Trust  Company  ^  until  it  went  out  of  business  in  1874. 

On  the  resignation  of  General  Howard  from  the  presidency 
of  the  University,  Professor  Langston  was  chosen  vice-president 
and  acting  president.  This  was  in  1873.  On  his  failure  to  be 
elected  to  the  presidency  Langston  retired  from  the  institution 
in  1875  and  the  law  department  suspended  operations  for  two 
years. 

In  1877  President  Hayes  tendered  Mr.  Langston  the  position 
of  Minister  Resident  to  the  Court  of  Port  au  Prince.  It  was 
accepted  and  held  for  eight  years,  when  he  promptly  resigned, 
as  there  was  a  change  of  administration,  Cleveland  having  suc- 
ceeded Arthur  in  the  Presidency.  President  Cleveland  sent  for 
Minister  Langston  and  asked  him  to  remain  Haitian  Minister. 
With  characteristic  promptness,  Mr.  Langston  replied:  "Mr. 
President,  I  actively  opposed  your  election  and  cannot,  there- 
fore, conscientiously  remain  in  your  administration." 

He  was,  however,  not  left  long  a  private  citizen.  While  per- 
forming a  special  mission  to  Haiti  for  the  merchant,  John 
Wanamaker,  he  was  chosen  president  of  the  Virginia  Normal 
and  Collegiate  Institute  at  Petersburg.  Here  his  college  train- 
ing, his  experience  as  educator  in  Ohio  and  at  Howard,  his 
service  as  Inspector-General  of  Schools  for  Freedmen  and  in  the 
diplomatic  service,  with  his  high  ideals,  chivalrous  disposition 

2  See  Appendix. 


JOHN  MERCER  LANGSTON  159 

and  superb  courage,  inspired  his  race  in  Virginia  to  such  a 
degree  that  they  developed  manliness  and  political  independ- 
ence to  an  extent  hitherto  unknown.  After  a  memorable  canvass 
for  the  nomination,  in  which  he  had  the  opposition  of  the  polit- 
ical organization  headed  by  the  most  astute  manager  the  Re- 
publican party  ever  had  in  the  South,  General  William  Mahone, 
Langston  was  elected  to  the  Fifty-first  Congress,  but  he  had  to 
contest  his  right  before  Congress,  for  the  election  certificate  had 
been  awarded  to  his  opponent,  although  his  election  was  con- 
ceded. He  received  his  seat  in  the  last  days  of  the  first  session. 
He  was  defeated  for  reelection,  after  which  he  resumed  his 
practice  and  continued  it  until  his  death  in  Washington,  Novem- 
ber 15,  1897. 

In  his  family  life  Mr.  Langston  was  singularly  fortunate. 
Upon  the  completion  of  his  professional  course  at  Oberlin,  he 
led  to  the  marriage  altar  Miss  Caroline  M.  Wall,  like  himself, 
a  graduate  of  Oberlin.  Three  sons  and  a  daughter  helped  to 
make  his  fireside  an  ideal  home. 

The  traditional  influence  of  the  family  for  education  may 
be  seen  in  these  coincidences:  In  1849,  in  his  twenty-first 
year,  he  graduated  from  Oberlin  College.  Nearly  thirty  years 
after,  his  eldest  son,  then  twenty-one,  took  the  same  degree, 
A.B.,  from  the  same  spot,  and,  following  their  examples,  the 
grandsons,  John  Mercer  Langston,  Second,  and  Carroll  Napier 
Langston,  in  turn,  when  twenty-one,  followed  in  the  steps  of 
their  immediate  predecessors.  This  is  an  example  unique  in  the 
history  of  the  colored  race  in  America  where  three  generations 
have  graduated  from  the  same  college  and  at  the  same  age. 

The  encouragement  that  he  ever  gave  young  men  striving  for 
education  and  a  career,  his  dignity,  his  courtesy  and  his  manliness 
were  traits  of  character  which  commanded  universal  admiration. 
He  was  much  in  demand  on  emancipation  occasions,  in  political 
campaigns  and  as  a  popular  platform  orator.  Many  of  the  best 
of  his  addresses  on  these  occasions  are  published  in  book  form 


160  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

under  the  title  "Freedom  and  Citizenship."  They  are  intro- 
duced by  a  sympathetica!  biographical  sketch  written  by  Dr. 
J.  E,  Rankin,  the  poet-preacher,  and  are  able,  eloquent,  scholarly, 
exemplifying  IVIr.  Langston  at  his  best.  An  autobiography 
"From  the  Virginia  Plantation  to  the  National  Capital"  gives  in 
detail  the  principal  events  of  his  life. 

There  were  two  dramatic  situations  in  his  career  that  became 
great  oratorical  triumphs — his  appearance  at  Louisa  Court 
House,  near  the  place  of  his  birth  in  the  dawn  of  Reconstruction 
not  long  after  the  Civil  War. 

An  army  officer  who  was  stationed  at  Gordonsville,  Virginia, 
and  had  charge  of  Reconstruction  affairs  reported  the  incident  in 
the  Washington  Star  while  Mr.  Langston  was  Minister  to  Haiti 
as  follows :  "It  was  given  out  that  John  M.  Langston  the  colored 
orator  ,  .  .  would  speak  at  Louisa  Court  House.  The  result  was 
an  unusually  large  attendance  of  colored  people,  so  that  the 
town  was  full.  .  .  .  Although  a  long  while  free,  and  honorably 
distinguished  there  never  had  been  a  time  before  when  Mr. 
Langston  could  safely  visit  his  native  county.  Now  he  wa.s  to 
come  back,  a  leading  man  of  his  race,  to  speak  in  public, 
and  to  revisit  the  scenes  and  recall  the  memories  of  his 
childhood.  It  Avas  therefore  a  great  occasion  for  him  and 
for  the  freedmen  of  Louisa  County.  The  white  people,  how- 
ever, took  little  note  of  it  or  interest  in  it,  although  I  had 
tried  among  the  lawyers  and  some  of  the  merchants,  and 
other  principal  citizens,  to  convey  the  impression  that  Langston 
was  a  man  they  should  recognize  and  respect.  I  remember  par- 
ticularly trying  to  convince  General  Gordon,  then  County  At- 
torney, and  an  excellent  man,  that  he  might  be  pleased  with 
Langston,  and  would  be  interested  if  he  came  over  and  heard  him 
talk.  The  feeling  that  the  Negro  was,  in  all  cases  necessarily  in- 
ferior and  totally  uninteresting  was  however,  too  strong  and  the 
General  and  several  others  manifested  impatience,  if  not  a  little 
indignation  at  my  commendatory  observation  about  Langston. 


JOHN  MERCER  LANGSTON  161 

They  would  not  have  it  that  any  'nigger'  could  talk  law,  politics, 
reconstruction  or  anything  else  with  a  degree  of  ability  and  in- 
telligence to  merit  their  attention;  and  they  could  not  imagine 
that  they  themselves  were  soon  to  attest  in  a  remarkable  manner 
the  folly  of  settled  enmity  or  contempt  of  an  entire  race  or  class 
of  men. 

' '  Of  course,  Langston  would  not  be  received  at  any  hotel  in  the 
village,  but  I  managed  to  get  over  that  difficulty  by  engaging  a 
room  for  myself  at  the  American,  inviting  him  into  it,  and  quietly 
ordering  a  private  limcheon  for  two,  of  the  best  the  house  af- 
forded. With  less  difficulty  a  pleasant  green,  where  shade  trees 
and  a  speaker's  platform,  was  secured  for  Langston 's  address,  and 
after  luncheon  when  a  crowd  of  colored  people  had  assembled,  I 
walked  with  him  and  a  few  white  Republicans,  objects  of  intense 
detestation  to  the  mass  of  people  to  the  platform.  I  noticed 
General  Gordon  and  a  few  of  the  prominent  citizens  around  the 
outskirts  of  the  crowd  within  hearing  of  the  speaker,  but  none 
seemed  to  be  really  attending  the  meeting.  Langston  began  by 
referring  to  old  Virginia  and  Louisa  County  as  the  place  of  his 
birth,  and  spoke  in  the  happiest  vein  and  with  all  the  eloquence, 
elegance  and  oratorical  art  that  distinguished  him  of  the  genuine 
affection  he  felt  for  his  native  State  and  town,  and  of  the  pleasure 
it  gave  him  to  come  back  again  to  the  home  of  his  boyhood.  In 
a  few  minutes  he  had  the  mastery  of  every  man  within  his 
voice.  He  pictured  the  greatness  of  the  State  in  its  earliest 
daj'S,  referred  to  its  distinguished  men,  and  its  history  and 
national  influence,  spoke  touehingly  of  its  present  temporary 
depression  and  distress,  and  most  hopefully  and  glowingly  of 
its  future  promise  and  possibilities  as  a  free  state.  Then  with 
admirable  taste  and  tact  he  fell  naturally  into  a  discussion  of 
the  living  questions  of  the  day,  avoiding  all  irritating  points 
and  expressions.  In  a  little  while  I  looked  about  me  and  saw 
the  platform  and  all  avoidable  space  near  it  and  around  it 
packed  with  white  people.     The  blacks  accustomed  to  yielding 


162  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

precedence  had  given  up  all  the  best  places  and  a  white  man  was 
wedged  into  every  one.  More  eager  interest  I  never  saw  in  the 
faces  of  any  audience.  There  was  General  Gordon  crowding 
near  Langston  with  irrepressible  confession  of  homage  springing 
from  his  eyes  and  pouring  down  his  cheeks,  while  the  beautiful 
periods,  paying  honor  to  Old  Virginia,  fell  from  the  orator's 
lips.  The  address  continued  for  two  hours  with  unflagging 
interest  on  the  part  of  the  audience,  and  closed  with  an  admirable 
peroration.  Then  followed  a  scene  of  spontaneous  enthusiasm 
that  is  seldom  witnessed. 

''It  was  my  purpose  to  introduce  several  white  citizens  to 
Langston  at  the  close  of  his  speech,  but  the  excitement  among 
them  was  too  great.  They  crowded  upon  him,  as  many  as  could 
get  near,  and  fairly  overwhelmed  him  with  the  warmth  and 
energy  of  their  unconstrained  greetings  and  compliments.  He 
was  borne  by  the  pressure  into  the  dining  room  of  the  hotel,  and  a 
grand  dinner  was  forthwith  ordered  in  his  honor,  at  which  Gen- 
eral Gordon  presided,  and  many  of  the  best  citizens  sat  at  the 
board.  He  was  at  once  a  guest  of  the  town,  and  no  attention 
of  honor  seemed  too  great  for  its  good  people  to  bestow  upon 
him.  All  prejudice  against  his  color  was  totally  extinguished. 
After  dinner,  the  white  ladies  sent  a  committee  to  wait  on  him 
to  invite  him  to  address  them  at  the  principal  church  in  the  even- 
ing. He  accepted  the  invitation  and  the  auditorium  was  more 
than  crowded  by  the  best  people  of  the  place.  Even  the  windows 
and  doors  were  packed.  General  Gordon  escorted  him  to  the 
pulpit  and  introduced  him  to  the  audience.  The  best  room  in 
the  hotel  was  now  opened  to  him,  and  the  next  morning  carriages 
were  provided,  and  in  company  with  a  numerous  escort  to  visit 
the  homestead  and  tomb  of  his  father,  and  .  .  .  the  humble  grave 
of  his  dark-hued  mother." 

The  other  was  his  dashing  campaign  for  the  nomination  for 
Congress,  when  he  displayed  superior  generalship  to  General 


JOHN  MERCER  LANGSTON  163 

William  Mahone,  and  the  army  of  federal  politicians,  State  and 
National. 

Dr.  J.  E.  Rankin  draws  this  pen  picture  of  Langston : 
' '  With  less  massive  movement  of  mind  and  dignity  of  address 
than  the  great  orator  Douglass,  for  platform  speech  he  is  keener 
and  more  magnetic.  In  person  he  is  little  above  the  medium 
stature,  slender  and  straight  as  an  arrow.  For  suavity  and  grace 
of  person  he  might  be  taken  for  a  Frenchman,  and  sometimes 
as  you  look  at  his  features  you  think  he  may  be  of  Spanish  or 
Italian  descent.  But  to-day  he  makes  his  boast  that  he  has 
some  of  the  best  blood  of  the  three  races,  so  historic  in  the  great 
events  of  the  continent:  the  Indian,  the  Negro,  and  the  Anglo- 
Saxon.  ' ' 


XXVII 

BLANCHE   KELSO   BRUCE 

B.  K.  Bruce  was  the  most  snceessful  political  leader  that  the 
American  Negro  has  yet  produced.  Though  born  a  slave  in 
Farmville,  Prince  Edward  County,  Virginia,  March  1,  1841,  he 
rose  to  an  official  position  in  the  legislative  and  executive  service 
of  the  United  States  next  below  that  of  Vice  President  and 
Cabinet  Officer.  Branch  Bruce  was  the  name  given  him  in 
childhood,  but  as  he  approached  manhood  he  changed  it  to 
Blanche  Kelso.  In  this  respect  he  was  not  unlike  Booker  Wash- 
ington, Frederick  Douglass  and  Grover  Cleveland. 

The  family  were  taken  first  to  Mississippi,  thence  to  Bruns- 
wick, Mo.  In  this  town  when  quite  a  small  boy  he  was  a  printer's 
devil.  All  his  odd  moments  were  spent  in  reading  books  and 
newspapers.  Thus,  like  many  another  man  who  has  become 
eminent,  he  laid  the  foundation  of  a  good  English  education. 

Speaking  of  Mr.  Bruce 's  early  attempts  to  educate  himself, 
his  friend,  Mr.  George  C.  Smith,  to  w^hom  the  author  is  indebted 
for  much  data  not  otherwise  obtainable,  says :  "It  was  not  until 
'83  that  I  got  an  insight  into  how  he  acquired  the  rudiments 
of  an  education  while  yet  a  slave.  Strange  I  had  never  asked 
him  to  tell  me.  At  the  time  referred  to  I  spent  an  evening 
with  Congressman  Cosgrove,  of  Missouri,  at  Willard's  Hotel  in 
Washington,  who  told  me  much  of  Mr.  Bruce 's  boyhood.  He 
said  that  many  years  before  the  war  he  (Cosgrove)  was  learning 
the  printer's  trade  at  Brunswick,  Mo.,  and  that  Mr.  Bruce  was 
the  'devil'  on  the  press,  and  whenever  he  was  wanted,  he  was 
always  found  with  his  head  buried  in  a  book  or  a  newspaper, 

164 


BLANCHE  KELSO  BRUCE  165 

that  it  was  a  difScult  job  to  keep  him  at  work.  Having  learned 
the  trade  of  printer  he  (Cosgrove)  left  Brunswick  and  did  not 
return  until  '82 — nearly  thirty  years  thereafter — when  he 
thought  he  would  visit  the  printer's  office,  where  he  found  the 
same  old  man  publishing  the  same  little  sheet,  and  said  almost 
the  first  question  he  asked,  was,  'Where  is  that  colored  boy — the 
' '  devil ' '  ?  When  the  old  man  said,  '  why,  have  you  never  seen  or 
heard  of  him  since?'  and  taking  from  his  pocket  a  dollar  bill, 
the  old  man  pointed  to  the  lower  left-hand  corner  to  the  name 
'B.  K.  Bruce,  Register'  and  said:  'Not  only  is  he  the  Register 
of  the  United  States  Treasury,  and  no  bonds  or  paper  money 
issued  by  this  great  government  is  valid  without  his  name,  but 
he  has  become  a  United  States  Senator  and  to-day  stands  as  not 
only  the  recognized  leader  of  his  race,  but  one  of  the  great  men 
of  this  nation.  Even  you,  Mr.  Cosgrove,  cannot  get  to  Washing- 
ton, to  be  sworn  in,  unless  you  have  a  "pass"  from  this  "devil" 
of  ante-bellum  days.'  " 

During  the  early  days  of  the  Civil  War  he  escaped  to  Lawrence, 
Kansas,  and  opened  there  the  first  school  for  colored  children. 
In  1864  the  first  school  for  colored  children  in  Missouri  was 
taught  by  him  at  Hannibal.  In  1866,  he  entered  Oberlin  where 
he  remained  only  one  year.  The  next  year  found  him  at  St. 
Louis,  an  employe  on  the  Steamer  Columbia,  which  plied  between 
St.  Louis  and  Council  Bluffs,  Iowa. 

The  political  reconstruction  of  the  States  lately  in  rebellion 
having  been  fairly  begun,  Mr.  Bruce  left  the  steamboat  service, 
went  prospecting,  first  to  Arkansas,  thence  to  Tennessee,  finally 
remaining  in  Mississippi.  Shortly  afterwards  he  was  appointed 
by  Military  Governor  General  Adelbert  Ames,  conductor  of  elec- 
tions for  Tallahatchie  County.  On  the  assembling  of  the  legis- 
lature in  the  winter  of  '69- '70,  Mr.  Bruce  appeared  at  Jackson 
as  a  candidate  for  sergeant-at-arms  in  the  senate  and  was  elected, 
serving  during  the  entire  session.  In  1871  he  was  appointed  by 
Governor  Alcorn  as  assessor  of  Bolivar   County,   and   in   the 


166  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

same  year  was  elected  sheriff  and  tax  collector.  He  took  charge 
in  January,  1872.  He  was  next  appointed  member  of  the  levee 
board  and  cotton  tax  collector.  These  offices  required  a  bond 
of  $200,000,  which  was  made  in  the  county  and  principally  by 
Democrats  who  had  confidence  in  his  integrity  and  business 
capacity. 

He  was  also  appointed  by  the  State  Board  of  Education  the 
county  superintendent  of  the  schools  in  Bolivar  County. 

All  these  offices  were  discharged  with  marked  efficiency.  His 
next  step  upward,  to  the  United  States  Senate,  was  a  prodigious 
one.  His  election  to  it  was  no  accident,  but  the  outcome  of  a 
campaign  planned  three  years  before  and  begun  in  the  United 
States  Senate  chamber  itself. 

While  returning  from  the  National  Republican  Convention 
to  which  they  were  both  delegates,  James  Hill,  the  foremost 
Negro  leader  of  the  State,  and  Mr.  Bruce  visited  Washington. 
Among  other  places  was  the  Capitol  where  they  strolled  in  the 
Senate,  sought  and  sat  in  the  seats  of  Alcorn  and  Ames. 

"How  would  you  like  to  occupy  that  seat?"  said  Hill  to 
Bruce. 

"What  do  you  mean?"  said  Bruce. 

"Occupy  it  as  Senator  from  the  State  of  Mississippi,"  was 
Hill's  answer. 

"  It  is  out  of  the  question, ' '  was  Bruce 's  reply. 

* '  I  can  and  will  put  you  there ;  no  one  can  defeat  you, ' '  added 
Hill  with  vigor. 

Hiram  R.  Revels  had  been  elected  to  the  United  States  Senate 
for  an  unexpired  term  which  had  lapsed  ten  years  before  by 
the  resignation  of  Jefferson  Davis  to  become  president  of  the 
Southern  Confederacy.  In  popular  esteem  Revels  had  not 
proven  a  success.  He  had  incurred  the  displeasure  of  Senator 
Sumner  because  of  a  certain  vote  and  his  reelection  was  out^ 
of  the  question.  Mr.  Bruce,  on  the  other  hand,  had  attracted 
increasing    attention    because    of   his    businesslike    methods    of 


BLANCHE  KELSO  BRUCE         167 

transacting  public  affairs  and  his  executive  ability.  The  Florey- 
ville  Star,  a  weekly  published  in  Bolivar  County  made  sentiment 
for  the  election  of  a  colored  Senator  for  the  full  term  of  six 
years,  but  named  no  candidate,  though  its  incidental  references 
to  Mr.  Bruce  were  that  he  was  too  valuable  a  man  to  be  spared 
from  the  county  and  also  that  he  could  not  be  induced  to  accept. 
At  the  time  of  the  election  of  Revels  some  of  the  colored  mem- 
bers of  the  legislature  thought  that  they  should  have  had  the 
full  term  of  six  years  instead  of  the  short  one.  Governor  Ames 
who  had  left  the  Senate  and  been  elected  governor  mainly  to 
promote  his  chance  for  the  term  beginning  March  4,  1875,  an- 
nounced his  candidacy;  but  Hill  was  equal  to  the  occasion  and 
defied  the  governor.  When  the  legislature  met,  the  white  and 
the  colored  Republicans  held  first,  separate,  then  joint  caucuses 
for  the  senatorial  nomination.  Several  colored  men  aspired  for 
the  honor,  and  the  white  Republicans  sought  to  di^dde  the  colored 
forces  by  the  candidacy  of  one  or  more  of  these  aspirants,  but 
59  of  the  60  colored  members  stood  firm.  Bruce  was  nominated 
and  was  elected.  Hill 's  pledge  made  in  the  United  States  Senate 
Chamber  three  years  before  was  redeemed.  The  Floreyville  Star 
ceased  to  shine  and  its  proprietor  and  editor-in-chief  took  his 
seat  as  the  first  and  only  Negro  in  the  United  States  Senate  to 
serve  a  full  term  of  six  years.  His  term  ended  with  the  inaug- 
uration of  James  A.  Garfield  as  President. 

A  very  interesting  incident  connected  with  Mr.  Bruce 's  induc- 
tion into  office  is  told  in  the  Senator's  own  language. 

"When  I  came  up  to  the  Senate  I  knew  no  one  except  Senator 
Alcorn  who  was  my  colleague.  When  the  names  of  the  new 
Senators  were  called  out  for  them  to  go  up  and  take  the  oath,  all 
the  others  except  myself  were  escorted  by  their  colleagues.  Mr. 
Alcorn  made  no  motion  to  escort  me,  but  was  buried  behind  a 
newspaper,  and  I  concluded  I  would  go  it  alone.  I  had  got 
about  half-way  up  the  aisle  when  a  tall  gentleman  stepped  up 
and  said: 


168  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

' '  '  Excuse  me,  Mr.  Bruce,  I  did  not  until  this  moment  see  that 
you  were  without  an  escort,  permit  me.  My  name  is  Conkling,' 
and  he  linked  his  arm  in  mine  and  we  marched  up  to  the  desk 
together.  I  took  the  oath  and  then  he  escorted  me  back  to  my 
seat.  Later  in  the  day,  when  they  were  fixing  up  the  committees, 
he  asked  me  if  anyone  was  looking  after  my  interests,  and  upon 
my  informing  him  that  there  was  not,  and  that  I  was  myself 
more  ignorant  of  my  rights  in  the  matter,  he  volunteered  to  at- 
tend to  it,  and  as  a  result  I  was  placed  on  some  very  good  com- 
mittees and  shortly  afterwards  I  got  a  chairmanship.  I  have 
always  felt  very  kindly  towards  Mr.  Conkling  since,  and  always 
shall." 

Four  years  later  the  Senator,  who  married  in  1878,  named  his 
son  Roscoe  Conkling  Bruce. 

Although  disappointed  in  his  ambition  to  return  to  Oberlin, 
Mr.  Bruce  pursued  by  private  study  its  full  college  course.  He 
allowed  nothing  to  interfere  with  his  plan,  and  even  after  his 
entrance  upon  his  duties  as  Senator  he  employed  a  distinguished 
educator  under  whose  tutelage  he  broadened  his  mental  train- 
ing. 

While  in  the  Senate  he  occasionally  presided  over  its  deliber- 
ations. He  served  on  these  standing  committees:  Education 
and  Labor,  Manufactures,  Pensions,  Improvement  of  the  Missis- 
sippi River  and  its  Tributaries,  besides  being  Chairman  of  the 
Select  Committee  on  the  Levees  of  the  Mississippi  and  of  the 
Freedmen's  Saving  and  Trust  Company.  In  this  last-named 
committee,  appointed  to  investigate  the  affairs  of  this  corporation, 
he  rendered  special  sei'vice  by  making  public  the  wrongs  perpe- 
trated on  the  masses  of  his  race,  saving  thousands  of  dollars  to 
the  depositors  in  winding  up  its  affairs  and  by  paving  the  way 
for  governmental  aid. 

At  the  expiration  of  his  term  in  the  Senate  he  was  nominated 
May  19,  1881,  as  Register  of  the  Treasury  by  President  Gar- 
field.    He  served  four  years,  and  discharged  the  duties  of  this 


BLANCHE  KELSO  BRUCE  169 

office  with  entire  satisfaction  to  the  Administration  of  which 
he  formed  a  part.  This  appointment  of  a  Negro  to  a  place 
where  his  signature  was  necessary  on  all  the  United  States  Cur- 
rency and  Securities  to  make  them  legal,  was  the  first  of  the 
kind  in  oui'  history. 

At  an  early  period  of  the  administration  of  Cleveland,  in  1885, 
Mr.  Bruce  retired  to  private  life  and  carved  for  himself  a 
new  career.  He  went  on  the  lecture  platform,  spoke  far  and 
wide,  rapidly  developing  a  facility  and  power  of  speech  that 
made  him  one  of  the  best-equipped  men  of  the  race  in  the  public 
eye,  so  that  his  services,  next  to  those  of  Frederick  Douglass  and 
John  M.  Langston,  were  in  constant  demand  as  orator  on  an- 
niversary and  other  special  occasions. 

A  severe  test  of  his  ability  in  this  respect  was  when  he  ap- 
peared on  the  same  platform  in  a  symposium  on  the  Race  Prob- 
lem with  such  a  master  of  controversy  as  Dr.  ( now  Chaplain,  re- 
tired) T.  G.  Steward,  such  a  scholar  as  Dr.  J.  W.  E,  Bowen, 
and  Mrs.  Anna  J.  Cooper.  This  came  off  in  the  Metropolitan 
A,  M.  E.  Church  in  Washington.  Here  his  lucid,  exhaustive, 
masterly  presentation  of  the  subject  gave  him  preeminence  in 
the  discussion. 

On  the  return  of  the  Republicans  to  power  in  1889,  Mr.  Bruce 
was  named  as  Recorder  of  Deeds,  succeeding  Mr.  James  Monroe 
Trotter  of  Massachusetts,  also  a  colored  man  and  a  veteran  of  the 
Civil  War,  whose  independence  in  politics  had  commended  him 
to  the  favorable  consideration  of  President  Cleveland,  especially 
as  a  Republican  Senate  had  failed  to  confirm  for  the  same 
position  James  C.  Matthews,  a  colored  lawyer  of  Albany,  N.  Y., 
who  had  acted  with  the  Democratic  Party  since  the  Liberal  Re- 
publican Movement  of  1872.  Mr.  Bruce  served  as  Recorder  of 
Deeds  until  May  25,  1894,  Cleveland  having  in  the  meanwhile 
been  elected  President  the  second  time. 

During  his  term  as  Recorder  Mr.  Bruce  was  appointed  trustee 
of  the  public  schools  of  Washington.     He  served  in  this  capacity 


170  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

for  seven  years  or  up  to  his  appointment  as  Register  of  the 
Treasury  by  President  McKinley.  He  began  his  term  of  office 
December  2,  1897,  on  the  38th  anniversary  of  the  martyrdom  of 
John  Brown.  Mr.  Bruce  had  completed  but  three  months  of  offi- 
cial duty  when  he  fell  a  victim  of  diabetes,  which  for  several  years 
had  made  insidious  attacks  on  his  otherwise  vigorous  system. 

Mr.  Bruce  was  elected  trustee  of  Howard  University  in  Jan- 
uary, 1894,  succeeding  Bishop  John  M.  Brown.  Howard  had 
conferred  on  him  the  degree  of  LL.  D.  He  was  a  planter  on  a 
large  scale,  beginning  in  1891  and  continuing  up  to  the  time  of 
his  death. 

He  was  delegate  to  the  National  Republican  Conventions  of 
1872,  1876,  1880  and  1888.  In  the  Convention  of  '80  he  was  one 
of  the  "306"  to  vote  for  U.  S.  Grant  for  more  than  thirty 
ballots,  after  which  Garfield  was  nominated  President. 

As  Commissioner  General  of  the  World's  Cotton  Exposition, 
Department  of  Colored  Exhibits,  held  in  New  Orleans,  from 
November,  1884,  to  May,  1885,  Mr.  Bruce  afforded  the  country 
and  the  world  the  first  opportunity  of  showing  what  the  Negro 
could  do  in  the  arts,  invention  and  many  lines  of  handicraft. 
He  secured  the  sum  of  fifty  thousand  dollars  from  the  manage- 
ment and  with  this  he  installed  exhibits  from  colored  people  all 
over  the  United  States.  These  exhibits  received  most  favorable 
comments  from  representative  journals  whose  correspondents 
had  visited  the  Exposition. 

Physically  Mr.  Bruce  was  a  splendid  type  of  the  American 
Negro.  He  was  above  the  average  height,  broad-shouldered  and 
erect.  His  countenance  and  manner  provoked  no  antagonisms, 
yet  indicated  one  who  while  not  eager  to  enter  a  contest  could 
bear  himself  manfully  when  in  it.  His  entire  personality  har- 
monized with  his  repeated  political  successes  achieved  in  the  Era 
of  Reconstruction  in  Mississippi,  his  career  on  the  Board  of  Edu- 
cation, as  an  Executive  officer  and  in  the  United  States  Senate  in 
Washington. 


XXVIII 

JOSEPH    C.    PRICE 

It  is  doubtful  if  the  nineteenth  century  produced  a  superior  or 
more  popular  orator  of  the  type  that  enlists  the  sympathies, 
entertains  and  compels  conviction  than  Joseph  C.  Price.  In  little 
more  than  a  brief  decade  he  was  known  in  Great  Britain  and 
the  United  States,  both  on  the  Pacific  and  the  Atlantic,  as  a 
peerless  orator.  In  1881  he  first  rose  to  eminence  as  a  platform 
speaker;  in  1893  his  star  sank  below  the  horizon.  Yet  he  was 
more  than  orator:  he  was  a  recognized  race  leader;  a  most 
potential  force  in  politics,  though  not  a  politician;  a  builder  of 
a  great  school — a  most  conspicuous  object  lesson  of  "Negro 
Capabilities. ' ' 

His  fame  rests  not  alone  upon  his  popularity  within  his  own 
church  or  his  own  race,  for  the  evidence  is  conclusive  that  though 
unmistakably  identified  wdth  the  Negro,  Democratic  whites  and 
whole  communities  recognized  his  worth,  highly  esteemed  him, 
honored  him  in  life  and  mourned  him  in  death. 

Joseph  C.  Price  was  born  February  10,  1854,  in  one  of  the 
darkest  decades  of  the  nineteenth  century,  at  Elizabeth  City, 
North  Carolina,  while  the  law  of  the  land  and  its  administration 
were  in  the  complete  control  of  the  Slave  Power.  Webster  and 
Clay  who  had  largely  influenced  the  politics  of  the  country,  had 
passed  off  the  stage  of  action.  Stephen  A.  Douglas  and  Jeffer- 
son Davis  were  molding  the  pro-slavery  sentiment  of  the  Nation. 

The  father  of  Price  was  a  slave,  and  though  the  son  followed 
the  legal  status  of  the  mother,  a  free  woman,  yet  his  lot  was 
that  of  the  average  slave  child  of  this  period.     The  Emancipation 

171 


172  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

Proclamation  had  not  been  issued  when  Price  accompanied  his 
parents  to  Newbern,  the  rendezvous  of  thousands  of  freedmen. 

Reverend  Thomas  H,  Battle  says:  "It  was  in  the  year  1862, 
when  I  was  superintendent  of  the  Sunday  school  of  St.  Andrew 's 
Chapel  that  I  was  led  by  Providence  on  a  bright  Sunday  morn- 
ing to  the  church  door.  There  I  stood  for  several  minutes,  and 
W'hile  standing  there  I  saw  a  little  black  barefooted  boy  coming 
stepping  along  on  the  railroad  track.  When  he  got  opposite 
the  church  door  I  halted  him  and  invited  him  in  the  Sabbath 
school.  He  liked  the  services  so  well  that  he  was  constrained  to 
come  again.  At  last  he  joined  the  Sabbath  school  and  became 
a  punctual  scholar.  From  his  stern,  yet  pleasant  looks,  his  nice 
behavior,  and  other  virtuous  elements  that  were  maintained 
in  him,  Sunday  after  Sunday,  he  attracted  my  attention  more 
than  any  other  scholar.  While  other  scholars  would  laugh  at 
him  because  of  his  boldness  of  speech  and  his  eagerness  to 
answer  the  questions  that  were  put  forth. 

"One  Sunday  in  the  midst  of  these  abuses  which  he  received, 
I  was  compelled  to  lay  my  hand  upon  his  head  and  exclaim 
these  words:  'The  day  will  come,  my  dear  scholars,  when  this 
boy  Price  wiU  shake  the  whole  civilized  world,  and  some  of  you 
will  be  glad  to  get  a  chance  to  black  his  boots.'  Little  did  I 
think  my  predicticm  would  come  to  pass  so  exact,  but  so  it  did. ' ' 

In  1866  he  attended  the  St.  Cyprian  Episcopal  School  under 
the  control  of  a  Boston  philanthropic  society,  as  all  schools  in 
the  South  for  colored  children  then  were.  Here  he  advanced 
so  rapidly  that  in  1871  he  became  a  teacher  at  Wilson,  North 
Carolina.  At  the  end  of  four  years  he  entered  the  Shaw  Uni- 
versity at  Raleigh,  remaining  there  only  a  short  time,  during 
which  he  made  an  open  profession  of  religion,  joined  the  A.  M.  E. 
Zion  Church,  and  entered  the  Lincoln  University  at  Oxford,  Penn- 
sylvania. While  at  Lincoln  Congressman  John  A.  Hyman  who 
then  represented  the  Newbern  district  offered  Mr.  Price  a  $1200 
clerkship  in  the  Treasury  Department  at  Washington.     Nine  hun- 


JOSEPH  C.  PRICE  173 

dred  and  ninety-nine  out  of  a  thousand  would  have  accepted  the 
position  and  left  college,  but  Price  refused  the  offer  without 
hesitation.  He  entered  upon  his  studies  with  assiduity.  His 
abilities  were  promptly  recognized.  He  took  the  first  medal  in 
an  oratorical  contest  in  his  freshman  year,  was  also  first  in  the 
junior  prize  oration  contest  and  graduated  with  the  valedictory 
in  1879.  During  his  senior  year  in  college  he  took  the  studies 
of  the  junior  theological  department  and  graduated  from  this 
course  in  1881.  He  was  a  delegate  to  the  A.  M.  E.  Zion  general 
conference  that  met  in  Montgomery  in  1880,  in  which,  because  of 
his  rare  oratorical  gifts  and  his  promise  of  distinguished  service, 
he  was  ordained  an  elder  before  he  had  received  his  degree  in 
theolog3^  He  was  also  chosen  a  delegate  to  the  Ecumenical  Con- 
ference of  Methodism,  held  in  London  in  1881.  Here  he  was 
brought  in  touch  with  the  representatives  of  all  the  branches  of 
Methodism,  attracting  attention  to  himself  as  one  of  the  most 
popular  orators  and  exponents  of  Negro  Methodism.  On  the 
adjournment  of  the  Conference  he  was  induced  to  lecture  through- 
out the  British  Isles  on  the  condition  of  the  American  Negro 
and  in  the  behalf  of  the  interests  of  his  church.  By  this  means 
he  raised  $10,000,  from  the  proceeds  of  which,  with  the  assistance 
of  $1,000  donated  by  the  white  merchants  of  Salisbury,  the  pres- 
ent site  of  Livingstone  College  was  purchased. 

On  his  return  to  America  he  was  no  longer  Rev.  Joseph  C. 
Price,  the  popular  orator  of  his  denomination,  but  he  was  hailed 
as  a  new  leader,  verifying  the  prophecy  of  Frederick  Douglass 
made  in  1867,  of  ''men  rising  up  under  the  fostering  wings  of 
freedom  and  education  all  over  the  South,  surpassing  in  elo- 
quence and  oratorical  power"  himself  who  "had  been  compli- 
mented as  the  great  black  man  of  the  North." 

During  the  remaining  twelve  years  of  his  life  no  other  Negro 
enjoyed  greater  popularity  nor  seemed  destined  by  the  consent 
of  the  people  to  be  their  acknowledged  leader. 

In  the  winter  of  1883  the  Bethel  Literary  of  Washington, 


174  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

D.  C,  then  at  the  height  of  its  fame,  arranged  a  symposium  which 
included  among  others  Frederick  Douglass,  Fanny  Jackson 
Coppin,  Isaiah  C.  Wears  and  Mr.  Price,  at  that  time  unknown  ex- 
cept to  a  few  personal  friends  from  North  Carolina  or  former 
students  of  Lincoln  University.  Lincoln  Hall,  now  the  Academy 
of  Music,  at  which  the  exercises  were  held  was  thronged.  For 
an  hour  and  a  half  the  audience  had  been  held  spellbound  by  the 
eloquence  of  Douglass,  the  glowing  rhetoric  of  Mrs.  Coppin  and 
the  pungent  wit  and  irony  of  Wears. 

As  the  hour  of  ten  approached  interest  flagged,  and  although 
in  expectancy  very  many  remained,  it  was  with  difficulty  that 
they  were  held  in  their  seats  to  hear  Price,  the  next  and  last 
speaker.  His  friends  had  grown  restive  and  were  solicitous  at 
the  outcome  of  this  severe  test.  When  he  arose  and  uttered  his 
first  sentence  the  effect  was  electrical.  As  he  developed  his  sub- 
ject, illustrating  first  by  jest  then  by  anecdote,  swaying  his 
audience  to  laughter  and  to  tears  at  will,  he  completely  captured 
as  well  as  captivated  them.  No  one  left  the  hall,  although  it  was 
nearly  eleven  o'clock  when  he  stopped  speaking.  The  following 
Sunday  he  preached  to  the  Plymouth  congregation  and  many 
were  unable  to  gain  admittance.  On  the  following  Tuesday 
night,  when  Dr.  0.  M.  Atwood  read  the  paper  on  ''Individual 
Development,"  Mr.  Price  Avas  the  lion  of  the  hour  in  the  dis- 
cussion following  the  reading  of  the  paper.  Frederick  Douglass 
and  Mr.  Wears  were  among  the  other  disputants.  Thenceforth 
Price  never  failed  to  draw  an  audience  in  Washington. 

At  the  Centenary  of  American  Methodism  held  in  Baltimore  in 
1884,  he  was  a  delegate  and  had  a  prominent  place  on  the  pro- 
gram. In  the  following  year  he  was  chairman  of  the  A.  M.  E. 
and  A.  M.  E.  Z.  Church  commission  held  in  the  city  of  Wash- 
ington to  consider  the  question  of  union  between  these  two  de- 
nominations. In  1890  he  was  elected  president  of  two  national 
conventions  within  brief  intervals.  The  first  was  held  in  Chicago 
and  the  Afro- American  League  was  formed.     The  second  met  in 


JOSEPH  C.  PRICE  175 

Washington  and  chose  Bishop  Alexander  W.  Wayman  as  its  pre- 
siding officer,  but  because  of  factional  differences  between  Bishop 
Wayman  and  former  Lieutenant-Governor  P.  B.  S.  Pinehback 
of  Louisiana,  Mr.  Price,  who  had  not  arrived  when  the  Conven- 
tion was  called  to  order,  was  subsequently  elected  president 
amidst  great  enthusiasm. 

In  1891  Mr.  Price  was  appointed  Commissioner-General  of 
what  was  to  be  the  Grand  Southern  Exposition  to  be  held  at 
Raleigh.  In  the  discharge  of  this  duty  he  traveled  extensively 
through  the  South,  journeying  in  the  interior  as  well  as  in  the 
larger  cities,  and  learned  much  at  first  hand  of  the  material  con- 
ditions of  the  masses  at  the  South. 

While  he  delivered  addresses  on  invitation  all  over  the  country 
and  participated  in  some  prohibition  campaigns,  he  took  no  part 
in  party  politics.  He  refused  the  Liberian  Mission,  even  after 
his  name  had  been  sent  to  the  Senate  by  President  Cleveland. 
He  would  not  allow  his  name  to  be  considered  in  connection  with 
the  bishopric  at  any  of  the  A.  M.  E.  Z.  General  Conferences, 
from  1884  to  1892,  though  he  could  have  been  elected  at  any 
time  practically  without  opposition.  His  one  ambition  was  the 
upbuilding  of  Livingstone  to  the  growth  and  development  of 
which  all  his  energies  were  given. 

The  history  of  Livingstone  for  the  first  ten  years  of  its  ex- 
istence forms  a  most  interesting  chapter  in  the  career  of  this  re- 
markable man.  At  its  Quarter  Centennial  ^  Exercises  held  in 
1907  all  the  speakers  honored  Joseph  C.  Price  as  the  one  man 
who  had  made  its  success  possible.  Beginning  in  the  fall  of  1882, 
with  five  students  in  one  building  of  two  stories  and  forty  acres 
of  land,  the  total  cost  of  which  was  $4,600,  its  progress  was  mar- 

1  At  its  quarto-centenary  it  had  real  estate  valued  at  a  quarter  of  a 
million  dollars,  had  enrolled  during  its  existence  6,500  students  represent- 
ing twenty-six  States,  and  a  large  faculty  of  graduates  from  the  collegiate 
department,  scores  from  the  theological,  291  from  the  normal  of  whom  one 
bishop,  presiding  elders,  nearly  two-score  ministers,  75  teachers  and 
scores  of  physicians  and  other  professionals. 


176  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

velous.  Btefore  the  end  of  the  year  there  were  one  new  build- 
ing and  ninety-three  students.  At  the  end  of  the  second  session 
the  enrollment  was  120  and  during  the  summer  the  new  building 
w-as  enlarged  to  91  x  38  and  to  four  stories,  including  the  base- 
ment. In  1885  Dr.  Price  visited  the  Pacific  Coast  in  the  in- 
terest of  Livingstone  and  succeeded  in  raising  nearly  $9,000  which 
with  $5,000  pledged  by  William  E.  Dodge-  and  from  other 
sources  he  created  a  fund  of  $25,000  with  which  the  Dodge  and 
Hopkins  Halls  were  erected.  These  donors  whom  Dr.  Price 
brought  to  the  aid  of  Livingstone,  Collis  P.  Huntingdon,  William 
E.  Dodge  and  Leland  Stanford  were  among  the  greatest  philan- 
thropists of  the  nineteenth  century.  They  were  no  less  swayed 
by  the  eloquence  of  Dr.  Price  than  they  were  by  their  confidence 
and  belief  in  him  as  a  man. 

Like  most  bom  leaders  Mr.  Price  was  tall  and  majestic,  pos- 
sessing a  physique  and  personality  noticeable  in  any  gather- 
ing. 

His  friend,  John  C.  Dancy,  in  describing  his  oratory  says: 
'  *  He  was  logical  and  argumentative,  and  never  lost  sight  of  these 
in  his  grandest  flights.  Simplicity  of  statement  marked  every  ut- 
terance, and  like  Wendell  Phillips,  in  order  to  judge  him,  you  had 
to  hear  rather  than  to  read  him.  To  a  most  resonant  and  musical 
voice  he  added  a  personal  charm  and  dignity  which  made  him  a 
general  favorite  and  at  home  in  any  presence.  Whether  speak- 
ing for  Mr.  Beecher  at  Plymouth  Church,  Brooklyn,  or  Mr. 
Spurgeon  in  London,  or  before  the  most  aristocratic  classes  in 
Boston,  or  in  the  Nineteenth  Century  Club  in  New  York,  he  was 
always,  and  in  every  place  the  same  strong  and  forceful  per- 
sonality who  won  esteem,  admiration  and  regard  by  his  forcible, 
earnest  and  sincere  expression  of  his  honest  convictions  in  a 
manly,  dignified  and  winsome  way." 

A  few  instances  of  the  electrical  effect  which  the  oratory  of 
Mr.  Price  produced  may  give  some  slight  idea  to  those  who  never 

2  Mr.  Price's  benefactor  at  Lincoln. 


JOSEPH  C.  PRICE  177 

witnessed    an    exhibition   of   his   wonderful   power   before    an 
audience. 

"It  was  in  1881  when  only  twenty-seven  years  old,"  says 
Bishop  J.  W.  Hood,  "Dr.  Price  began  to  be  known— first  by  his 
speeches  in  North  Carolina  under  the  prohibition  campaign,  and 
no  speaker  made  a  better  impression.  White  ladies  who  had 
never  listened  to  a  Negro  orator  before,  were  so  pleased  that  they 
lavished  bouquets  of  flowers  upon  him,  and  the  best  men  of  the 
State  were  proud  to  occupy  the  same  platform  with  him. ' ' 

The  same  prelate  says,  ""When  he  made  his  first  great  speech 
before  a  white  audience  in  Raleigh  in  1881  a  man  present,  who 
hardly  would  have  put  himself  to  the  trouble  of  going  to  hear  a 
Negro  speak,  said,  'After  several  of  the  distinguished  orators  of 
the  State  had  spoken  before  this  convention  composed  largely  of 
the  best  men  and  women  of  the  Old  North  State,  there  were  sev- 
eral calls  from  all  parts  of  the  house  for  "Price,  Price!  Price!" 
You  may  imagine  my  surprise  as  the  speaker  stepped  on  the 
platform  to  find  a  great  big  black  Negro  with  very  white  teeth. 
"Now  Webster  will  catch  it,"  this  gentleman  said,  "and  as  for 
the  ladies  what  will  become  of  them  ? "  I  was  almost  beside  my- 
self with  fear  that  something  uncouth  or  unbecoming  would  be 
heard.'  His  suspense,  however,  was  of  very  short  duration,  for 
the  speaker  had  not  uttered  half-a-dozen  sentences  before  the 
fear  ,  .  .  had  given  place  to  astonishment.  The  black  speaker 
was  delivering  in  the  best  of  English  one  of  the  most  eloquent 
discourses  to  which  it  had  ever  been  his  privilege  to  listen. ' ' 

As  to  liis  impress  on  the  Ecumenical  Conference  of  1881  the 
bishop  in  his  eulogy  says :  "  In  a  five-minute  speech  he  secured 
that  attention  of  the  world  for  which  he  was  called  'the  world's 
orator. '  The  wonder  to  people  was  that,  while  he  was  a  stranger 
to  nearly  all  the  delegates,  the  audience  seemed  to  know  him.  A 
few  days  previous  he  had  captured  an  audience  of  two  thousand 
people  at  the  town  of  Hastings,  and  possibly  a  hundred  of  those 
who  had  heard  him  there  had  come  to  London  hoping  to  hear 


178  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

him  again.  They  were  scattered  about  in  the  galleries  and  hence 
when  he  arose  there  were  calls  for  'Price'  from  all  parts  of  the 
house.  When  his  clear  voice  rang  out  over  that  va§t  assembly  in 
most  polished  English  he  was  heard  in  all  the  committee  rooms, 
and  committees  breaking  off  from  their  work  stopped  and  asked 
each  other,  'who  is  it  that  is  creating  such  extraordinary  en- 
thusiasm '  ?  The  committee  rooms  were  soon  deserted ;  he  set  the 
conference  wild  with  pleasing  emotions.  He  was  the  favorite  of 
the  audience  and  the  sound  of  his  voice  was  the  signal  for  the 
wildest  enthusiasm,  no  matter  how  dull  the  session  before  he 
began  to  speak.  At  a  grand  reception  given  in  Bristol  to  the 
delegates  from  abroad  on  the  eve  of  their  departure.  Price  was 
kept  for  the  last  speaker  so  as  to  hold  the  audience.  Bishops 
Peck  and  Walden  of  the  M.  E.  Church  were  among  the  speakers 
and  it  was  ten  o'clock  when  Price  arose.  You  would  have 
thought  that  the  roof  was  coming  off  the  house.  Those  who  had 
started  out  turned  back,  and  when  he  stopped  they  cried  go  on 
though  it  was  nearly  eleven  o  'clock. ' ' 

His  death  October  25, 1893,  in  his  fortieth  year,  was  universally 
mourned.  He  left  a  widow  and  four  small  children  bereft  of 
his  fatherly  care.  Untimely  as  his  death,  his  life  nevertheless 
was  a  complete  and  successful  one.  He  had  founded  and  es- 
tablished the  foremost  institution  for  the  higher  education  of  the 
Negro  in  the  Southland  controlled  entirely  by  his  own  race. 
His  race  leadership  was  conceded  by  affirmative  action  more 
than  once  in  church  and  civic  bodies.  He  had  won  the  good 
opinion  of  the  white  South  during  his  life.^  At  his  death  four 
of  the  leading  white  lawyers  of  Salisbury  asked  and  were  per- 
mitted to  act  as  pallbearers,  while  the  mayor  and  the  city  council 
were  present  in  a  body. 

3  At  Spartanburg,  South  Carolina,  he  was  invited  to  speak  before  the 
students  of  a  white  institution.  So  delighted  were  they  at  his  address 
that  they  voted  him  a  gold  cane,  raised  the  money,  purchased  it  and  hur- 
ried to  the  train,  which  Mr,  Price  had  rushed  to  meet,  and  presented  it  to 
him  there. 


XXIX 

ROBERT  BROWN  ELLIOTT 

Robert  Brown  Elliott  as  scholar,  lawj^er,  orator  and  politician 
loomed  up  above  all  those  of  the  Negro  race  whose  public  career 
began  and  closed  in  the  Reconstruction  Era. 

He  was  born  in  Boston,  Massachusetts,  March  15, 1842,  of  West 
Indian  parents.  His  educational  training  was  begun  in  the 
schools  of  his  native  city,  continued  in  Jamaica,  where  he  resided 
with  relatives,  and  ended  in  England,  in  which  in  1853  he  entered 
the  High  Holborn  Academy;  in  1855  he  was  admitted  to  Eton, 
one  of  the  colleges  of  the  University  of  London,  graduating  there- 
from in  1858.  He  next  began  the  study  of  law  with  Sergeant 
Fitzherbert,  but  shortly  afterwards  returned  to  Boston.^ 

During  his  early  manhood  he  followed  the  sea,  which  enabled 
him  to  visit  Ireland,  Scotland,  several  of  the  "West  Indies  and 
South  America.  He  entered  the  U.  S.  Navy  while  the  Civil  War 
was  in  progress  and  during  an  engagement  received  a  wound  that 
made  him  slightly  lame.  The  year  1867  finds  him  a  resident  and 
printer  in  Charleston,  S.  C,  working  on  the  Charleston  Leader, 
subsequently  the  3Iissionary  Record,  edited  by  Rev.  subsequently 
Bishop  Richard  H.  Cain.  Elliott's  ability  gave  him  such  influ- 
ence that  his  election  to  the  Constitutional  Convention  authorized 

1  Tliis  biographical  sketch  follows  the  conventional  account  found  in  the 
Congressional  Directory,  but  is  challenged  as  to  some  details.  A  very  high 
authority  who  knew  Elliott  Intimately  says7Tie"  was  born  of  South  Caro- 
linian, not  West  Indian  parentage,  and  gives  Hon.  T.  McCants  Stewart 
for  his  authority  that  the  extent  of  Elliott's  legal  training  was  a  six 
months'  close  study  of  the  South  Carolina  Code,  on  which  before  experi- 
enced eminent  lawyers  he  sustained  a  very  rigid  examination,  as  a  result 
of  which  he  was  admitted  to  the  bar. 

179 


180  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

by  the  plan  of  reconstruction,  easily  followed.  In  this  body  the 
Republican  Party  had  full  sway  and  there  were  many  Negro  mem- 
bers. Among  these  were  J.  H.  Rainey,  R.  H.  Cain,  Robert  C. 
DeLarge,  A,  J.  Ransier,  and  Robert  Smalls,  who  all  became  mem- 
bers of  the  national  House  of  Representatives,  Francis  L  Car- 
dozo,  later  state  Treasurer  and  Secretary  of  State,  W.  J.  Whip- 
per,  and  J.  J.  Wright,  who  were  elected  state  judges. 

Elliott's  appearance  did  not  mark  him  as  one  destined  to  be  at 
all  prominent  in  the  proceedings  of  the  Convention,  nor  did  the 
fact  that  he  was  silent  the  first  fourteen  days  of  the  session, 
while  there  was  oratorv  in  abundance,  but  when  he  did  take  the 
floor  his  words  at  once  challenged  attention  and  foretold  his 
eminence. 

A  measure  which  seemed  to  countenance  payment  to  slave 
owners  for  their  erstwhile  slaves  M^as  up  when  he  arrested  its 
passage  by  saying  among  other  things : 

"The  importance  of  this  subject  overcomes  my  reluctance  to 
obtrude  my  feeble  opinion,  but  as  this  subject  has  been  presented 
here,  I  deem  it  the  duty  of  every  gentleman  in  this  Convention 
to  express  himself  candidly.  ...  I  am  aware  that  it  is  urged  that 
contracts  made  in  the  traffic  of  slaves  were  'bona  fide  contracts, 
that  Congress  sanctioned  them.  But  if  Congress  did  sanction 
them  it  does  so  no  longer.  I  contend  there  never  was  nor  never 
can  be  any  claim  to  property  in  man.  I  regard  the  seller  of  the 
slaves  as  the  principal  and  the  buyer  as  the  accessory.  A  few 
years  ago  the  popular  verdict  of  the  country  was  passed  upon  the 
slave  seller  and  the  buyer,  and  both  were  found  guilty.  The 
buyer  of  the  slave  received  his  sentence,  and  we  are  now  here  to 
pass  sentence  upon  the  seller.  I  hope  we  will  vote  unanimously 
to  put  our  stamp  of  condemnation  upon  this  remnant  of  an 
abominable  institution  which  was  such  a  stigma  upon  the  justice 
of  this  country.  I  hope  we  will  do  away  with  everything  con- 
nected with  this  bastard  of  iniquity. ' '  ^ 

2  T.  J.  Minton  in  the  A.  M.  E.  Review. 


ROBERT  BROWN  ELLIOTT  181 

The  measure  failed  to  pass  and  Elliott  became  known  as  one 
of  the  leading  members,  justifying  his  assignment  to  the  Com- 
mittee of  the  Bill  of  Rights. 

At  the  first  election  held  under  the  constitution  he  was  elected 
to  the  legislature.  In  this  body  he  soon  became  the  leader.  He 
was  chosen  chairman  of  the  Republican  State  Executive  Com- 
mittee, a  position  which  he  held  until  1876.  March  25,  1869  he 
received  the  appointment  from  Governor  Robert  K.  Scott  as  As- 
sistant Adjutant-General  of  the  State  Militia,  whence  the  title 
of  general  by  which  he  was  familiarly  greeted. 

He  is  thus  described  as  a  popular  leader :  "A  Toussaint,  com- 
manding in  appearance,  and  yet  by  his  easy  manner  and  his  kind 
words  inspiring  love,  confidence  and  respect,  receiving  these 
humble  yeomen,  who  have  come  to  claim  his  attention  on  some 
matter  of  interest  to  themselves  or  their  friends.  Wherever 
he  would  go  you  would  see  the  smile  of  recognition  and  the  dof- 
fing of  the  hat  as  a  token  of  respect  to  the  black  chief.  In 
traveling,  around  the  car  window  they  would  gather  for  a  word 
of  recognition  and  a  hearty  shake  of  the  hand. ' ' 

After  a  spirited  contest  he  was  nominated  and  elected  to  the 
42d  Congress  and  reelected  to  the  43d  Congress  from  the  dis- 
trict which  had  sent  to  Washington  Preston  S.  Brooks,  the  as- 
sailant of  Charles  Sumner,  nearly  twenty-two  years  before. 

During  the  canvass  for  his  first  nomination,  an  opponent  in  a 
crowded  hall  in  Columbia,  at  a  time  when  Mr.  Elliott  was  sup- 
posed to  be  at  a  distant  part  of  the  State,  bitterly  attacked  his 
record  and  made  several  personal  reflections.  "Mr.  Elliott  ar- 
rived while  the  meeting  was  in  progress  and  heard  much  that  was 
charged  against  him.  He  rose  to  reply  to  the  consternation  of 
his  assailant ;  there  was  no  disposition  on  the  part  of  the  tumul- 
tuous audience  to  hear  him.  Shouts  of  disapprobation  were  heard 
from  all  parts  of  the  house,  and  in  such  a  demonstrative  and 
threatening  manner  as  to  have  deterred  most  men  from  the  at- 
tempt to  reply.     For  the  space  of  a  quarter  of  an  hour  no  sound 


182  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

of  his  voice  could  be  heard.  But  he  persisted  until  a  few  words 
caught  the  ear  of  the  mob,  attracted  their  attention  and  held 
them  until  riot  gave  way  to  reason.  From  unwilling  hearers  they 
became  enthusiastic  listeners.  Outspoken  disapprobation,  jeers 
and  hisses  gave  place  to  vociferous  applause  and  at  the  close  of 
his  reply  he  had  captured  the  meeting  and  put  his  assailant  to 
flight." 

The  appearance  of  Elliott  was  most  opportune.  Such  ques- 
tions incident  to  reconstruction  as  civil  rights,  general  amnesty 
and  the  Ku  Klux  Klan  were  among  the  political  matters  in  which 
his  constituents  were  vitally  interested.  Among  the  Republican 
leaders  may  be  named,  Benjamin  F.  Butler,  James  G.  Blaine, 
George  F,  Hoar,  William  D,  Kelley  and  James  A,  Garfield  in 
the  House ;  Oliver  P.  Morton,  Charles  Sumner,  Roscoe  Conkling, 
Zachariah  Chandler,  John  A.  Logan,  John  Sherman,  Matthew 
H.  Carpenter  in  the  Senate.  In  the  debate  on  all  these  ques- 
tions Mr,  Elliott  bore  a  conspicuous  part ;  but  it  was  in  the  civil 
rights  discussion  that  had  been  pending  for  three  years  that  he 
won  a  name  and  a  fame  greater  than  that  associated  with  any 
other  colored  Congressman.  The  debate  on  these  questions  was 
bitter  and  exhaustive.  Two  new  elements  were  now  present  in 
Congress  who  were  not  represented  in  the  forum  of  debate  when 
citizenship  and  the  franchise  had  been  conferred  seven  years  be- 
fore. These  were  the  ex-slaveholder  and  the  freedman.  The 
South  had  sent  such  of  her  ablest  men  as  Alexander  H.  Stephens, 
of  Georgia ;  James  B.  Beck,  of  Kentucky ;  and  John  T.  Harris,  of 
Virginia,  to  contest  every  inch  of  ground  in  any  further  attempt 
to  enlarge  the  liberties  and  privileges  of  the  new  citizen  or  to 
make  these  more  secure.  The  Negro  was  represented  in  the  43d 
Congress  by  seven  men  as  follows :  James  T.  Rapier,  Alabama ; 
Josiah  T.  Walls,  Florida;  Joseph  H.  Rainey,  Robert  B.  Elliott, 
A.  J.  Ransier,  and  R.  H.  Cain  of  South  Carolina  and  John  R. 
Lynch  of  Mississippi. 

By  his  legal  training  and  legislative  experience  in  the  consti- 


ROBERT  BROWN  ELLIOTT  183 

tutional  convention  and  the  legislature  of  his  State,  Elliott  was 
the  foremost  and  was  eminently  fitted  to  take  a  prominent  part  in 
these  discussions.  The  constitutionality  of  the  Civil  Rights  Bill 
was  sharply  attacked,  and  the  prejudice  of  race  was  made  a  plea 
against  a  measure  alleged  to  be  fraught  with  so  much  danger 
to  the  Republic.  It  was  at  this  juncture  that  Elliott  ob- 
tained the  floor  in  reply  to  Alexander  H.  Stephens  and  delivered 
a  most  masterly  speech,  answering  the  constitutional  questions 
and  other  objections  raised,  rebuking  with  scathing  argument 
and  merciless  criticism  the  untenable  position  on  which  other 
opposition  was  based.  He  championed  the  cause  of  his  con- 
stituents and  his  race  mth  an  appeal  which  stands  unsurpassed. 

Thus  speaks  one  comment : 

"All  who  heard  his  eloquence  in  debate  and  his  learning  felt 
that  the  ability,  eloquence  and  learning  of  Hayne,  Rutledge,  Cal- 
houn and  McDuffie  had  been  revived  and  transformed  in  a 
Negro,"  while  General  B.  F,  Butler  of  Massachusetts  said  on  the 
floor  of  the  House,  ' '  I  should  have  considered  more  at  length  the 
constitutional  argument,  were  it  not  for  the  exhaustive  presenta- 
tion by  the  gentleman  from  South  Carolina,  of  the  law  and  the 
only  law  quoted  against  us  in  this  case,  that  has  been  cited,  to 
wit,  the  Slaughter  House  cases.  He  with  the  true  instinct  of 
freedom,  with  a  grasp  of  mind  that  shows  him  to  be  the  peer  of 
any  man  on  this  floor,  be  he  who  he  may,  has  given  the  full 
strength  and  full  power  of  that  decision  of  the  Supreme  Court. ' ' 
Elliott's  concluding  words  in  this  speech  were: 

"Technically,  this  bill  is  to  decide  upon  the  civil  status  of 
the  colored  American  citizen;  a  point  disputed  at  the  very 
foundation  of  our  present  government,  when  by  a  short-sighted 
policy,  a  policy  repugnant  to  true  republican  government,  one 
Negro  counted  as  three-fifths  of  a  man.  The  logical  result  of  this 
mistake  of  the  framers  of  the  Constitution  strengthened  the 
cancer  of  slavery,  which  finally  spread  its  poisonous  tentacles 
over  the  southern  portion  of  the  body  politic.     To  arrest  its 


184  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

growth  and  save  the  Nation  we  have  passed  through  the  har- 
rowing operation  of  intestine  war,  dreaded  at  all  times,  resorted 
to  at  the  last  extremity,  like  the  surgeon's  knife,  but  absolutely 
necessary  to  extirpate  the  disease  which  threatened  with  the 
life  of  the  nation  the  overthrow  of  civil  and  political  liberty  on 
this  continent.  In  that  dire  extremity  the  members  of  the  race 
which  I  have  the  honor  in  part  to  represent ;  the  race  which 
pleads  for  justice  at  your  hands  to-day,  forgetful  of  their  in- 
human and  brutalizing  servitude  at  the  South,  their  degradation 
and  ostracism  at  the  North — flew  willingly  and  gallantly  to  the 
support  of  the  National  Government.  Their  sufferings,  assist- 
ance, privations,  and  trials  in  the  swamps  and  in  the  rice  fields, 
their  valor  on  the  land  and  on  the  sea,  is  a  part  of  the  ever- 
glorious  record  which  makes  up  the  history  of  a  nation  pre- 
served, and  might,  should  I  urge  the  claim,  incline  you  to  respect 
and  guarantee  their  rights  and  privileges  as  citizens  of  our 
common  republic.  But  I  remember  that  valor,  devotion  and 
loyalty  are  not  always  rewarded  according  to  their  just  deserts, 
and  that  after  the  battle  some  who  have  borne  the  brunt  of  the 
fray,  may  through  neglect  or  contempt,  be  assigned  to  a  subordi- 
nate place,  while  the  enemies  in  war  may  be  preferred  to  the 
sufferer. 

"The  results  of  the  war,  as  seen  in  reconstruction,  have  set- 
tled forever  the  political  status  of  my  race.  The  passage  of  this 
bill  will  determine  the  civil  status,  not  only  of  the  Negro,  but  of 
any  other  class  of  citizens  who  may  feel  themselves  discriminated 
against.  It  will  form  the  capstone  of  that  liberty,  begun  in  this 
continent,  under  discouraging  circumstances,  carried  on  in  spite 
of  the  sneers  of  monarchists  and  the  cavils  of  pretended  friends 
of  freedom,  until  at  last  it  stands  in  all  its  beautiful  sjinmetry 
and  proportions,  a  building  the  grandest  which  the  world  has 
ever  seen,  realizing  the  most  sanguine  expectations  and  the 
highest  hopes  of  those  who,  in  the  name  of  equal,  impartial,  and 
universal  liberty,  laid  the  foundation  stones. 


ROBERT  BROWN  ELLIOTT  185 

"The  Holy  Scriptures  tell  lis  of  an  humble  handmaiden  who 
long,  faithfully  and  patiently  gleaned  in  the  rich  fields  of  her 
wealthy  kinsman ;  and  we  are  told  further  that  at  last,  in  spite  of 
her  humble  antecedents,  she  found  complete  favor  in  his  sight. 
For  over  two  centuries  our  race  has  'reaped  down  your  fields.' 
The  cries  and  woes  which  we  have  uttered  have  '  entered  into  the 
Lord  of  Sabaoth'  and  we  are  at  last  politically  free.  The  last 
vestiture  only  is  needed — Civil  Rights.  Having  gained  this, 
we  may,  with  hearts  overflowing  with  gratitude,  and  thankful 
that  our  prayer  has  been  granted,  repeat  the  prayer  of  Ruth: 
' '  Entreat  me  not  to  leave  thee,  or  to  return  from  following  after 
thee ;  for  whither  thou  goest,  I  will  go ;  and  where  thou  lodgest,  I 
will  lodge ;  thy  people  shall  be  my  people,  and  thy  God  my  God. 
Where  thou  diest,  will  I  die,  and  there  will  I  be  buried;  the 
Lord  do  so  to  me,  and  more  also,  if  aught  but  death  part  thee 
and  me." 

Two  months  after  this  speech  Charles  Sumner,  the  author  of 
the  Civil  Rights  measure,  died.  Memorial  meetings  were  held 
North  and  South.  A  unique  tribute  was  that  by  L.  Q.  C.  Lamar 
in  the  House,  but  a  rare  honor  was  that  accorded  Elliott  by  the 
citizens  of  Massachusetts  to  pronounce  the  eulogy  on  Sumner 
in  Faneuil  Hall,  the  cradle  of  liberty.  The  following  extract  is 
a  contemporary  tribute  to  the  ability  of  the  South  Carolina  Con- 
gressman in  response  to  that  invitation: 

"Greater  than  the  civil  rights  speech  or  any  other  effort  ever 
made  by  Elliott  was  that  at  Faneuil  Hall.  It  was  a  distin- 
guished occasion.  The  wealth  and  culture  of  that  city,  repre- 
sentatives of  the  national,  state  and  municipal  governments 
were  all  there  assembled  within  this  hallowed  place,  whose  walls 
have  echoed  the  most  brilliant  oratory  of  America  to  hear  a 
Negro's  tribute  to  Charles  Sumner  in  consonance  with  the  dear- 
est sentiments  of  every  Negro  the  world  over,  whether  in  the 
rice  swamps  of  Carolina  or  in  the  levels  of  Mississippi. "  "  The 
press  of  Boston  placed  it  in  the  highest  rank  of  American  oratory. 


186  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

classing  it  with  the  best  efforts  of  Adams,  Warren,  Hancock, 
Sumner  or  Phillips. ' '  ^ 

Shortly  afterwards  Elliott  resigned  from  Congress  in  order 
to  stem  the  tide  then  beginning  to  set  in  against  the  Southern 
Negro  in  politics  because  of  charges  of  corruption  against  the 
party  and  the  race  in  his  State.  He  was  elected  once  more  to  the 
State  legislature  and  became  Speaker.  He  was  subsequently  a 
candidate  for  the  United  States  Senatorship,  but  failing  to  get 
his  party's  support  he  was  not  elected. 

In  1876  he  was  nominated  and  elected  Attorney-General  of 
South  Carolina,  the  only  one  of  his  race  ever  to  receive  that  dis- 
tinction. He  entered  upon  his  duties,  but  with  the  remainder  of 
the  Republican  ticket  he  was  forced  to  retire  from  this  office, 
and  to  resume  the  practice  of  his  profession.  The  Hampton  ad- 
ministration which  succeeded  in  obtaining  control  of  the  State 
government  of  South  Carolina  that  year  worked  a  complete 
revolution  in  the  affairs  of  the  State.  Many  officers  under  former 
administrations,  both  white  and  black,  tied  the  State ;  others  who 
remained  were  prosecuted,  some  fined  and  imprisoned.  But  al- 
though no  one  had  been  more  prominent  as  a  Republican  poli- 
tician than  Elliott,  he  was  never  arrested  on  any  charge  of 
malfeasance  in  office  or  political  corruption ;  yet  he  did  not  hesi- 
tate to  defend  with  vigor  many  who  were  accused. 

As  a  la^vyer,  he  was  frequently  associated  as  counsel  in  many 
of  the  most  important  cases  before  the  State  court  of  last  resort, 
for  his  legal  abilities  were  conceded  by  the  best  lawyers  of  the 
State.  His  arguments  before  the  State  Supreme  Court  in  the 
mandamus  against  the  State  Board  of  Canvassers,  in  conjunction 
with  United  States  District-Attorney  Corbin  and  ex-Attorney- 
General  Akerman,  ex  parte  Tilda  IMorris,  and  State  vs.  Samuel 
Lee,  are  models  of  forensic  oratory  and  legal  learning. 

In  1873  Elliott  was  chosen  chairman  of  the  National  Conven- 
tion of  colored   men  assembled  in  Washington  to  urge  upon 

3T.  J.  Minton,  Supra. 


ROBERT  BROWN  ELLIOTT  187 

Congress  the  passage  of  the  Civil  Rights  Bill.  He  was  a  member 
of  the  National  Repabliean  Convention  of  '7^,  '76  and  '80.  In 
the  last-named  he  seconded  the  nomination  of  John  Sherman  for 
the  presidency.  He  was  subsequently  a  special  agent  of  the 
Treasury  Department.  Upon  his  resignation  from  this  service 
he  resumed  his  practice,  with  his  main  office  in  New  Orleans  and 
a  branch  in  Pensacola,  Florida.  But  he  did  not  linger  long 
after  his  removal  to  New  Orleans  for  he  died  there  August  9, 
1884.  The  day  after  his  death  a  commission  appointing  him  to 
represent  the  United  States  as  its  agent  for  the  Kongo  Free 
State  was  received  at  his  residence. 

Elliott  was  a  close  student  and  had  a  working  knowledge  of 
the  French,  German,  and  Spanish  languages,  as  well  as  a 
classical  acquaintance  with  the  Latin,  and  his  familiarity  with  the 
Bible  shows  itself  in  his  speeches.  He  was  temperate  in  his  habits, 
but  extremely  prodigal  with  his  means. 

Frederick  Douglass,  who  had  most  excellent  opportunity  to 
meet  and  know  all  the  foremost  Negroes  of  the  last  fifty  years  of 
his  life,  said:  "  I  have  known  but  one  black  man  to  be  com- 
pared with  Elliott,  and  that  was  Samuel  Ringgold  Ward,  who, 
like  Elliott,  died  in  the  midst  of  his  years." 


XXX 

PAUL  L.  DUNBAR 

It  is  a  sign  of  extraordinary  talent  or  genius  when  one  before 
he  reaches  his  thirtieth  year  is  recognized  in  representative 
journals  as  being  among  the  literaiy  men  of  his  times,  yet  Paul 
Laurence  Dunbar  enjoyed  this  proud  distinction. 

The  story  of  his  life  should  be  an  inspiration  to  the  millions  of 
young  Negroes  throughout  the  land,  although  not  one  of  them 
may,  like  him,  seek  and  find  a  literary  career.  He  was  the  son 
of  Joshua  and  Matilda  Dunbar  and  was  born  at  Dayton,  Ohio, 
June  27,  1872.  His  parents  were  both  former  slaves.  His 
father  had  escaped  from  Kentucky  to  Canada  and  remained  there 
until  the  Civil  War,  when,  returning,  he  enlisted  as  a  private  in 
the  55th  Massachusetts  Regiment.  After  the  war  he  made  his 
home  in  Dayton,  Ohio,  and  married  Matilda  Murphy,  a  young 
widow. 

Paul  was  a  delicate  child  who  did  not  care  for  such  outdoor 
sports  as  kites,  tops  or  marbles.  He  preferred  to  read,  to  write 
and  debate  such  questions  as  were  within  the  comprehension  of 
his  childish  mind  with  great  vigor  and  earnestness.  His  zeal  and 
ability  in  mastering  these  topics  excited  both  the  surprise  and  the 
alarm  of  his  mother,  who  at  the  time  of  his  graduation  at 
the  age  of  eighteen  from  the  Dayton  high  school,  was  his  sole 
surviving  parent.  He  not  only  debated  and  discussed  topics, 
but  he  was  always  writing  pieces  which  he  treasured  up  with 
great  tenderness.  These  he  placed  in  the  possession  of  his 
mother  with  the  request  that  she  save  them,  for  some  day  he 
would  make  a  book  of  them.  Although  his  mother  thought  this 
was  but  a  childish  fancy,  she  saved  these  papers. 

188 


PAUL  L.  DUNBAR  189 

On  the  death  of  his  father  he  obtained  employment  as  elevator 
boy  and  supported  both  liimself  and  his  mother,  but  he  did  not 
stop  studying.  Although  he  could  not  go  to  college  he  made  up 
the  deficiency  by  private  study,  and  in  this  way  steadily  in- 
creased his  information  and  strengthened  his  mind.  He  wrote 
from  time  to  time  for  the  papers  in  his  native  city;  he  acquired 
some  reputation  in  the  West  and  did  some  work  for  Eastern 
magazines  whose  editors  did  not  dream  that  their  brilliant  Day- 
ton, Ohio,  contributor  was  a  black  elevator  boy  not  yet  out  of  his 
teens. 

With  his  constant  experience,  he  acquired  literary  confidence. 
One  day  he  said  to  his  mother,  "Give  me  all  my  papers.  I  am 
going  to  make  a  book."  Naturally  credulous  at  such  an  am- 
bitious undertaking  for  one  so  young,  she  replied : 

' '  A  book !    You  can 't,  my  son ;  you  have  no  money. ' ' 

* '  But  I  will  make  a  book. ' ' 

Paul  took  his  papers  to  a  publishing  house  in  Dayton,  but  the 
head  of  the  firm  threw  cold  water  on  the  enterprise  by  refusing 
to  print  the  book  without  an  advance  payment  of  one  hundred 
dollars  to  cover  expenses.  But  the  manager  who  saw  literary 
merit  in  the  poems  and  promise  in  the  lad  said,  "Leave  your 
poems  with  me,  I  will  print  your  book  and  you  can  pay  me  after 
you  have  sold  them. ' ' 

Paul,  thus  encouraged,  left  with  a  lighter  heart  and  followed 
his  usual  work  in  the  elevator  awaiting  the  issue  of  his  first 
book,  ' '  Oak  and  Ivy, ' '  from  the  press.  One  day  a  box  of  books 
was  delivered  to  him  in  the  elevator  where  he  sold  them  all,  in  a 
very  short  time. 

A  copy  interested  Dr.  H.  A.  Tobey,  superintendent  of  the 
State  Asylum  at  Toledo,  who  gave  an  order  for  a  dozen,  then  for 
twenty  copies  which  he  distributed  among  many  friends  both 
within  and  without  the  State.  All  were  captivated  with  "The 
Voice  of  the  New  Singer,"  and  were  anxious  to  learn  more  of 
him  personally.     Dunbar  was  sent  for,  to  entertain  some  of  these 


190  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

friends  by  recitals  from  his  poems.  A  second  invitation  fol- 
lowed and  a  reception  in  his  honor  was  given  at  which  Dunbar's 
mother  was  present  to  witness  the  honors  which  her  son  had 
won. 

During  the  World's  Columbian  Exposition  at  Chicago  in  1893, 
Dunbar,  whose  reputation  had  begun  to  spread,  was  a  familiar 
sight  at  the  Haitian  Building  where  the  stalwart  and  historic 
form  of  Frederick  Douglass  welcomed  all  who  came  to  view  ex- 
hibits of  the  island  republic,  Haiti,  the  Queen  of  the  Antilles. 

Dunbar's  second  book,  "Majors  and  Minors"  published  in 
1895  made  him  known  to  a  larger  public.  "William  Dean  Howells, 
the  novelist,  for  many  yeare  editor  of  the  Atlantic  Monthly  and 
subsequent!}^  of  Harper's  Magazine,  wrote  very'  kindly  of  Dun- 
bar 's  genius  in  reviewing  the  new  book.     He  said  this : 

"Dunbar  is  the  first  black  man  to  feel  the  life  of  the  Negro 
esthetically  and  to  express  it  lyrically."  Richard  Watson 
Gilder,  editor  of  the  Century,  commended  him  and  his  work  most 
heartily,  and  Miss  Rose  Elizabeth  Cleveland,  sister  of  President 
Cleveland,  was  as  unstinted  and  cordial  in  her  criticism  and 
praise.  "Lyrics  of  Lowly  Life,"  dedicated  to  his  mother,  came 
next  and  sold  rapidly.  Other  works  that  followed  were  "Folks 
from  Dixie,"  "The  Uncalled,"  "Lyrics  of  the  Hearthside," 
"Poems  of  Cabin  and  Field,"  "The  Strength  of  Gideon,"  "The 
Love  of  Landry,"  "The  Fanatics,"  "The  Sport  of  the  Gods," 
"Lyrics  of  Love  and  Laughter,"  and  "Candle  Lighting  Time." 

' '  The  Uncalled ' '  wiiich  was  Mr.  Dunbar 's  first  novel,  appeared 
first  in  Lippincott's  Magazine  and  all  critics  pronounced  it  "A 
strong  character  study,"  with  such  attention  to  details  of  plot, 
personages  and  construction  as  to  prove  that  Mr.  Dunbar  thor- 
oughly understood  the  literary  art  and  had  the  power  to  produce 
a  novel  in  which  the  interest  can  be  kept  up  to  the  end. 

He  was  without  a  rival  in  dealing  with  the  dialect  of  his  race 
found  on  the  plantations  and  among  its  illiterate  members.  In 
this  he  is  so  true  to  nature;  there  is  no  artificial  copying.     His 


PAUL  L.  DUNBAR  191 

humorous  and  dialect  pieces  demonstrate  his  ability  as  a  first- 
class  story  teller,  the  pathos  shows  his  deep  insight  in  the  work- 
ings of  the  human  heart.  His  sketches  show  liim  to  be  an  artist 
whose  models  are  life  itself,  which  he  has  studied  with  close  ob- 
servation and  seen  in  their  true  relations.  His  characters  live 
and  move  wdth  all  the  elasticity,  spirit,  tone  and  naturalness  with 
which  they  are  found  from  day  to  day;  and  exliibit  a  correct 
knowledge  of  human  nature. 

It  is  also  a  proof  of  the  high  rank  which  Dunbar  had  taken 
to  find  his  "Conscience  and  Remorse"  in  the  "Library  of  the 
World's  Best  Literature,"  completed  in  1898,  when  his  fame 
was  just  beginning  to  be  made  known.  It  is  quite  sure  had  this 
publication  been  delayed  a  couple  of  years  later  more  of  his  pro- 
ductions would  have  been  selected,  together  with  an  analytical 
sketch  of  his  work. 

Among  the  most  popular  of  his  poems  are  "When  IMalindy 
Sings,"  "When  the  Co'n  Pone's  Hot,"  and  "The  Party." 
"The  Poet  and  His  Song"  has  been  cited  as  example  of  his  ease, 
his  sincerity,  sensitiveness  to  the  outer  world,  his  philosophy  of 
life  and  the  sweetness  and  pathos  in  the  temper  of  his  race. 

In  an  interview  given  a  few  years  before  his  death  speaking  of 
the  development  of  his  literary  career  and  his  preparation  for  it, 
Mr.  Dunbar  said: 

"My  mother  who  has  no  education  except  what  she  picked  up 
herself,  taught  me  to  read  when  I  was  four  years  old,  and  my 
parents  being  both  fond  of  books,  used  to  read  aloud  to  us  in  the 
evening  as  we  sat  around  the  fire.  To  this  I  owe  a  great  deal, 
but,  generally  speaking,  the  early  influences  surrounding  me 
were  not  conducive  to  growth,  and  any  development  in  myself 
came  from  fighting  against  them. 

"Through  the  evening  readings  I  was  introduced  to  Robinson 
Crusoe,  'Uncle  Tom's  Cabin'  and  many  other  things.  The  former 
I  have  never  read  for  myself,  but  I  did  run  over  the  latter  and 


192  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

was  disappointed  in  it.  The  author  saw  things  through  the  lens 
of  her  own  intense  feeling,  and  they  were  magnified.  I  was  edu- 
cated in  the  public  schools  of  Dayton,  graduating  at  the  high 
school,  and  afterward  having  two  years'  study. 

' '  My  first  attempt  at  rhyming  was  made  when  I  was  six  years 
old.  I  came  across  a  verse  from  Wordsworth  and  a  gentleman 
living  in  Dayton  happening  to  have  that  name,  I  thought  it  was 
written  by  him.  This  impressed  upon  my  mind,  and  as  I  crossed 
the  railroad  track,  in  going  home  from  school,  I  remember  trying 
to  put  words  together  having  a  jingling  sound.  After  that  I 
rhymed  continually,  my  mother  writing  down  my  productions 
and  preserving  them  in  pasteboard  boxes.  My  father  used  to 
tell  her  that  I  was  not  an  ordinary  boy,  and  one  of  my  regrets 
is  that  he  did  not  live  to  realize  any  of  his  hopes  in  regard  to 
me. 

"What  I  may  call  my  first  poetical  achievement  grew  out  of 
an  Easter  celebration  at  the  Sunday  School  to  which  I  went, 
when  I  composed  the  verses  I  had  been  asked  to  recite.  I  was 
then  thirteen  years  old,  and  at  the  same  time,  Mr.  Samuel  Wilson, 
a  teacher  at  the  intermediate  school  which  I  attended,  did  much 
to  shape  and  influence  me.  He  was  himself  a  writer  of  verse, 
and  refined,  traveled  and  wonderfully  well  read,  he  criticised  my 
work  and  encouraged  me  both  to  compose  and  recite. 

' '  After  I  entered  the  high  school  the  fact  of  my  being  the  only 
Negro  in  my  class  was  a  great  spur  to  my  ambition. 

"The  boys  were  very  kind  to  me,  however,  and  during  the 
second  year,  I  was  admitted  to  their  literary  society,  of  which 
I  afterward  became  president.  At  this  time  I  contributed  fre- 
quently to  the  high  school  paper,  later  being  the  editor. 

"The  first  literary  work  for  which  I  was  paid  was  a  prose 
composition,  brought  out  by  a  syndicate,  my  patrons  taken  in  the 
order  in  which  they  came  being  the  Chicago  Record,  Detroit  Free 
Press,  Boston  Green  Bag  and  New  York  Independent." 


PAUL  L.  DUNBAR  193 

Dunbar  made  a  trip  to  England  in  1897,  where  his  popularity 
as  a  reader  of  his  own  poems  and  sketches  became  as  marked  as 
in  his  native  land.  In  London  he  was  given  a  number  of  re- 
ceptions, he  was  the  guest  at  many  clubs  and  his  books  were  re- 
published in  handsome  editions.  He  returned  home  the  same 
year  and  was  appointed  to  a  position  in  the  Library  of  Con- 
gress which  he  retained  only  for  a  short  time,  his  literary  en- 
gagements being  such  that  he  found  his  time  fully  occupied  with 
literary  work.  In  1898  he  was  married  to  Miss  Alice  Euth 
Moore,  a  native  of  New  Orleans,  a  young  lady  not  only  of  literary 
tastes,  but  a  considerable  success  as  a  writer.  The  story  of  their 
courtship  and  marriage  is  as  romantic  as  we  would  naturally  ex- 
pect of  two  poets. 

A  poem  entitled  "The  Haunted  Oak,"  published  in  The 
Century  for  December,  1900,  tells  in  a  pathetic  way  the  story  of 
an  oak  tree  beneath  whose  shadow  one  of  Ms  own  race  was 
lynched  and  on  which  thereafter  no  leaves  grew.  This  poem  with 
its  weird  and  uncanny  imagery,  its  faithful  representation  of 
disgraceful  scenes,  which  neither  the  law  nor  the  civilization  of 
I  our  land  has  proven  itself  able  to  prevent,  appeals  to  millions 

and  is  destined  to  be  one  of  the  most  striking  of  his  pro- 
ductions. It  voices  the  verdict  of  posterity  in  its  denunciation 
of  lynching.  Its  literary  merit  brought  forth  unmistakable  evi- 
dences of  appreciation  from  its  publishers. 

After  the  receipt  of  a  check  from  the  publishers,  a  second  check 
was  sent  him  by  the  publishers,  an  exceptional  and  unusual  evi- 
dence of  merit. 

Mr.  Dunbar  was  an  excellent  type  of  his  race.  There  was  no 
other  than  Negro  blood  coursing  through  his  veins.  He  was 
slender  of  build,  slightly  above  the  average  height  and  with 
regular  features.  He  dressed  in  faultless  style  and  was  what  he 
looked  to  be,  a  true  gentleman  in  black. 

After  a  most  brilliant  career  he  died  at  the  early  age  of  thirty- 


194  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

four  at  the  home  of  his  mother  in  Dayton,  Ohio,  February  9,  1906. 
Telegrams  and  letters  of  condolence  came  to  the  stricken  family 
from  all  parts  of  the  country  and  the  last  sad  funeral  rites  were 
such  as  might  have  been  given  to  one  of  the  first  citizens  of  the 
Republic. 


XXXI 

BOOITEB  T.  WASHINGTON 

Booker  T.  Washington  was  born  about  1858  or  1859,  a  slave 
near  Hale's  Ford,  Franklin  Comity,  a  few  miles  southwest  of 
Lynchburg,  Virginia.  He  knows  little  of  his  ancestry  save  that 
his  mother  was  an  earnest  Christian  woman  whose  simple  de- 
votion made  a  lasting  impression  on  his  childish  mind.  He 
speaks  with  becoming  indifference  of  his  father,  whom  he  sus- 
pects to  be  a  white  man,  resident  of  a  plantation  not  very  far 
distant  from  that  on  which  he  was  born. 

There  is  a  striking  similarity  in  the  description  of  his  early 
life  and  that  of  Frederick  Douglass.  No  slave  boy  knew  more 
of  the  deprivations  of  food  and  clothing  than  he.  His  ward- 
robe was  exceedingly  scant ;  a  plain  shirt  at  times  made  of  flax, 
so  cheap,  coarse  and  rough  as  to  torture  the  one  who  first  put  it 
on,  was  all  that  he  wore.  As  for  a  hat,  he  never  possessed  one 
until  he  was  about  ten  years  old,  and  it  was  made  of  some 
coarse  cloth.  His  first  pair  of  shoes  was  made  of  rough  leather 
on  the  top,  with  heavy  wooden  soles  about  an  inch  thick.  A 
bed  was  out  of  the  question.  He  never  slept  in  one  until  after 
emancipation.  A  pallet  made  on  a  dirt  floor  of  old  rags  was 
his  customary  resting  place.  A  cabin  with  openings  in  the  side 
to  let  in  the  light,  a  dirt  floor,  a  deep  opening  in  the  center 
covered  with  boards  and  used  as  a  storehouse  for  sweet  potatoes 
and  other  vegetables  was  his  home.  Some  idea  of  what  there 
was  for  a  slave  boy  six  years  old  to  do  may  be  learned  in  his  auto- 
biography, as  follows :     "I  was  not  large  enough  to  be  of  much 

195 


196  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

service,  still  I  was  occupied  most  of  the  time  in  cleaning  the 
yard,  carrying  water  to  the  men  in  the  fields,  or  going  to  the 
mills  to  which  I  used  to  take  the  corn  once  a  week  to  be  ground. 
The  mill  was  about  three  miles  from  the  plantation.  This  work 
I  always  dreaded.  The  heavy  bag  of  corn  would  be  thrown 
across  the  back  of  the  horse,  and  the  corn  divided  about  evenly 
on  each  side ;  but  in  some  way  almost  without  exception  on  these 
trips  the  com  would  so  shift  as  to  become  unbalanced  and  would 
fall  off  the  horse,  and  often  I  would  fall  with  it.  As  I  was  not 
strong  enough  to  reload  the  corn  upon  the  horse,  I  would  have 
to  wait  sometimes  for  many  hours  till  a  chance  passer-by  came 
along  who  would  help  me  out  of  my  trouble. ' ' 

Booker  first  learned  of  the  Civil  War  by  overhearing  the 
prayers  of  his  mother  for  the  success  of  Union  arms  and  the  de- 
liverance of  her  children  and  race  from  slavery. 

An  incident  in  his  early  life  was  the  journey  of  the  family 
several  hundred  miles  to  West  Virginia  where  liis  stepfather 
had  found  employment  in  salt  mines.  The  journey  was  overland, 
largely  by  foot  across  the  mountains  and  the  rough  country 
roads.  During  this  trip  one  night  the  family  camped  near  an 
old  log  cabin.  The  thoughtful  mother  thought  to  make  it  more 
comfortable  by  building  a  fire  in  the  cabin  and  making  a  pallet 
therein,  instead  of  out  in  the  open,  but  the  dropping  of  a  large 
black  snake  nearly  five  feet  long  from  the  chimney,  caused  them 
to  abandon  that  resting  place. 

After  weeks  of  this  outdoor  life  they  reached  their  destina- 
tion, Maiden,  about  five  miles  from  Charleston,  the  capital  of 
West  Virginia.  The  new  home  was  not  more  comfortable  than 
the  old,  for  it  formed  one  of  a  settlement  of  an  ignorant  and  de- 
based gang  of  white  and  black  laborers.  Quarrels,  fights, 
carousals,  gambling  and  all  the  grossest  forms  of  vice  and  im- 
morality prevailed.  During  his  employment  here  Booker  gained 
his  first  book  knowledge.  The  number  "  18"  by  which  his  father 
was  known  as  a  part  of  the  working  force,  was  his  first  lesson. 


BOOKER  T.  WASHINGTON  197 

He  learned  it  so  thoroughly  that  he  knew  it  wherever  seen.  He 
had  always  a  desire  to  learn  to  read  and  his  mother  sympathiz- 
ing with  him  in  his  ambition  succeeded  in  gratifying  her  son's 
ambition,  by  procuring  in  some  way  for  him  a  copy  of  Webster's 
blue-back  speller  known  all  over  the  country  two  generations 
past.  Within  a  week  he  had,  through  his  own  efforts,  mastered 
all  the  alphabet  for  there  was  no  black  person  to  teach  him  and 
he  was  afraid  to  approach  any  white  one  on  the  subject.  The 
appearance  of  a  colored  boy  from  Ohio  who  could  read  was  hailed 
with  delight.  At  the  close  of  the  day's  work  this  boy  would  read 
the  newspaper  to  the  miners,  to  their  very  great  satisfaction. 
He  would  have  been  employed  as  a  teacher,  but  he  was  too  young 
to  act  in  that  capacity.  Fortunately  a  colored  soldier,  also  from 
Ohio,  came  to  the  community  and  he  was  induced  to  teach,  each 
family  agreeing  to  pay  a  certain  sum  each  month  and  to  board 
him  by  turns  at  their  different  homes. 

Booker  thought,  of  course,  that  he  was  about  to  realize  his  am- 
bition, but  not  yet,  for  his  stepfather  could  not  spare  him  from 
work  at  the  mines.  What  to  do  he  did  not  know.  He  studied 
his  blue-back  speller  more  perseveringly,  secured  lessons  from  the 
teacher  at  night  but  finally  was  permitted  to  attend  school  in 
the  day,  provided,  he  would  work  at  the  furnace  until  nine  o  'clock 
and  for  two  hours  after  the  closing  of  school  in  the  afternoon. 
But  the  schoolhouse  was  not  near  the  furnace,  it  opened  promptly 
and  Booker's  class  had  frequently  recited  when  he  got  there. 
This  presented  another  perplexing  problem  which  Booker  solved 
by  turning  the  office  clock  a  half  an  hour  ahead  every  morning. 
He  could  thus  leave  his  work  and  reach  school  on  time.  He  justi- 
fied his  conscience  without  much  of  a  struggle. 

Booker's  appearance  at  the  school  for  the  first  time  marks  an 
important  era  in  his  life  in  two  more  respects.  He  had  no  cap ; 
all  the  other  pupils  had  theirs  and  there  was  no  money  with 
which  to  buy  one.  He  never  had  worn  any  cap — in  fact  he  had 
never  possessed  or  felt  that  he  needed  any;  his  mother  got  two 


198  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

pieces  of  homespun  cloth,  sewed  them  together,  and  thus  he 
proudly  became  the  owner  of  his  first  cap. 

But  children  at  school  must  have  a  name.  He  had  been  called 
"Booker,"  but  then  knew  of  no  other.  So  when  the  school- 
master called  on  him  for  his  name  he  replied,  "Booker  Wash- 
ington," as  if  that  had  always  been  his  name.  When  he  was 
much  older  he  learned  that  his  mother  had  named  him  soon  after 
his  birth,  "Booker  Taliaferro."  He  rescued  the  name  from  ob- 
livion and  thus  we  know  him  as  "Booker  Taliaferro  Washing- 
ton." 

It  was  at  this  period  that  he  first  learned  of  the  existence  of 
the  Hampton  Institute  by  overhearing  a  conversation  between 
some  men  in  the  mines.  He  learned  of  its  location,  its  char- 
acter, the  conditions  of  the  admission  of  pupils  and  the  means 
by  which  they  could  be  supported  during  their  education.  He 
was  fired  with  the  desire,  but  his  circumstances  were  against  its 
gratification.  About  this  time  he  entered  into  the  employment 
at  five  dollars  a  month  of  one  Mrs.  Ruffner,  a  Northern  white 
woman  known  as  one  very  difiicult  to  be  pleased  by  her  servants, 
because  of  the  manner  in  which  she  required  her  work  to  be 
done.  Booker  by  doing  everything  in  a  thorough  manner  found 
no  trouble  in  continuing  in  her  employment  and  in  securing  her 
as  a  friend  who  fully  sympathized  with  him  in  his  aspirations 
for  an  education. 

After  much  planning  he  decided  in  the  fall  of  1872  to  enter 
Hampton.  The  distance  from  his  home  was  nearly  five  hundred 
miles.  He  had  only  a  cheap  satchel  in  which  to  carry  his  few 
articles  of  clothing.  He  began  his  journey  sometimes  walking, 
at  other  times  begging  a  ride;  now  in  the  old-fashioned  stage- 
coach, then  a  few  miles  in  the  steam  cars  until  having  covered 
more  than  four  hundred  miles  he  reached  Richmond  long  in  the 
night,  a  perfect  stranger  and  without  a  cent  in  his  pocket.  To 
use  his  language,  "I  must  have  walked  the  streets  till  long  after 
midnight — I  could  walk  no  longer.     I  was  tired.     I  was  hungry. 


J 


BOOKER  T.  WASHINGTON  199 

I  was  everything  but  discouraged.  Just  about  the  time  when 
I  reached  extreme  physical  exhaustion  I  came  upon  a  portion  of  a 
street  where  the  board  sidewalk  was  considerably  elevated.  I 
waited  for  a  few  minutes  till  I  was  sure  that  no  passers-by 
could  see  me  and  then  crept  under  the  sidewalk  and  lay  for  the 
night  upon  the  ground  with  my  satchel  of  clothing  for  a  pillow. ' ' 

Next  morning  he  found  work  in  unloading  a  vessel  in  the 
James  near  the  "Rocketts"  laden  with  pig  iron.  In  this  way  he 
somewhat  relieved  the  stem  plight  to  which  his  pioneering  trip 
over  the  mountains  in  West  Virginia  and  down  the  hillsides 
of  the  Old  Dominion  had  reduced  him.  It  was  in  this  con- 
dition that  with  fifty  cents  in  his  pocket  he  presented  himself 
for  membership  in  the  Hampton  Normal  and  Agricultural  In- 
stitute. 

The  large  and  imposing  buildings,  the  finely  kept  grounds,  the 
benignant  countenance  of  the  officers  and  teachers,  the  con- 
tented faces  of  the  students,  gave  him  new  inspiration  and  de- 
termined him  more  than  ever  to  get  an  education  at  all  hazards. 

Without  proper  food,  unkempt,  ill-clad,  his  appearance  did 
not  inspire  confidence;  so  when  he  informed  the  teacher  in 
charge  of  his  desire  to  enter  as  pupil  there  was  no  reply.  She 
looked  on  her  inquirer  as  she  might  on  a  loafer  or  tramp,  and 
seemed  uncertain  what  to  do  in  his  case,  although  other  ap- 
plicants were  received  with  little  or  no  delay.  Finally  she 
said:  "The  adjoining  recitation  room  needs  sweeping.  Take 
this  broom  and  sweep  it." 

He  seized  this  opportunity  with  eagerness.  He  swept  the 
room  three  times,  then  got  a  dusting-cloth  and  dusted  it  four 
times.  When  Miss  Mary  F.  Mackie  inspected  it  by  taking  her 
pocket  handkerchief  and  rubbing  it  on  the  woodwork  and 
over  the  table  and  walls,  she  quietly  said:  "I  guess  you  will 
do  to  enter  this  institution. ' '  This  he  called  his  college  entrance 
examination. 

His  experience  in  Hampton  was  one  of  constant  self-denial. 


200  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

While  he  made  a  favorable  impression  upon  General  S.  C.  Arm- 
strong, the  principal,  and  other  officials,  he  had  to  meet  the  same 
requirements  exacted  of  all  the  students  by  labor  for  board  and 
tuition.  His  mother  and  brother  assisted  him  from  time  to 
time,  though  it  was  extremely  limited  and  at  distant  intervals. 

In  these  first  days  at  Hampton  he  was  initiated  in  the  virtues 
of  the  daily  bath,  the  use  of  a  napkin,  the  toothbrush  and  the 
mysteries  of  a  pair  of  sheets  on  his  bed.  With  reference  to 
these  he  says:  "The  sheets  were  quite  a  puzzle  to  me.  The 
first  night  I  slept  under  both  of  them  and  the  second  I  slept  on 
both  of  them,  but  by  watching  the  other  boys  I  learned  my 
lesson  in  this,  and  have  been  trying  to  follow  it  ever  since  and 
to  teach  it  to  others." 

He  was  given  the  position  of  janitor  which  compelled  him  to 
rise  as  early  in  the  morning  as  four  o'clock  to  build  the  fires, 
after  which  he  would  prepare  his  lessons,  and  it  was  late  at 
night  before  he  could  retire  to  bed.  The  expense  for  his  board 
was  ten  dollars  a  month  and  he  counted  it  a  great  privilege  that 
he  was  allowed  to  work  this  entirely  out.  As  was  the  custom, 
his  tuition  was  provided  by  some  Northern  patron.  Mr.  S.  G. 
JMorgan  of  New  Bedford,  Massachusetts,  has  the  distinguished 
honor  of  having  proAdded  the  means  for  the  intellectual  training 
of  this  future  leader. 

Notwithstanding  these — his  own  strong  arm,  his  inflexible  will 
and  the  philanthropy  of  his  patron — Booker  found  himself  six- 
teen dollars  in  debt  to  the  school  at  the  close  of  the  first  year. 
He  had  no  means  with  which  to  go  home  like  other  pupils  or 
to  any  watering  place.  So  he  found  himself  compelled  to  re- 
main at  Hampton — he  got  work  in  a  restaurant,  where  an  in- 
cident reveals  how  unsophisticated  he  was.  Fortress  Monroe, 
then  as  now,  was  quite  a  summer  resort  for  many  who  do  not 
care  for  the  glitter  and  glare  of  such  places  as  Saratoga,  New- 
port, or  Long  Branch.  Not  a  few  of  these  guests  are  both 
wealthy  and  liberal.     Booker's  earnestness  and  industry  had 


BOOKER  T.  WASHINGTON  201 

its  reward.  He  was  surprised  to  find  one  day  a  crisp  ten-dollar 
bill  under  the  plate  of  one  of  his  patrons.  The  green  country 
boy  took  it  to  the  proprietor  for  instruction  as  to  what  to  do.  He 
quickly  pocketed  it,  but  Booker  was  much  disappointed.  At  the 
close  of  such  a  season  Mr.  Washington  was  no  more  able  to  wipe 
out  that  sixteen  dollars  indebtedness  than  at  the  beginning;  but 
by  franlily  explaining  his  condition  and  purpose  he  was  per- 
mitted to  enter  upon  his  second  year. 

In  this  year  his  study  of  the  Bible  and  his  experience  in  de- 
bating societies  was  a  marked  feature.  He  had  the  satisfaction 
of  being  able  at  its  close  by  the  assistance  of  a  brother  to  visit 
his  West  Virginia  home.  Here,  everyone  was  glad  to  see  him, 
and  his  presence  in  every  hamlet  and  at  every  concourse  of 
people  was  a  benediction,  and  a  great  intellectual  uplift.  One 
of  the  saddest  incidents  of  his  visit  was  the  sudden  death  of  his 
mother.  It  was  she  who  had  first  encouraged  him  in  his  youth- 
ful ambition  for  an  education;  it  was  she  who  had  denied  her- 
self and  aided  him  while  at  school.  It  was  she  who  had  been 
rejoiced  more  than  all  others  on  his  visit.  He  returned  to  Hamp- 
ton at  the  opening  of  school  and  graduated  in  the  class  of  1875 
as  one  of  the  honor  students.  He  had  worked  to  be  one  of  the 
orators  and  he  had  succeeded. 

During  the  summer  after  graduation  he  was  successful  in 
getting  employment  at  a  summer  hotel  in  Connecticut.  It  was 
a  new  experience.  He  was  given  some  people  to  wait  on,  but 
such  was  his  success  that  he  was  made  a  dish  carrier  instead 
of  a  waiter.  His  spirit  quailed,  but  by  perseverance  he  was  re- 
stored to  his  former  position.  In  later  years  as  a  guest  in  the 
same  hotel  at  which  he  was  first  waiter,  next  dish  carrier  and 
waiter  again,  he  must  have  indulged  in  hearty  laughs  over  in- 
cidents a  quarter  of  a  century  before. 

His  first  position  as  teacher  was  at  his  home  at  Maiden,  West 
Virginia.  He  labored  here  with  marked  success  for  two  years, 
meanwhile  sending  first  his  brother,  then  an  adopted  brother  to 


202  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

Hampton.  Other  pupils  were  sent  by  him  and  all  were  so 
thoroughly  qualified  on  their  entrance  that  they  were  enabled 
to  enter  above  the  usual  place  given  to  beginners.  He  spent 
his  next  eight  months  at  Wayland  Seminary,  in  Washington, 
now  a  part  of  Union  University  at  Richmond,  Virginia.  The 
contrast  between  prevailing  conditions  at  Washington  and  those 
at  Hampton  did  not  impress  him  favorably,  so  he  returned  to 
Maiden  and  took  up  his  work  as  teacher  with  renewed  zeal. 

In  1879  he  delivered  a  commencement  address  at  Hampton  on 
"The  Force  that  Wins."  In  his  journey  thither  he  went  over 
the  same  route  as  that  by  which  he  entered  Hampton,  seven 
years  previously.  The  success  of  his  address  may  be  estimated 
from  his  invitation  by  General  Armstrong  to  take  charge  of  the 
Indian  students,  whom  Hampton  for  the  first  time  received 
within  its  borders.  He  was  known  as  their  "House  Father." 
Notwithstanding  the  novelty  and  the  difficulties  of  their  position, 
he  won  their  confidence  and  respect.  The  next  year,  1880,  he 
was  charged  with  the  organization  of  Hampton's  first  night 
school.  Such  was  its  success  that  it  is  to-day  one  of  the  at- 
tractive features  of  Hampton  to  youth  desirous  of  obtaining  an 
education. 

In  May,  1881,  in  one  of  his  talks  to  students,  General  Arm- 
strong spoke  of  an  application  he  had  just  received  for  someone  to 
take  charge  of  what  was  to  be  a  normal  school  like  Hampton  at 
Tuskegee,  a  town  in  Alabama.  That  night  he  sent  for  Booker 
Washington  and  asked  him  whether  he  would  be  willing  to 
undertake  the  work.  Mr.  Washington  said  he  would.  The 
Alabama  people  were  not  looking  for  a  colored  man  for  the 
place,  and  there  was  some  delay  after  General  Armstrong  had 
notified  them.  Finally  there  was  received  this  telegram: 
"Booker  T.  Washington  will  suit  us.     Send  him  at  once." 

Washington  lost  no  time  in  going  to  his  new  field.  On  his 
journey  he  had  many  mental  pictures  of  his  new  school, — its 
location,  size,  appointments,  equipment,  etc.     On  his  arrival  he 


BOOKER  T.  WASHINGTON  203 

was  surprised  to  find  no  building,  no  pupils,  nothing  provided 
— only  the  State  appropriation. 

The  colored  people  hearing  of  the  great  work  that  Hampton 
had  done  appealed  to  the  legislature  and  they  had  provided  an 
annual  appropriation  of  $2,000.  It  was  located  at  Tuskegee  be- 
cause it  was  in  the  midst  of  a  large  colored  population  and  was, 
besides,  an  educational  center. 

The  first  work  was  to  get  a  place  for  his  school.  After  much 
labor  he  found  the  only  available  place  was  an  abandoned 
church  building  and  a  shanty.  In  order  to  give  public  notice  of 
his  school  and  acquaint  himself  with  the  condition  of  those  for 
and  among  whom  he  was  laboring,  he  visited  the  people  in  their 
homes  and  found  a  condition  of  poverty,  ignorance  and  im- 
providence that  startled  him.  They  lived  usually  in  one-room 
cabins,  with  little  or  no  household  furniture,  yet  cabinet  organs, 
costing  sixty  dollars,  sewing  machines  of  ancient  make  and  fancy 
clocks — often  out  of  order — aU  bought  on  the  installment  plan, 
were  frequently  met  with.  Sometimes  he  was  invited  to  eat. 
Here  their  humble  condition  was  apparent.  Once  he  noticed 
five  at  a  table  and  only  one  fork  in  the  entire  number.  The 
family  were  assembled  around  a  table  very  seldom.  The  father 
would  get  a  piece  of  meat  and  bread  in  his  hands  which  he  would 
eat  while  on  the  way  to  his  work.  The  small  children  would  con- 
sume their  food  while  playing  about  the  skillet  in  which  the  meal 
had  been  prepared.  The  clothing  of  the  people  cannot  be  classi- 
fied. That  of  the  men  was  like  Joseph's  coat  of  many  colors, 
the  women  were  not  much  of  an  improvement,  while  the  younger 
members  of  the  family  frequently  were  perfectly  nude. 

The  humble  beginnings  of  Tuskegee  Institute  were  in  har- 
mony with  the  primitive  condition  of  the  people.  The  school 
was  opened  July  4,  1881,  in  the  old  shanty  and  the  abandoned 
church,  with  thirty  pupils,  mostly  from  the  immediate  vicinity. 
Some  had  been  teaching  for  years,  others  had  received  but  little 
previous  instruction.     Their  ages  varied  from  fifteen  years  to 


204  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

forty.     Pupils  and  some  former  teachers  were  grouped  together, 
and  their  advancement  showed  many  surprises. 

Washington  displayed  rare  tact  in  the  very  beginning  by 
getting  as  his  advisers  two  men  who  were  types  of  the  best  of 
both  races.  One,  the  most  influential  man  in  the  entire  com- 
munity, a  white  banker ;  the  other  a  colored  man,  the  ablest  local 
leader  along  those  lines  of  activity  in  which  his  race  desired  to 
move.  For  more  than  twenty-five  years  they  remained  on  the 
board  of  directors.  The  first  assistant,  Miss  Olivia  A.  Davidson,- 
proved  a  most  worthy  helpmeet  in  this  work.  She  was  a  native 
of  Ohio,  in  which  she  had  received  her  preparatory  training. 
She  had  taught  in  Mississippi  and  at  Memphis,  Tennessee, 
nursing  to  health  at  the  former  place  a  boy  with  smallpox  whom 
all  others  had  neglected,  and  voluntarily  tendering  her  services 
during  the  raging  of  the  yellow  fever  epidemic  in  Memphis. 
After  her  graduation  at  Hampton,  friends  had  made  possible 
her  training  in  the  State  Normal  School  at  Framingham,  Massa- 
chusetts. 

The  discomforts  in  these  early  days  were  disagreeable  alike  to 
both  teachers  and  pupils.  The  building  leaked  to  such  an  extent 
that  when  it  rained  it  was  necessary  for  one  of  the  older  pupils 
to  hold  an  umbrella  over  their  teachers,  and  his  landlady  was 
compelled  to  do  the  same  thing  for  them  at  their  meals.  But 
these  discomforts  did  not  diminish  the  ardor  or  lessen  the  energy 
of  their  instructors,  for  at  the  end  of  the  first  month  there 
were  fifty  pupils.  This  rapid  increase  served  only  to  emphasize 
the  necessity  for  a  permanent  place.  An  abandoned  plantation 
one  mile  from  the  town  consisting  of  one  hundred  acres  of  land, 
he  learned,  could  be  purchased  for  five  hundred  dollars,  one-half 
cash  and  the  balance  on  short  time.  Had  its  cost  been  $500,000, 
its  purchase  would  have  seemed  just  as  impossible.  In  this  per- 
plexity he  wrote  to  Mr.  J.  F.  B.  Marshall,  treasurer  of  Hampton, 
to  know  if  that  institution  would  not  advance  the  two  hundred 

2  Married  to  Mr.  Washington  in  1886  and  died  in   1889. 


BOOKER  T.  WASHINGTON  205 

and  fifty  dollars.  His  former  teacher  and  benefactor  replied 
that  he  could  not  use  the  funds  of  Hampton  in  this  way,  but  he 
would  gladly  loan  two  hundred  and  fifty  dollars  from  his  private 
funds.  The  purchase  was  at  once  made  and  preparations  for  the 
use  of  the  property  purchased  for  the  school  begun. 

The  place  had  become  overgrown  with  young  trees  and  bushes, 
and  hard  outdoor  work  was  necessary.  The  pupils  objected  to 
doing  this  work,  but  Washington  set  the  example  by  pulling 
off  his  coat,  rolling  up  his  sleeves  and  taking  his  ax  in  hand. 
Their  false  pride  at  once  departed  and  they  worked  with  en- 
thusiasm, clearing  the  ground  and  putting  in  their  first  crop. 

An  old  cabin,  a  dilapidated  kitchen,  a  stable  and  a  hen  house 
were  all  the  buildings  on  the  place.  The  stable  was  used  as  a 
recitation  room,  the  hen  house  subsequently  for  the  same  pur- 
pose. In  three  months  the  loan  to  General  Marshall  was  repaid, 
and  in  a  few  more  months  the  place  was  clear  of  all  incum- 
brances. Nearly  all  of  this  money  came  from  the  citizens  of 
Tuskegee,  Miss  Davidson's  entertainments  and  personal  solicita- 
tions furnishing  the  methods.  An  old  blind  horse  given  by  a 
white  citizen  was  the  first  animal  oTVTied  by  the  school.  Now 
more  than  two  hundred  horses,  colts,  and  other  live  stock,  in- 
cluding hundreds  of  hogs  and  pigs  would  be  found  in  the  in- 
ventory. 

Porter  Hall  was  the  name  of  the  first  building  erected.  It 
was  built  on  faith.  At  a  certain  time  an  obligation  of  four 
hundred  dollars  stared  them  in  the  face,  and  not  a  dollar  in 
hand  with  which  to  meet  it,  when  the  mail  brought  in  a  check 
for  four  hundred  dollars.  With  the  progress  of  the  work,  finan- 
cial perplexities  were  many,  but  the  embarrassments  were  all 
met.  General  Armstrong  in  one  of  these  emergencies  gave  all  of 
his  savings. 

A  great  family  sorrow  came  to  Washington  at  this  stage.  Miss 
Fanny  N.  Smith,  also  a  graduate  of  Hampton,  whom  he  had  mar- 
ried in  the  summer  of  1882,  died  before  two  years  of  their  married 


206  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

life  had  passed,  leaving  one  daughter,  Portia  M.  Washington. 
]\Irs.  Washington  had  not  lived  long  enough  to  realize  the  im- 
mense possibilities  of  the  school  and  the  world-wide  fame  that 
was  to  come  to  her  husband  because  of  his  connection  with  it. 

Washington's  determination  from  the  first  was  to  have  his 
students  do  not  only  the  agricultural  and  domestic  but  the 
mechanical  work  connected  with  the  school,  its  growth  and  de- 
velopment. A  very  peculiar  experience  was  their  failure  in 
brickmaking.  Three  times  there  was  a  failure.  All  his  money 
was  gone,  but  an  old  watch  was  pawned  for  the  money  with 
which  to  begin  another  experiment.  This  time  they  succeeded. 
Since  then  brickmaking  has  been  one  of  the  leading  industries, 
as  many  as  a  million  and  a  quarter  being  produced  in  one 
school  year.  Objections  to  industrial  education  confronted  him, 
troubles  about  the  dining-hall,  about  cooking  stoves,  table  uten- 
sils, etc.,  rapidly  pressed  on  him  for  solution — "not  even  water 
to  drink";  but  all  these  problems  were  solved. 

To  supply  the  necessities  of  the  school  it  became  Washington 's 
duty  to  travel  through  the  country  and  place  before  philan- 
thropists the  condition  and  the  needs  of  his  school.  It  is  rather 
remarkable  as  one  incident  of  his  journeyings  that  he  never  re- 
ceived a  personal  insult  from  the  whites  while  traveling  in  the 
South.  Once  he  entered  a  Pullman  palace  car,  in  Georgia,  when 
to  his  surprise  he  found  present  some  white  ladies  from  New 
England  who  invited  Mm  to  a  seat  by  their  side.  He  endeavored 
to  excuse  himself,  but  they  insisted.  Next  they  ordered  supper. 
This  added  to  his  embarrassment,  for  he  knew  the  custom  of  the 
South.  But  he  was  further  in  it  when  one  of  the  ladies  pre- 
pared and  served  some  tea.  At  the  first  opportunity  he  excused 
himself  to  go  to  the  smoking  car  to  test  the  effect  of  this  novel 
sight  in  a  Southern  State.  He  was  agreeably  surprised  to  find 
man  after  man  come  forward,  introduce  himself  and  commend 
him  for  his  work. 

The  circumstances  that  led  to  the  appearance  of  Washington 


be 


> 


BOOKER  T.  WASHINGTON  207 

before  Northern  audiences  to  promote  his  work  at  Tiiskegee 
is  unusually  interesting.  About  1885  General  Armstrong  invited 
Washington  to  accompany  him  North  and  to  speak.  When  he 
accepted  he  found  that  the  General  had  planned  a  series  of  meet- 
ings with  a  quartet  of  singers  and  that  they  were  to  be  held  in 
the  interest  of  Tuskegee,  though  the  Hampton  Institute  was  to 
bear  all  the  expenses. 

This  was  the  beginning  of  a  phenomenal  tour  which  first 
brought  the  attention  of  the  nation  and  the  world  to  the  re- 
markable work  carried  on  at  Tuskegee  under  Washington's  di- 
rection and  management.  It  was  not  a  path  strewn  by  roses 
that  he  was  to  tread ;  there  were  many  thorns,  and  rough  stones 
he  had  to  encounter  on  his  way.  After  walking  miles  in  the 
country  to  meet  some  special  individual  he  often  met  little  or  no 
encouragement.  Such  was  his  first  meeting  with  Andrew  Car- 
negie and  Collis  P.  Huntingdon,  the  great  railroad  king.  Later 
these  men  gave  their  thousands.  Once  he  found  himself  in 
Providence,  Rhode  Island,  hungry  and  without  a  dollar  to  pur- 
chase a  meal.  On  crossing  a  street  he  found  a  twenty-five-cent 
piece.  With  this  he  obtained  a  breakfast  and  afterwards  secured 
a  liberal  donation  for  his  work. 

It  was  in  an  address  delivered  before  the  National  Educational 
Association  at  ]\Iadison,  Wisconsin,  that  he  first  attracted  the 
attention  and  gained  the  general  approval  of  the  South.  Four 
thousand  persons  were  present,  among  them  quite  a  number 
from  Alabama,  even  from  Tuskegee.  They  were  surprised  to 
hear  the  Southern  people  given  credit  for  the  part  they  had  con- 
tributed to  the  education  of  the  Negro.  But  it  was  in  a  five- 
minute  speech  delivered  before  the  International  Meeting  of 
Christian  Workers  at  Atlanta  that  he  had  his  first  opportunity 
to  talk  face  to  face  with  a  Southern  audience.  He  was  in  Boston 
when  this  meeting  assembled,  wdth  pressing  engagements  taking 
up  all  the  summer.  To  make  that  five-minute  speech  he  must 
travel  two  thousand  miles  and  within  one  hour  after  the  delivery 


208  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

be  on  his  way  back  to  Boston.     He  did  it  so  acceptably  that  in- 
vitations came  pouring  upon  him  to  make  other  speeches. 

In  the  spring  of  1895  he  was  invited  to  form  a  part  of  a  com- 
mittee from  Atlanta  to  secure  Congressional  aid  for  the  Cotton 
Exposition  to  be  held  in  that  city  the  following  fall.  Two  other 
colored  men,  Bishops  Abram  Grant  and  Wesley  J.  Gaines  were 
members  of  this  committee.  They  both  made  speeches.  When 
Washington  made  the  final  speech  of  twenty  minutes  it  was  so 
timely,  so  pertinent,  and  so  eloquent  that  the  committee  of 
Congress  decided  by  a  unanimous  vote  to  recommend  the  aid 
desired,  and  in  a  few  days  the  act  giving  it  was  a  law.  This 
signal  aid  rendered  by  the  colored  members  of  the  conunittee 
was  appreciated  by  the  management  of  the  Exposition  to  the 
extent  of  deciding  to  have  a  Negro  Building  designed  and  erected 
wholly  by  Negro  mechanics,  and  when  the  time  for  opening  the 
Exposition  arrived,  to  have  a  Negro  as  one  of  the  speakers. 
Washington  was  selected  as  that  representative.  This  was  the 
first  time  in  the  entire  historj'  of  the  Negro  that  a  member  of 
this  race  had  been  asked  to  speak  from  the  same  platform  with 
Southern  men  and  women  on  any  important  occasion  of  na- 
tional significance. 

The  opportunity,  responsibility  and  significance  involved  in 
this  acceptance  may  be  illustrated  by  two  stories  told  by  Mr. 
Washington  in  his  **Up  from  Slavery."  "While  en  route  a 
white  man  living  near  Tuskegee  thus  accosted  me,  'Washington, 
you  have  spoken  before  the  Northern  white  people,  the  Negroes 
of  the  South,  and  to  us  up-country  white  people  in  the  South; 
but  in  Atlanta  to-morrow,  you  will  have  before  you  the  Northern 
whites,  the  Southern  whites,  and  the  Negroes  altogether.  I  am 
afraid  you  have  got  yourself  into  a  tight  place.'  "  The  other 
relates  to  a  scene  after  his  arrival  at  Atlanta:  "Dat's  de  man 
of  my  race  wat's  gwine  to  make  a  speech  at  de  Exposition  to- 
morrow. I'se  sho  gwine  to  hear  him."  Pointed  out  at  every 
station  on  the  way,  "the  observed  of  aU  observers,"  the  great 


BOOKER  T.  WASHINGTON  209 

responsibility  of  the  occasion  impressed  him  and  as  was  his 
custom  before  the  crucial  moment,  he  sought  a  quiet  place, 
kneeled  down  and  implored  God's  blessing  upon  his  effort. 

At  last  the  hour  arrived.  Washington  was  introduced.  The 
scene  was  one  which  some  artist — some  Tanner — will  transfer 
with  genius  to  canvas.  All  his  mother's  tears  and  prayers,  the 
struggles  of  his  race,  their  hardships,  their  opportunities,  came 
pressing  before  him.  He,  their  advocate,  stood  before  the  most 
typical  American  audience  yet  assembled  on  the  American  con- 
tinent. Though  in  Atlanta,  the  blue  blood  of  Boston  was 
present;  Southern  and  Northern  man;  black  and  white.  No 
wonder  that  though  the  sun  shone  forth  in  his  face  he  without 
flinching  delivered  the  burden  of  his  soul.  When  he  closed  a 
great  moral  victory  had  been  won.  White  men  native  and  to 
the  manner  born  applauded.  Fair  white  men  of  the  South  waved 
their  handkerchiefs.  Negro  patriarchs,  men  who  had  "come 
dowTi  from  a  former  generation, ' '  wept  and  wept.  Clark  Howell 
was  certainly  prophetic  in  his  declaration,  "This  man's  speech 
has  wrought  a  moral  revolution." 

Booker  T.  Washington  went  forth  a  famous  man.  Seven 
months  before,  Frederick  Douglass  had  died  in  the  harness,  plead- 
ing for  the  equality  of  rights  for  every  man  and  woman,  the 
foremost  black  man  of  the  nineteenth  century.  That  day  the 
prophecy  of  Douglass,  written  in  1867,  was  realized,  Booker 
T.  Washington  forged  to  the  front  as  the  foremost  American 
Negro  in  the  new  dispensation  of  freedom  through  industrial 
opportunity. 

Because  of  the  attention  focused  on  Washington  after  his 
Atlanta  speech,  he  became  the  one  man  in  the  eye  of  the  Ameri- 
can public  regarded  as  the  leader  of  his  race.  Greatness  was 
literally  thrust  upon  him  and  he  conducted  himself  in  a  manner 
that  proved  that  he  was  not  averse  to  this  conspicuous  position. 
Philanthropists  like  Carnegie,  heads  of  educational  institutions 
and  politicians  like  McKinley,  Roosevelt  and  Taft,  accepted  him 


210  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

as  their  chosen  agent  to  deal  with  the  ten  million  American 
citizens  of  African  descent. 

Alexander  H.  Stephens  in  writing  of  U.  S.  Grant  after  the 
meeting  at  Hampton  Roads,  said,  that  the  silent  soldier  seemed 
to  be  ignorant  of  the  immense  opportunity  for  good  or  evil 
that  would  come  to  him  in  the  country's  history.  Booker  T. 
Washington  hardly  could  have  dreamed  of  the  power  to  be 
wielded  by  him  simply  by  becoming  the  great  apostle  of  in- 
dustrial education  for  the  Negro.  Whether  the  result  of  his 
prominence  was  foreseen  and  planned  by  him  or  not,  his  claim 
to  real  eminence  can  not  be  gainsaid. 

Washington's  subsequent  career  can  be  briefly  summarized: 
Honors  came  thickly  upon  him.  He  was  almost  immediately 
invited  by  Dr.  D.  C.  Oilman,  then  president  of  Johns  Hopkins 
University,  to  be  one  of  the  judges  of  award  in  the  department 
of  education  at  the  Exposition.  Offers  were  made  from  Lyceum 
Bureaus  to  lecture  for  as  high  a  sum  as  fifty  thousand  dollars  a 
season,  with  countless  invitations  to  deliver  addresses  on  all  con- 
ceivable subjects  and  places.  He  has  spoken  before  such  col- 
leges as  Yale,  Williams,  Amherst,  Fisk,  University  of  Pennsyl- 
vania, University  of  Michigan,  in  the  North,  and  quite  as  well 
known  institutions  in  the  South.  Harvard  conferred  on  him  the 
degree  of  A.M.,  *'the  first  of  his  race  to  receive  an  honorary 
degree  from  the  oldest  university  in  the  land  and  this  for  the 
wise  leadership  of  his  people."^  When  Boston  unveiled  the 
Shaw  Monument  on  Boston  Common  in  1897  he  was  the  orator  of 
the  occasion.  During  the  Jubilee  week  at  Chicago  after  the 
war  with  Spain,  at  which  President  McKinley  was  the  guest 
of  honor,  the  speech  of  Washington  was  the  prelude  to  an  ova- 
tion placing  him  on  a  pedestal  as  elevated  as  that  of  the  Na- 
tion's Chief  Magistrate. 

The  next  year  some  friends  insisted  on  a  trip  for  Mr.  Wash- 
ington to  Europe.     They  arranged  all  the  details,  the  steamer, 

3C.  W.  Eliot,  President  of  Harvard. 


BOOKER  T.  WASHINGTON  211 

the  incidental  expense  and  the  provision  for  Tuskegee  in  the 
meanwhile.  In  Europe  he  received  distinguished  consideration 
from  such  eminent  Americans  then  abroad  as  President  Har- 
rison, Archbishop  Ireland,  General  Horace  Porter,  ''Mark 
Twain,"  Chief  Justice  Melville  W.  Fuller,  Justice  John  M. 
Harlan  of  the  U.  S.  Supreme  Court,  U.  S  Ambassador  Joseph 
H,  Choate,  and  such  Englishmen  as  James  Bryce,  M.  P.,  author 
of  "The  American  Commonwealth,"  Mrs.  T.  Fisher  Unwin, 
daughter  of  Richard  Cobden,  Mrs.  Clark,  daughter  of  John 
Bright,  and  Joseph  Sturge,  the  son  of  the  great  abolitionist  who 
was  the  colleague  of  Whittier  and  Garrison,  also  Henry  M. 
Stanley,  the  African  discoverer. 

The  organization  of  the  Negro  Business  League  at  Boston  in 
1900  may  be  accounted  as  one  of  the  most  important  acts  of 
Mr.  Washington,  because  of  its  possibilities.  It  aims  k)  bring 
the  business  men  of  the  Negro  race  together  and  by  the  power 
of  example  stimulate  the  growth  and  development  of  their  busi- 
ness activities  as  well  as  to  lead  to  new  ventures  in  pursuits 
hitherto  neglected  and  untrodden. 

"The  Story  of  My  Life,"  "The  Future  of  the  Negro,"  "Up 
From  Slavery,"  "Character  Building,"  "Working  with  the 
Hands,"  and  "The  Negro  in  Business"  are  among  his  published 
works. 

He  has  not  yet  reached  the  heights  of  his  achievements  as  a 
leader  of  his  people  and  one  of  the  foremost  men  of  his  country 
and  times  without  regard  to  race. 

The  Tuskegee  Institute  began  with  one  teacher  and  thirty 
pupils.  It  has  now,  thirty-two  years  after,  more  than  2,300 
acres  of  land,  900  of  which  are  cultivated,  86  buildings  valued 
at  $874,943,  and  a  productive  endowment  fund  of  nearly  two 
million  dollars.  There  is  also  in  its  possession  several  thousand 
acres  of  mineral  land  that  yield  no  income.  At  the  beginning 
its  operating  expenses  were  $2,000  annually  granted  by  the  State 


212  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

of  Alabama.  The  cost  of  operating  averages  more  than  a  quar- 
ter of  a  million  dollars  annually.  The  student  body  is  now  com- 
posed of  more  than  1,600  students  instead  of  30  pupils,  coming 
mainly  from  the  lower  South,  but  in  all  36  States  and  Territories 
and  18  foreign  countries. 

No  sketch  of  Mr.  Washington  would  be  complete  or  im- 
partial which  ignores  the  antagonisms  and  the  criticisms  of  his 
policy  as  a  leader.  It  is  not  within  the  purview  of  a  biographical 
sidelight  to  assume  a  partisan  role  Aside  from  his  successful 
advocacy  of  the  claims  of  industrial  education,  the  establish- 
ment of  the  Business  Men's  League,  which  has  maintained  an 
uninterrupted  existence  since  1900,  is  a  work  of  constructive 
statesmanship  to  speak  for  itself. 

In  1898,  on  the  same  platform  vdth  President  McKinley,  he 
recounted  the  military  service  of  the  Negro  in  all  the  wars  of 
the  Republic  and  then  made  a  most  impassioned  appeal  to  the 
country  for  justice. 

At  Wilberforce  University  at  the  celebration  of  its  fiftieth  an- 
niversary in  the  presence  of  the  Bishops,  he  made  an  argu- 
ment for  the  union  of  the  different  branches  of  Methodism  that 
must  commend  itself  to  all  thinkers  as  a  piece  of  foresighted 
statesmanship  which  all  should  recognize.  Whatever  his  mis- 
takes, these  two  addresses  loom  out  and  emphasize  the  claim 
we  make  for  him  as  the  great  organizer,  promoter,  and  execu- 
tive of  the  last  decade  of  the  nineteenth  and  the  first  decade  of 
the  twentieth  century. 


I 


xxxn 

FANNY   MURIEL  JACKSON    COPPIN 

One  of  the  first  colored  women  to  graduate  from  a  recognized 
college  in  the  United  States  was  Fanny  M.  Jackson  Coppin,  the 
wife  of  Bishop  Levi  J.  Coppin,  30th  bishop  of  the  African 
Methodist  Episcopal  Church.  But  this  is  her  smallest  claim  to 
distinction,  for  hers  is  excellence  as  educator,  public  speaker, 
and  for  her  notable  achievements  as  a  public-spirited  citizen. 

She  was  born  a  slave  in  the  city  of  Washington,  District  of 
Columbia,  late  in  the  fourth  decade  of  the  nineteenth  century. 
Her  maternal  grandfather  was  a  Mr.  Henry  Orr,  a  free  man 
of  color;  but  his  wife  was  a  slave,  and  according  to  the  laws 
of  the  times,  their  six  children  took  the  legal  condition  of 
the  mother.  A  few  years  after  the  passage  of  the  Fugitive  Slave 
Law  of  1850,  Mrs.  Sarah  Clark,  her  aunt,  discovering  that 
Fanny  was  a  child  of  promise,  saved  up  one  hundred  and 
seventy-five  dollars  and  secured  the  girl's  freedom,  according  to 
the  forms  of  law,  by  paying  this  sum  of  money  to  the  District  of 
Columbia  slaveholders,  so  as  to  incur  no  risk,  should  it  be  neces- 
sary to  move  to  another  community. 

At  fifteen  she  went  to  Newport.  There  began  the  struggle. 
She  was  not  willing  to  depend  upon  her  aunt.  Speaking  of 
this  period  she  says: 

"So  I  went  to  service.  Oh,  the  hue  and  cry  there  was,  when 
I  went  out  to  live !  Even  my  aunt  spoke  of  it ;  she  had  a  home 
to  offer  me;  but  the  'slavish'  element  was  so  strong  in  me  that 
I  must  make  myself  a  servant.  Ah,  how  those  things  cut  me 
then!     But  I  knew  I  was  right,  and  I  kept  straight  on.  .  .  . 

213 


214  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

The  lady  with  whom  I  lived  allowed  me  one  hour  every  other 
afternoon  to  go  and  recite  to  a  person  whom  I  paid  to  teach 
me.  For  this  I  was  not  allowed  to  go  out  at  any  other  time.  .  .  . 
I  remained  there  six  years,  using  my  seven  dollars  a  month  to 
pay  for  my  instruction." 

She  obtained  employment  as  maid  in  a  very  distinguished 
family — the  Calverts  of  Baltimore,  who  were  then  living  in 
Rhode  Island.  The  home  of  the  Calverts  was  the  resort  of  all 
the  literati  of  Boston — here  she  acquired  or  rather  deepened  that 
craving  for  education  that  followed  her  all  her  life.  Surrounded 
constantly  by  the  most  refined  culture,  the  young  servant  girl 
sought  for  opportunities  to  study.  One  hour  each  week  was  given 
her  to  use  as  she  would,  and  it  was  during  these  driblets  of 
time  that  she  studied  vocal  and  instrumental  music  and  that 
she  prepared  herself  to  enter  the  State  Normal  School,  then 
under  the  principalship  of  Dana  P.  Colburn,  author  of  the  well- 
known  series  of  arithmetics.  Mrs.  Calvert  had  no  children 
and  soon  the  ability,  tact  and  graciousness  of  the  young  servant 
commended  her  to  the  mistress.  When  she  was  about  to  leave 
the  Calvert  service  to  enter  the  Normal  School,  Mrs.  Calvert 
said  to  Fanny:  "Will  money  keep  you?"  "No,"  replied 
Fanny,  "I  want  to  fit  myself  to  help  to  educate  my  people." 
This  dedication  to  her  people's  service  became  and  remained  the 
one  purpose  of  her  life,  giving  it  a  singular  coherence  and 
unity  of  aim. 

It  was  a  rare  thing  for  a  young  colored  woman  to  show  such 
an  ambition  to  obtain  an  education  and  to  demonstrate  her 
capacity  for  academic  honors,  as  did  Fanny  Jackson.  This  was 
in  the  dark  days  before  the  Civil  War  when  Kansas  was  a 
battle-ground  between  the  friends  of  freedom  and  slavery,  and 
the  land  was  echoing  the  dictum  of  the  Dred  Scott  Decision,  that 
' '  A  Negro  had  no  right  which  a  white  man  is  bound  to  respect. ' ' 
It  was  then  that  Bishop  Daniel  A.  Payne,  whose  zeal  for  educa- 
tion was  well  known,  heard  of  this  ambitious  girl  and  obtained 


FANNY  MURIEL  JACKSON  COPPIN  215 

her  a  scholarship  which  enabled  her  to  attend  Oberlin  College. 
The  young  student  did  not  rely  on  this  aid  entirely,  for  she 
taught  music  to  the  children  of  the  college  professors  and  thus 
helped  to  pay  her  way  through  college. 

When  a  student  at  Oberlin  she  became  more  and  more  im- 
pressed with  the  gravity  of  her  chosen  work.  "Whenever  I 
stood  up  to  recite,"  said  she,  "I  felt  the  whole  responsibility  of 
my  people  resting  on  my  shoulders.  My  failure  was  my  people 's 
failure. ' ' 

It  was  customary  at  Oberlin  to  employ  members  of  the  ad- 
vanced classes  to  teach  students  in  the  preparatory  depart- 
ment. While  all,  colored  and  white,  were  treated  alike  at  Ober- 
lin, yet  never  was  a  colored  pupil-teacher  sent  to  take  charge 
of  classes  where  all  were  white.  We  must  remember  too  that 
many  of  the  members  of  the  classes  in  the  preparatory  depart- 
ment were  the  children  of  slaveholding  parents.  Fanny  was 
given  a  class  as  an  experiment.  Said  President  Finney  to  her: 
' '  In  giving  you  this  class,  Fanny,  I  do  not  hold  myself  responsi- 
ble for  the  order,  or  that  the  pupils  will  sit  under  your  instruc- 
tion. I  send  you;  you  must  make  your  own  way."  She  made 
her  way.  The  class  was  a  brilliant  success.  The  success  was 
the  more  pronounced,  because  former  white  pupil-teachers  had 
signally  failed  in  the  management  of  this  very  class.  Its  num- 
bers gradually  increased  to  one  hundred  young  white  men  and 
women  and  consequently  became  too  large  for  the  young  teacher. 
When  President  Finney  proposed  to  divide  it  the  students  re- 
fused to  leave.  Visitors,  those  friendly  as  well  as  those  op- 
posed to  the  race,  were  in  daily  attendance  to  see  this  novel 
sight.  The  London  Athenceum  of  that  time  mentions  the  event 
as  a  noteworthy  fact. 

The  Civil  War  came  on  apace.  For  a  time  the  outcome  seemed 
doubtful.  When  the  tide  of  battle  turned  and  freedom  to  the 
bondman  was  seen  to  be  inevitable,  Fanny  M.  Jackson  and  Mary 
M,  Patterson  were  called  to  the  Institute  for  Colored  Youth, 


216  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

au  academy  of  almost  college  grade  in  the  city  of  Philadelphia, 
maintained  by  a  legacy  left  more  than  a  quarter  of  a  century 
previously  by  Richard  Humphreys,  a  Quaker.  JMiss  Jackson 
received  the  appointment  as  principal  of  the  female  depart- 
ment, and  when,  four  years  later,  in  j\Iarch,  1869,  President 
Grant  appointed  its  principal,  Ebenezer  D.  Bassett,  Minister  to 
Haiti,  the  vacancy  in  the  Institute  was  filled  by  the  promotion 
to  the  head  position  of  the  once  slave  girl,  who  first  saw  the 
light  of  day  within  the  borders  of  the  District  of  Columbia. 

For  thirty-five  years  her  career  in  Philadelphia  was  one  of 
intense  activity,  acknowledged  ability  as  educator,  and  distinc- 
tion as  a  leader  in  every  good  cause  for  the  promotion  of  the 
betterment  of  the  colored  people  of  her  city  and  the  country 
at  large.  No  voice  was  more  potent  than  hers  outside  of  the 
schoolroom ;  no  educator  shaped  to  better  advantage  more  youth- 
ful minds. 

Among  some  of  the  things  accomplished  by  Mrs.  Coppin,  aside 
from  her  class-room  work  as  an  educator,  may  be  credited  the 
organization  of  the  Colored  Woman's  Exchange,  by  means  of 
which  opportunity  was  given  for  the  first  time,  for  the  public 
exhibition  of  specimens  of  the  artistic  and  mechanical  workman- 
ship of  the  colored  people  of  Philadelphia.  Many  orders  for 
supplies  and  work  in  all  of  the  varied  lines  of  skill  exhibited 
were  received.  The  "Home  for  Girls  and  Young  Women,"  a 
house  which  gave  to  young  women  engaged  in  domestic  service  the 
comforts  of  a  home,  maintained  for  a  number  of  years  largely 
by  her  enterprise  and  energy,  was  another  practical  result  of  her 
many-sided  activities. 

But  the  establishment  of  an  Industrial  School  as  a  feature 
of  the  Institute  for  Colored  Youth,  of  which  she  was  principal, 
may  be  classed,  possibly,  as  her  most  important  work. 

As  an  orator  she  is  entitled  to  a  very  high  place,  indeed.  A 
contemporary,  who  had  ample  opportunity  for  gauging  her 
work   in   this  respect,   says:     "Her  appeals   in   behalf   of  the 


FANNY  MURIEL  JACKSON  COPPIN  217 

colored  people  of  her  city  and  country  have  been  as  direct,  as 
soul-stirring,  as  eloquent,  as  those  by  any  man  in  the  same  be- 
half." When  it  is  remembered  that  she  had  frequently  ap- 
peared on  the  same  platform  with  Isaiah  C.  Wears,  John  M. 
Langston,  Robert  Purvis  and  Frederick  Douglass,  such  a  tribute 
can  be  estimated  at  its  true  valuation.  Her  lectures  and  public 
addresses  delivered  in  principal  cities  were  given,  not  for  pe- 
cuniary gain,  but  in  response  to  a  call  to  service.  Her  personality 
would  have  won  her  high  civic  recognition  had  she  been  of  the 
other  sex  and  race. 

At  a  political  gathering  in  Philadelphia  .  .  .  the  mayor  of 
the  city  was  one  of  the  speakers  on  the  platform.  She  made 
one  of  her  soul-stirring,  effective  speeches  that  those  who  heard 
her  will  long  remember.  The  mayor  was  so  touched  by  her 
earnestness  and  cultured  mind  that  he  purposely  sought  some 
means  of  showing  his  appreciation  and  appointed  her — ^the  first 
instance  of  its  kind — a  member  of  a  Board  of  City  Examiners 
for  clerical  officers. 

She  has  acted  as  an  interpreter  of  French  in  court,  and  was 
for  a  time  one  of  the  directory  of  the  ''Old  Folks'  Home,"  lo- 
cated in  West  Philadelphia. 

In  1888  she  visited  England  to  attend  the  Missionary  Con- 
gress as  a  representative  of  the  Sarah  Allen  Mission.  So  elo- 
quently did  she  plead  the  cause  that  the  Duke  of  Somerset  arose 
and  commended  her  in  glowing  terms  for  her  eloquence  and  the 
cause  that  she  so  ably  represented. 

In  1881  at  the  height  of  her  career,  she  was  married  to  Rev. 
Levi  J.  Coppin,  formerly  a  student  at  the  school.  The  service 
was  performed  in  Washington  at  the  Nineteenth  Street  Baptist 
Church,  in  which  many  of  her  girlish  days  were  spent,  and  of 
which  Mrs.  Clark,  her  aunt,  then  a  resident  of  Washington,  was 
an  influential  member.  Besides  the  reception  tendered  there  by 
friends  and  a  host  of  former  pupils  identified  with  the  life  of 
Washington,  there  were  receptions  held  in  Baltimore,  in  which 


218  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

Rev.  Coppin  was  a  pastor,  and  in  Philadelphia,  the  scene  of  and 
center  of  the  activities  of  the  bride  and  groom  for  so  many 
years. 

In  1900  her  husband  was  elected  bishop  and  assigned  to  work 
in  South  Africa.  There  was  no  hesitation  in  her  mind  as  to 
her  duty,  although  well-meaning  friends  doubted  whether  it  was 
wise  for  her  to  risk  her  health  in  journeying  11,000  miles  to  the 
Dark  Continent.  But  she  resigned  her  connection  with  the 
Institute  at  Philadelphia  and  began  as  ardently  in  South  Africa 
the  work  of  laying  the  foundation  of  Bethel  Institute  at  Cape- 
town, as  at  the  Institute  in  the  '  *  City  of  Brotherly  Love ' '  thirty 
years  before. 

As  an  evidence  of  the  world-wide  influence  she  wielded  as 
teacher  in  the  Institute  for  Colored  Youth,  on  her  arrival  in 
South  Africa,  she,  to  her  unbounded  surprise,  met  those  who  had 
been  under  her  tutelage  11,000  miles  away. 

She  did  not  write  out  her  speeches  and  lectures,  but  it  being 
her  purpose  to  publish  a  work  on  the  Science  of  Teaching,  for 
which  her  ample  notes  made  for  her  class-room  work  afforded  a 
basis  unlike  that  of  the  average  text-book  in  pedagogics.  She 
spent  the  last  months  of  her  life  in  preparing  "Reminiscences 
of  School  Life  and  Notes  on  Teaching. ' ' 

Certain  it  is  that  no  career  is  more  encouraging  to  the  deserv- 
ing colored  woman  than  that  of  Fanny  M.  Jackson  Coppin,  so 
basis  unlike  that  of  the  average  text-book  in  pedagogics,  she 
passed  away  January  21,  1913,  at  her  home  in  Philadelphia. 


XXXIII 

HENRY   OSAWA  TANNER 

In  an  address  by  Rev.  William  Henry  Channing,  dedicatory  of 
the  Miner  School  Building  at  the  National  Capital,  the  possi- 
bilities of  the  Negro  race  in  the  Fine  Arts  were  foretold  with 
all  the  perfect  confidence  of  one  divinely  intrusted  with  the 
secrets  of  the  future.  Those  who  listened  to  this  remarkable 
address  must  have  been  not  only  charmed  and  thrilled,  but 
reconciled  to  all  the  galling  and  disheartening  conditions  of 
proscription  and  persecution  as  this  seer  took  a  peep  into  the 
future  when  musicians  of  power,  poets  of  recognized  beauty, 
and  painters  of  marvelous  touch  would  be  among  the  heritage  of 
this  race. 

At  that  time  Paul  Laurence  Dunbar  was  clinging  to  his 
mother's  skirts  in  Dayton,  Ohio;  Samuel  Coleridge-Taylor  was 
prattling  in  London  within  echo  of  Dr.  Channing's  sermons,  and 
Henry  Osawa  Tanner,  born  at  Pittsburg,  June  21,  1859,  when 
Old  John  Brown,  for  Avliom  he  was  named,  was  prospecting 
near  Harper's  Ferry, — had  just  overcome  his  struggles  between 
love  and  duty  in  determining  his  future  career. 

His  father.  Bishop  Benjamin  T.  Tanner,  editor  of  the  Chris- 
tian Recorder,  lived  near  Fairmount  Park  in  Philadelphia. 
One  day  while  accompanying  his  father  the  sight  of  an  artist 
painting  from  nature  greeted  their  sight.  *'0h,  papa,"  ex- 
claimed the  boy,  "I  can  do  just  what  that  man  is  doing!"  "I 
know  I  can,"  he  repeated  with  ecstasy. 

This  was  one  of  the  earliest  revelations  of  the  bent  of  the 
boy's  mind.     Paint,  brushes  and  canvas  were  given  him  and  he 

219 


220  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

became  busy.  One  of  his  first  sketches,  still  preserved  in  the 
family,  was  a  landscape  in  which  conventionalities  of  color,  per- 
spective and  grouping  were  subordinated  for  other  striking 
indications  of  imusual  artistic  talent. 

Other  evidences  of  the  boy's  penchant  were  exhibited  in  his 
fondness  for  mathematics  and  drawing.  To  such  a  degree  was 
this  shoAvn  that  he  was  one  of  the  few  school  pupils  named  to 
receive  instruction  in  drawing. 

Delicate  of  frame  and  constitution,  studious  at  school  and 
being  the  oldest  child,  considerable  solicitude  was  manifested  by 
both  parents  as  to  his  future  career.  Quite  naturally  they  urged 
him  to  look  to  the  ministry;  but  obedient  as  he  was  in  all  other 
respects,  Henry  had  made  up  his  mind  to  be  an  artist  and 
nothing  else.  He  told  his  parents  that  though  he  could  not 
gratify  their  wish  for  him  to  be  a  minister,  he  would  do  as 
much  for  their  religion  with  his  brush  as  he  ever  could  do  by 
his  voice.     And  so  the  sequel  has  proven. 

To  accomplish  his  ambition  to  be  an  artist  he  was  perfectly 
willing  to  make  any  struggle  or  endure  any  hardship.  He  would 
even  wear  clothes  long  after  they  should  have  been  replaced  by 
others, — not  because  he  was  at  all  slovenly  in  dress,  but  because 
of  his  independence. 

He  had  a  few  or  no  companions  except  his  artist  friends 
whom  he  would  meet  at  the  Academy  of  Fine  Arts  while  in  the 
pursuit  of  his  studies  or  his  visits  to  the  art  galleries. 

Sculpture  strongly  appealed  to  him  and  the  boy  frequently 
spent  many  an  hour  at  the  Zoological  Park  modeling  from  ani- 
mals. So  excellent  was  this  work  that  it  secured  him  privileges 
denied  except  to  artists  and  art  students. 

It  was  at  Atlantic  City  late  in  the  eighties  where  the  public 
first  learned  of  his  artistic  talent. 

After  receiving  instructions  from  such  celebrated  artists  as 
Thomas  Eakins  and  Thomas  Hovenden,  and  having  realized 
several  hundred  dollars  from  the  sale  of  his  pictures  and  bits  of 


HENRY  OSAWA  TANNER  221 

sculpture,  lie  went  to  Paris  in  1891  where,  under  the  tutelage  of 
Jean  Paul  Laurens  and  Benjamin  Constant,  he  made  steady 
progress  in  his  art  studies  to  such  a  degree  that  he  became 
known  to  the  art  world  as  one  of  the  foremost  of  American 
artists. 

During  his  life  in  Paris  his  earliest  studies  partook  there  as 
in  America  largely  of  his  environment,  as  a  glance  at  their  titles 
shows,  but  these  are  not  those  on  which  his  reputation  as  a  painter 
will  rest.  They  were  nevertheless  training  his  powers  in  a  direc- 
tion and  in  a  field  in  which  he  stands  out  as  one  of  the  first  artists 
of  France  and  Europe. 

A  canvas  bearing  his  name  "The  Music  Lesson"  was  admitted 
to  the  Salon  in  1894  and  when  he  gained  an  entrance  the  next 
year,  with  "The  Young  Sabot  Maker,"  his  picture  was  given  an 
obscure  position,  but  it  met  the  eye  of  Gerorae,  the  great  artist, 
who  insisted  and  secured  for  it  a  position  on  the  line.  After- 
wards Gerome,  who  had  not  met  Mr.  Tanner,  saw  him  and  told 
the  rising  artist  what  he  had  done. 

In  1896  ]\Ir.  Tanner  won  an  honorable  mention.  Before  that 
honorable  mention  another  American  artist  strolling  through  the 
Salon  with  some  friends  pointed  out  excellences  that  the  jury 
later  confirmed.  That  artist  accordingly  raised  himself  in  their 
estimation. 

The  next  year,  1897,  found  Mr.  Tanner  at  the  Salon  with  the 
"Raising  of  Lazarus,"  a  painting  that  at  once  attracted  the 
attention  of  the  public  and  the  critics  for  its  dramatic  power,  its 
unconventional,  yet  gi-aphic  treatment.  It  is  thus  described  by 
the  Paris  correspondent  of  the  New  York  Times: 

"He  places  the  scene  of  his  painting  in  the  dark  cavern  of 
Bethany,  the  immediate  foreground  at  the  right  showing  Lazarus 
himself,  half  reclining  on  the  stone  floor,  as  he  struggles  back  to 
life.  The  mark  of  death  is  upon  him,  and  the  grave  clothes 
show  white  and  livid  in  the  gloom  of  the  little  cavern  at  Bethany. 
Without  being  theatrical  or  sensational,  the  representation  of 


222  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

this  miracle  is  powerful  and  appealing.  The  conception  of 
Christ  is  reverent,  strong  and  tender.  The  light  that  falls  on 
His  breast  and  on  His  face  makes  Him  stand  out  prominently. 
The  figures  of  Mary  and  Martha  are  skillfully  placed  in  con- 
trasting attitudes.  The  surrounding  throng  of  Jews  and 
apostles  grouped  with  admirable  clearness  and  simplicity,  offers 
further  evidence  of  Mr.  Tanner's  powers  and  especially  of  the 
completeness  of  his  enthusiasm  in  the  subject  he  chose.  The 
mysterious  light  that  envelops  the  spot  altogether  heightens  the 
effect  of  the  painting." 

The  picture  received  the  Gold  Medal,  was  purchased  by  the 
French  Government  and  placed  in  the  Louvre.  Mr.  Tanner  had 
now  '  *  arrived ' '  in  the  vestibule  of  the  Temple  of  Art  the  portals 
of  which  will  swing  back  as  he  passes  from  the  ideals  of  life 
to  the  border  and  limitless  vistas  of  eternity. 

His  next  celebrated  picture, ' '  The  Annunciation ' '  was  exhibited 
at  the  Academy  of  Fine  Arts  in  Philadelphia  in  1898  and  was  pur- 
chased for  the  Wilstach  Collection  in  the  Memorial  Building  at 
Fairmount  Park.  This  picture  excited  quite  as  much  interest 
as  his  "Lazarus."  It  was  of  a  subject  that  has  frequently  been 
treated  by  artists,  but  his  interpretation  of  the  theme  gave  it 
new  life.  The  criticism  in  the  Springfield  (Mass.)  Republi- 
can is  a  specimen.     It  runs  thus : 

"  'The  Annunciation'  in  the  hands  of  Mr.  Tanner  is  as  new 
as  if  the  world  had  never  seen  it  before.  There  is  no  sign  of 
the  conventional  angel  bearing  a  lily,  no  idealized  woman  in  a 
floating  robe  with  her  hands  crossed  and  her  eyes  cast  down. 
There  is  only  the  plain  interior  of  an  ordinary  cottage  in 
Palestine.  A  young  girl,  evidently  a  typical  representative  of 
the  poorer  class  of  her  country,  is  seated  on  the  edge  of  the  bed, 
from  which  she  has  been  roused.  She  has  folded  a  long,  loose 
gown  of  some  dark  stuff  around  her,  and  is  loolring  very  intently, 
with  a  listening  expression,  across  the  room  to  where  a  bright 
light  is  shining  out  of  the  gloom.     The  general  tone  of  the  pic- 


_3 


o 


'^ 


HENRY  OSAWA  TANNER  223 

ture  is  a  rich,  glowing  brown,  suggestive  of  Rembrandt,  yet  dif- 
ferent. It  makes  all  the  other  pictures  in  the  room  look  hard 
and  glaring.  It  is  impossible  to  put  into  words  the  beauty  and 
strength  of  this  picture  of  Mr.  Tanner. ' '  ^ 

' '  Judas ' '  was  next  exhibited  at  and  purchased  by  the  Carnegie 
Institute  in  Pittsburg,  and  in  the  same  year,  1899,  "Nieodemus" 
having  won  the  Walter  Lippincott  prize  of  $300  was  added  by 
purchase  to  the  collection  of  the  Pennsylvania  Academy  of  Fine 
Arts.     This  picture  was  painted  from  a  housetop  in  Jerusalem. 

At  the  Universal  Exposition  at  Paris,  in  1900,  he  received  a 
second-class  medal :  a  second-class  medal  the  next  year  at  the  Pan- 
American  Exposition  at  Buffalo  for  ' '  Daniel  in  the  Lion 's  Den, ' ' 
and  also  a  second-class  medal  for  the  same  canvas  at  the  Louisi- 
ana Exposition  at  St.  Louis.  In  the  catalogue  of  the  Art  De- 
partment this  picture  is  described  as  follows : 

"  'Daniel  in  the  Lion's  Den'  shows  a  large  subterranean  apart- 
ment dimly  lighted  by  square  openings  in  the  roof,  through  which 
the  daylight  illumines  square  patches  on  the  floor  and  portions  of 
the  wall.  Daniel  stands  in  the  principal  light  space,  the  lower 
portion  of  his  body  in  the  light,  the  upper  part,  including  the 
upturned  face,  being  in  deep  shadow.  A  lion  standing  near  the 
prophet  is  partly  in  light ;  the  other  beasts  are  in  shadow  except 
where  a  further  opening  in  the  roof  gives  another  small  square 
of  light.  The  attitude  of  the  man  expresses  faith  and  confidence 
that  no  harm  can  come  to  him.  The  gleaming  eyes  and  nervous 
expressions  of  the  lions  indicate  an  unwilling  restraint  which 
they  cannot  understand  but  are  powerless  to  overcome.  In 
the  treatment  of  this  low-toned  composition,  the  artist  has 
been  singularly  fortunate  in  keeping  his  color  clear  and  his 
shadows  transparent.  There  is  just  enough  definition,  just 
enough  mystery.  The  shadows  are  luminous,  and  the  coloring  is 
neither  heavy  nor  muddy. ' '  ^ 

1  Springfield   (Mass.)   Repuhlican. 

2  The  Art  Department   111.   Univ.   Exposition,   St.   Louis,   1904. 


224  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

"The  Disciples  at  Emmaus,"  described  as  a  work  in  which 
the  mingled  joy  and  bewilderment  of  the  two  disciples,  the  super- 
natural personality  and  divine  authority  of  their  Master  are  de- 
picted with  wonderful  power,  was  awarded  the  Second  medal  at 
the  Salon  of  1906,  purchased  by  the  French  Government  and  also 
placed  in  the  Luxembourg  Gallery.  In  the  same  year  when  the 
annual  exhibition  at  Chicago  was  opened  it  was  found  that  the 
award  for  the  best  painting  on  exhibition,  the  N.  W.  Harris  prize 
of  $300  was  given  to  Henry  O.  Tanner  for  "The  Disciples  at 
the  Tomb,"  described  as  the  most  impressive  and  most  distin- 
guished work  of  art  which  had  been  produced  that  season. 

But  "The  Wise  and  Foolish  Virgins"  at  the  Paris  Salon  in 
1908  has  elicited  from  the  art  critics  the  most  unstinted  praise 
of  his  work  and  acknowledgment  as  to  his  place  in  the  forefront 
of  living  artists.  This  is  a  picture  ten  feet  by  fifteen  feet  in 
which  appear  twelve  life-size  figures.  The  New  York  Herald, 
Paris  edition,  says:  "The  viewpoint  of  the  critics  has  been  di- 
verse, but  none  of  them  fails  to  commend  Mr.  Tanner's  work, 
and  some  of  them  do  so  in  unmeasured  terms,  going  so  far  as 
to  pronounce  it  the  best  picture  that  has  been  seen  at  the  an- 
nual exhibition  for  several  years."  The  Herald  also  adds  that 
"it  is  noteworthy  that  the  Tanner  painting  has  a  position  in 
the  Salon  second  to  none  except  the  place  which  is  held  by  De- 
taille,  who  has  the  place  of  honor."  It  is  also  characterized  as 
"the  work  of  a  sincere  artist  whose  sentiment  has  always  pre- 
vailed over  his  technique,  with  subtle  power,  great  purity  of 
line  and  thorough  charm." 

The  Echo  de  Paris  goes  more  into  detail  than  the  Herald.  It 
says,  speaking  of  the  human  figures,  "they  are  exquisite,  espe- 
cially the  foolish  virgins.  The  drapery,  airy,  gay,  white  gar- 
ments which  undulate  in  innumerable  folds  at  every  step  is  all 
full  of  exquisite  and  very  picturesque  details.  The  necklace  of 
red  coral,  the  green  scarf,  a  blue  shade  in  the  silky  paleness  of 
the  scarf,  and  such  easy,  free  and  harmonious  treatment." 


HENRY  OSAWA  TANNER  225 

The  Matin  brings  to  its  criticism  a  freedom  from  the  precon- 
ceived impressions  of  one  familiar  with  Tanner's  work,  for  the 
writer  says,  "Where  does  he  come  from?  He  is  certainly  odd 
in  his  way.  Note  how  he  makes  the  costumes  undulate  with  an 
expression  peculiar  to  themselves.  Some  may  comment  on  him 
lightly.     For  my  part,  I  find  this  unknown  astonishing." 

But  L'Intransignent  pays  him  possibly  the  highest  tribute. 
It  says:  "His  palette  is  somber  with  golden  half  tints.  He  al- 
ways brings  out  of  his  works  an  admirable  dramatic  sentiment 
given  full  value  and  fully  expressed.  He  could  illustrate 
Shakespeare  better  than  any.  In  his  middle  ground  are  seen 
secondary  scenes  that  greatly  augment  the  interest  of  the  prin- 
cipal. The  faces  express  exactly  the  idea  of  the  subject.  The 
atmosphere  gains  much  thereby.  An  impression  is  given  that 
something  is  taking  place  before  the  eyes  and  something  of  a 
vital  character.  'The  Wise  and  Foolish  Virgins'  is  a  theme 
that  has  often  been  treated,  but  Mr.  Tanner  has  given  it  a  new 
aspect  in  making  it  melodramatic." 

All  these  notices  should  be  sufficient  to  show  his  eminence  as 
an  artist  among  artists  in  the  very  center  of  the  art  world. 

His  popularity  is  assured,  for  no  sooner  is  a  picture  from  his 
brush  ready  for  exhibition  than  there  are  eager  and  competing 
buyers.  It  would  be  impossible  for  our  artist  to  give  an  exhibi- 
tion of  his  paintings,  for  they  are  scattered  in  the  galleries  of 
the  Old  and  the  New  World.  At  the  present  writing  "The  Wise 
and  Foolish  Virgins ' '  is  the  only  one  of  his  celebrated  pictures  in 
his  possession.  Several  years  ago  he  painted  for  The  Ladies' 
Home  Journal  a  series  of  four  pictures  called  the  "Mothers  of 
the  Bible, ' '  Sarah,  Mary,  Hagar  and  Rachel,  which  wiU  be  found 
reproduced  in  that  monthly. 

Among  the  earlier  works  to  attract  the  attention  of  his  home 
town  may  be  named  "The  Bagpipe  Lesson,"  which  portrays  a 
workman  seated  on  a  wheelbarrow  watching  the  struggles  of  a 
youth  to  produce  music  from  that  instrument.     ' '  The  Banjo  Les- 


226  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

son, ' '  now  in  the  Cleveland  Library  at  Hampton  and  familiar  to 
all  visitors  to  that  famous  school,  similar  in  subject  but  different 
in  race  and  type,  illustrates  the  artist's  versatility.  Other  noted 
products  of  his  brush  are:  "Ruth,"  "Judas  after  the  Be- 
trayal," "Christ  at  Home  of  Mary  and  Martha,"  "Return  of 
the  Holy  Women,"  "The  Jews'  Wailing  Place,"  "The  Flight 
into  Egypt,"  "He  Vanished  out  of  Their  Sight,"  "Christ  before 
the  Doctors,"  "Christ  Washing  the  Disciples'  Feet,"  and  "Job 
and  his  Three  Friends."  The  themes  of  Mr.  Tanner  are  by  no 
means  original,  but  unlike  the  average  artist  he  has  visited  the 
Holy  Land  again  and  again  and  made  himself  familiar  with  its 
customs,  its  people  and  country,  so  that  in  all  his  later  pictures 
and  his  major  pieces  drawn  from  biblical  history,  he  has  given 
world-wide  types,  but  the  scenes  and  background  are  strictly 
Oriental.     He  spent  the  winter  of  1907-08  in  Algiers. 

Some  of  the  distinctive  characteristics  of  his  art  are  the  at- 
mosphere of  his  pictures,  their  reverent  tone,  and  the  subtle 
power  that  makes  one  feel  the  thoughts  he  portrays.  His  pic- 
tures are  so  clean-cut,  thorough  and  pure  that  to  use  another's 
words,  * '  we  gaze  upon  them  with  a  grateful  sense  of  refreshment. 
The  luminous  quality  of  his  paint  removes  us  quickly  from 
commonplace  crudity  and  garishness  like  the  difference  between 
the  rich  vegetable  dyes  of  the  Oriental  rug  and  the  miserable 
aniline  colors  which  we  see  in  cheap  carpet." 

America  and  the  Negro  claim  ]\Ir.  Tanner  because,  though  a 
resident  of  France,  he  received  his  first  inspiration  and  instruc- 
tion in  the  United  States,  where  his  kindred  still  live.  On  his 
father's  side  he  is  Pennsylvania  to  the  core.  Through  his 
mother,  he  traces  his  ancestry  to  the  immediate  neighborhood  of 
Virginia  where  John  Brown  paid  the  penalty  of  his  life  be- 
cause of  aggressive  detestation  of  slavery.  By  a  singular  coin- 
cidence Thomas  Hovenden,  one  of  his  early  instructors,  has  seized 
the  scene  where  John  Brown  kisses  a  colored  child  on  his  way 
to  the  gallows  for  one  of  his  celebrated  pictures,  and  his  other 


HENRY  OSAWA  TANNER  227 

early  teacher,  Thomas  Eakins,  was  singularly  noted  for  his  suc- 
cess as  a  delineator  of  Negro  types.  These  two  men  and  their 
ideals  must  have  fired  Mr.  Tanner's  soul,  and  when  he  did  not 
receive  appreciation  from  those  of  his  own  race  that  should  have 
been  given  him,  he  determined  to  go  abroad  where  his  facilities 
and  his  scope  would  not  be  handicapped  by  color  or  race.  In 
France,  he  is  not  at  all  fettered,  either  by  race  indifference,  race 
depreciation,  or  race  prejudice.  He  stands  on  his  merits,  and 
on  these  he  has  risen  to  world-wide  eminence.  He  is  a  member 
of  a  number  of  art  societies  and  a  corresponding  member  of  the 
American  Negro  Academy. 


XXXIV 

JOHN  FRANCIS  COOK,  SECOND 

The  location  and  organization  of  the  Federal  Government  of  the 
United  States  early  occupied  the  attention  of  the  new  Nation. 
It  was  in  1792  that  Andrew  Ellicott,  a  surveyor  of  Maryland, 
succeeding  to  the  authority  given  to  Pierre  L 'Enfant  super- 
vised the  laying  out  of  the  ten-miles-square  over  which  as  the 
Capital  of  the  New  Nation  by  Article  I,  Section  VIII,  para- 
graph 17,  of  the  Federal  Constitution,  Congress  was  to  have  ex- 
clusive jurisdiction. 

In  the  second  census  taken  in  1800,  there  was  a  population  of 
14,093  in  "Washington,  of  which  4,027  were  colored,  and  of  these 
783  were  free  persons.  One  of  the  first  considerations  of  the 
New  Government  of  the  District  of  Columbia,  as  it  was  called, 
was  the  establishment  of  a  system  of  public  education.  This 
provision  was  not  contemplated  for  the  entire  population  of 
school  age,  but  only  for  the  whites.  In  1804  this  system  was  in- 
augurated. Notwithstanding  the  colored  youth  were  ignored, 
there  was  at  that  early  day  public  spirit  and  forethought  on  the 
part  of  three  colored  men  which  gave  opportunity  for  the  in- 
struction of  colored  j^outh.  In  1807  these  men,  George  Bell, 
Nicholas  Franklin  and  Moses  Liverpool,  all  formerly  slaves,  out 
of  their  own  earnings  erected  a  building  for  the  instruction  of 
these  youth.  This  building  was  located  where  the  present  Provi- 
dence Hospital  now  stands,  and  was  used  for  the  purpose  of  its 
succeeding  to  the  authority  given  to  Pierre  L 'Enfant,  super- 
vised the  laying  out  of  the  ten-mile  square  over  which  as  the 
slave    population.    With    varied    success    and    under    differ- 

228 


JOHN  FRANCIS  COOK,  SECOND  229 

ent  leadei-ship,  first  by  individuals  and  then  by  organizations, 
the  education  of  the  colored  people  of  the  District  of  Columbia 
was  continued  for  more  than  half  a  century.  The  difficulties 
were  many  in  the  way  of  their  education.  Colored  youth  were 
compelled  to  journey  to  and  from  their  homes  through  back 
streets  and  across  the  commons  of  the  Capital  to  evade  the  phys- 
ical and  prejudiced  opposition  which  daily  confronted  them. 
Washington  was  also  a  storm  center  of  the  anti-slavery  agita- 
tion. 

The  debates  in  Congress  over  the  Missouri  Compromise  in 
1819-1820,  and  the  discussion  in  the  public  press  owing  to  the 
Denmark  Ve^ey  conspiracy  of  1822,  the  Nat  Turner  outbreak 
of  1831  and  the  organization  of  the  American  anti-slavery  So- 
ciety of  1833  were  reflected  in  local  mobs  and  riots. 

The  Resolute  Beneficial  Society  in  1818  organized  for  the 
specific  purpose  of  promoting  the  education  of  their  race.  They 
used  the  Bell  Schoolhouse  built  in  1807.  Then  came  a  school  by 
an  Englishman,  next  one  by  Mrs.  Anne  Maria  Hall,  at  one  time 
in  Israel  Church.  In  Georgetown  in  1810  was  one  by  Mrs.  Mary 
Billing,  an  Englishw'Oman.  Then  Henry  Smothers,  a  pupil  of 
Mrs.  Billing,  opened  a  school  and  subsequently  erected  a  building 
for  the  purpose  on  Foui'teenth  and  H  Streets,  Northwest.  John 
W.  Prout  succeeded  him  in  1825  and  conducted  there  a  school 
which,  governed  by  a  board  of  trustees,  was  virtually  a  free  school 
for  two  or  three  years.  It  was  then  called  the  Columbian  Insti- 
tute. John  F.  Cook  came  in  charge  of  this  school  in  1834  and 
with  the  exception  of  a  brief  interval  as  the  victim  of  a  riot,  con- 
tinued it  until  his  death  in  1855. 

In  the  sixty  years  intervening  between  1807  and  1862,  when 
by  act  of  Congress,  provision  was  made  for  colored  youth,  this 
man,  John  Francis  Cook,  stands  forth  the  most  conspicuous 
figure.  His  leadership  was  not  alone  manifested  in  the  educa- 
tion of  a  talented  group ;  it  was  exhibited  both  in  religious  mat- 
ters and  in  secular  affairs.     He  was  one  of  the  organizers  of 


230  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

Union  Bethel  Church  in  1838,  which,  nearly  fifty  years  later,  be- 
came the  Metropolitan  A.  M.  E.  Church;  organizer  and  first 
pastor  in  1841  of  the  Fifteenth  Street  Presbyterian  Church,  one 
of  the  foremost  churches  of  that  denomination  in  the  country ;  he 
was  one  of  the  charter  members  of  Union  Friendship  Lodge 
No.  891,  Grand  United  Order  of  Odd  Fellows  and  of  the  Har- 
mony Cemetery  Association,  and  was  also  one  of  the  first  Min- 
isters' Council  organized  by  Daniel  A.  Payne. 

At  his  death,  the  mantle  as  educator  which  fell  from  his 
shoulders,  was  taken  up  by  his  two  sons,  John  F.  and  George 
F.  T.  Cook,  who  had  been  trained  at  Oberlin  and  gained  their 
experience  as  his  assistants. 

For  half  a  century  these  two  men  were  scarcely  less  con- 
spicuous than  their  sire  for  their  personal  dignity,  their  conse- 
crated public  service,  their  lofty  ideals,  and  their  unimpeachable 
character,  all  of  which  combined  commanded  for  them  respect 
by  all  classes  of  citizens  and  by  both  races.  While  these  traits 
were  common  to  the  two,  they  carved  out  such  distinct  careers 
that  separate  and  independent  treatment  is  a  desert  to  their 
work. 

John  F.  Cook,  Second,  was  born  in  Washington,  September 
21,  1833.  His  early  years  were  spent  without  special  incident. 
After  teaching  for  some  years  in  the  school  established  by  his 
father,  he  taught  for  a  brief  period  in  New  Orleans  and  until 
the  outbreak  of  the  Civil  War. 

In  1867  he  accepted  a  clerkship  in  the  office  of  the  Collector  of 
Taxes  in  his  native  city.  The  next  year  he  became  a  member  of 
the  Board  of  Aldermen  and  in  1868  he  was  elected  Register  of 
the  City.  In  1874  he  was  nominated  to  the  Collectorship  of 
Taxes  by  President  Grant  and  confirmed  by  the  Senate,  a  posi- 
tion held  by  him  through  the  administration  of  Grant,  Hayes, 
Garfield  and  Arthur,  until  the  accession  of  the  Democratic  Party 
by  the   election  of   Grover   Cleveland   caused  his   resignation. 


JOHN  FRANCIS  COOK,  SECOND  231 

Other  positions  held  by  him  included  the  Grandmastership  of 
the  Grand  Lodge  of  Free  and  Accepted  Masons  for  ten 
terms,  eight  of  them  in  succession,  and  a  trusteeship  of  Howard 
University  for  thirty-five  years,  during  part  of  which  he  was  a 
member  of  its  Executive  Committee.  Three  times  he  was  chosen 
as  delegate  to  the  National  Convention  of  the  Republican  Party. 
He  served  also  as  a  member  of  the  Board  of  Trustees  of  the 
National  Association  for  the  Relief  of  Destitute  Colored  Women 
and  Children  and  of  the  Board  of  Trustees  of  the  Harmony  Ceme- 
tery. After  having  reached  threescore  years  and  ten,  he  was 
appointed  a  member  of  the  local  board  of  education,  from  its  re- 
organization in  1906,  until  his  resignation  on  account  of  failing 
health  a  few  months  before  his  death  in  1910.  His  public  spirit 
was  further  shown  by  his  presidency  of  the  Samuel  Coleridge- 
Taylor  Choral  Association,  a  musical  organization  which  has 
rendered  with  great  success  "Hiawatha"  and  "The  Atonement" 
by  that  eminent  A'frico-English  composer. 

George  F.  T.  Cook  was  not  attracted  by  the  allurements  of 
politics,  but  he  remained  in  the  service  of  education  first  as  in- 
structor, then  as  superintendent. 

The  next  month  after  the  abolition  of  slavery  in  the  District 
of  Columbia  on  May  21,  1862,  Congress  enacted  a  law  calling  for 
ten  per  cent  of  the  taxes  kvied  on  the  property  of  colored  per- 
sons, to  be  set  apart  for  the  purpose  of  initiating  a  system  of 
primary  education  for  the  colored  youth  of  the  District  of 
Columbia.  After  a  lapse  of  two  years,  one  teacher.  Miss  Emma 
V.  Brown,  who  became  Mrs.  Henry  P.  Montgomery,  was  ap- 
pointed teacher  at  a  salary  of  $400.  This  sum  proving  insuf- 
ficient to  develop  the  system,  additional  legislation  was  secured 
July  26,  1866,  giving  a  pro  rata  of  all  municipal  school  funds 
to  a  board  of  colored  trustees.  This  at  once  gave  the  schools  an 
impetus. 

Upon  the  inauguration  of  the  public  school  system  and  his 
installation  therein  as  superintendent,  a  number  of  his  former 


232  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

pupils  were  among  his  assistants  as  a  nucleus  of  the  corps  of 
teachers.  Under  this  superintendence  which  with  an  interval  of 
one  year,  began  in  1868  and  continued  to  June,  1900,  the  system 
grew  to  be  the  largest  and  best  for  the  colored  race  in  the  United 
States.  In  1869  there  were  50  teachers,  25  of  whom  were  white 
and  25  colored  with  an  average  attendance  of  2,532. 

In  the  school  year  1899-1900,  his  last  year  of  service,  there 
were  under  his  independent  superintendence,  in  the  cities  of 
Washington  and  Georgetown,  352  teachers  with  112  pupils  in 
the  Normal  School,  700  in  the  high  school,  3,307  in  grammar 
grades,  8,233  in  the  primary  departments,  and  392  in  the  kinder- 
gartens, a  total  of  12,748  pupils.  These  were  housed  in  23  owned 
and  3  rented  buildings  in  which  there  was  an  aggregate  of  227 
class  rooms. 

No  other  colored  educator  anywhere  in  the  United  States  has 
enjoyed  or  wielded  such  an  influence,  and  no  white  instructor  has 
molded  the  education  of  as  many  colored  youth  as  he.  For  the 
more  than  thirty  years  his  position  as  superintendent  was  an  in- 
dependent and  responsible  one.  The  appropriations  for  the 
schools  being  based  on  his  estimates  and  largely  in  accordance 
with  his  recommendations.  As  a  matter  of  fact  he  was  the  first 
and  only  colored  superintendent  of  the  colored  schools  of  Wash- 
ington and  Georgetown. 

A  most  interesting  fact  in  the  evolution  of  these  schools  is  their 
separate  management  until  the  beginning  of  the  twentieth  cen- 
tury. This  became  essential,  if  not  indispensable  to  their  growth, 
and  development;  for  at  the  commencement  of  these  schools, 
there  were  both  indifference  and  open  hostility  towards  them  on 
the  part  of  the  white  school  trustees.  In  the  vdnter  of  1868-69 
after  the  legislation  for  a  pro  rata  division  of  the  school  fund 
had  assured  their  expansion,  a  bill  was  passed  without  debate 
in  both  houses  of  Congress  repealing  the  provision  for  the  sepa- 
rate management  by  the  colored  triisteees,  who  at  that  time  were 
appointed  by  the  Secretary  of  the  Interior,  and  vesting  their 


JOHN  FRANCIS  COOK,  SECOND  233 

authority  in  the  board  appointed  by  the  Municipality,  which  had 
the  management  of  the  white  schools.  The  colored  people  were 
alarmed  by  the  passage  of  this  bill,  especially  because  of  the 
method  by  which  the  measure  was  rushed  through  Congress. 
They  held  public  meetings  in  different  churches  and  expressed 
most  emphatically  their  opposition  to  the  change.  The  first 
meeting  held  at  Israel  A.  M.  E.,  now  C.  M.  E.,  Church,  was  pre- 
sided over  by  John  F.  Cook  and  the  final  one  at  the  Fifteenth 
Street  Presbyterian  Church  was  addressed  among  others,  by  Rev. 
J.  Sella  Martin,  the  pastor,  one  of  the  most  talented  orators  the 
colored  race  has  developed. 

The  resolutions  adopted  took  unusually  high  ground.  They 
called  for  free  schools  and  equal  school  rights.  They  deprecated 
any  legislation  that  did  not  abolish  in  toto  the  existing  system 
built  on  distinctions  in  race  and  color.  Especially  was  the  op- 
position focused  on  the  bill  under  consideration  that  transferred 
the  powers  of  the  board  of  colored  trustees  to  those  of  the  Munici- 
pality, because  it  would  be  optional  with  the  white  trustees  to 
continue  colored  schools  and  subject  them  to  distracting  in- 
fluences. 

When  the  measure  came  to  the  President,  Andrew  Johnson, 
he  gave  the  matter  such  consideration  that  he  submitted  the  pre- 
amble and  resolutions  to  Congress  without  affixing  his  signature 
to  the  bill.  And  the  scheme  to  take  the  control  of  the  colored 
schools  from  their  own  trustees  failed  until  the  reorganization 
thirty-one  years  later  in  1900. 

Mr.  John  W.  F.  Smith  for  several  years  closely  associated  with 
Mr.  Cook  in  the  administration  of  the  schools  thus  sets  forth  Mr. 
Cook 's  unique  work  in  the  cause  of  education. 

' '  Scarcely  had  the  smoke  of  battle  lifted  than  he  was  called  to 
the  grandest  work  ever  given  to  man — the  establishment  upon 
firm  and  sure  foundation  of  a  system  of  education  here.  'The 
hour  and  the  man'  met  in  Mr.  Cook.  Years  of  actual  teaching 
in  elementary  schools  well  fitted  him  to  lay  hold  wisely  and 


234  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

skillfully  upon  school  problems.  The  practical  trend  of  his  ef- 
forts actuated  his  teachers,  and  solid  substantial  training  and 
teaching  resulted. 

"During  the  public  school  period  he  was  associated  with  such 
efficient  superintendents  as  J.  Ormond  Wilson  and  W.  B.  Powell, 
respectively  superintendents  of  the  white  schools  of  the  District 
of  Columbia.  Mr.  Wilson,  as  is  well  known,  was  a  great  or- 
ganizer; Mr.  Powell,  a  great  thinker,  and  through  his  addresses 
a  stimulator  of  the  teachers.  Mr.  Cook  was  both  an  organizer 
and  thinker,  but  not  a  talker.  By  intimate  relationship  with 
the  teachers  in  the  schoolroom  and  by  frequent  conferences  with 
them  in  his  office,  he  stimulated  and  inspired  them.  His  execu- 
tive ability  was  notable  as  witnessed  by  the  successful  manage- 
ment of  a  rapidly  developing  system  of  schools.  The  selection 
of  sites  for  new  schools,  all  financial  matters,  requisitions  for  all 
books  and  supplies,  and  innumerable  other  details  devolved  upon 
his  office.    Thus  he  was  both  business  manager  and  educator. ' ' 


o 


y. 


X 


Y. 


it 

5 


XXXV 

EDWARD  WILMOT   BLYDEN 

The  career  of  Edward  Wilmot  Blyden,  who  died  February  7, 
1912,  at  Freetown,  Sierra  Leone,  West  Africa,  illustrates  very 
graphically  several  facts.  First,  the  difficulties  which  the 
American  Negro  had  to  encounter  in  the  last  half  of  the  nine- 
teenth century;  Second,  how  these  frequently  stimulated  the 
activities  of  the  individual  who  is  determined  to  make  the  best 
of  his  opportunities ;  Third,  how  they  become  at  times  like  withes 
of  straw  as  handicaps  either  to  dwarf  the  intellectual,  moral  or 
physical  growth  of  the  individual. 

Blyden  was  born  August  3,  1832,  on  the  Island  of  St.  Thomas 
in  the  Danish  West  Indies.  His  parents  were  of  pure  Negro 
stock,  of  the  Eboe  tribe  and  were  members  of  the  Dutch  Re- 
formed Church,  Eev.  John  P.  Knox,  Blyden 's  teacher,  an 
American  Missionary  of  the  same  denomination  perceiving  that 
the  youth  had  unusual  intellectual  capacity,  advised  him  to  pur- 
sue a  collegiate  course  in  the  United  States.  To  fulfill  this  de- 
sign the  youth  came  in  1850  to  New  York  but  found  admission 
to  the  colleges  to  which  he  applied  denied  him  on  account  of  race. 
This  was  just  after  the  enactment  of  the  Fugitive  Slave  Law 
when  public  excitement  was  at  fever  heat,  manifesting  its  opposi- 
tion in  many  ways  against  the  individual  as  well  as  the  class. 
It  had  been  Blyden 's  purpose  on  the  completion  of  his  studies 
to  settle  in  Africa,  but  the  denial  of  the  opportunity  determined 
him  to  go  at  once  to  that  distant  land. 

He  landed  in  Liberia,  January  26,  1851,  and  became  a  pupil  in 
the  Alexander  High  School  at  Monrovia.  Such  was  the  as- 
siduity with  which  he  applied  himself  to  study  that  he  soon  be- 

235 


236  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

came  one  of  the  instructors  and  in  1858  its  principal.  When 
Liberia  College  was  started  in  1862,  he  was  made  professor  of 
languages.  In  this  year  he  visited  the  United  States.  Dr.  Crum- 
mell,  then  a  Missionary  in  Liberia,  was  also  in  America.  While 
in  this  country,  Blyden  published  his  first  work,  "Liberia's 
Offering. ' '  The  author  recalls  a  visit  by  Blyden  to  the  Institute 
for  Colored  Youth  upon  which  the  young  African  scholar  in  the 
course  of  an  address  to  the  pupils  expressed  in  unmistakable 
language  his  contempt  for  the  attitude  of  the  American  Negro 
with  respect  to  his  servile  condition  and  the  popular  indifference 
in  which  he  was  held.  Said  Blyden:  "I  would  make  my  mark. 
I  would  do  something  to  demand  the  attention  of  the  American 
people,  if  I  had  to  burn  the  Astor  House  down."  Benjamin 
Coates,  the  Quaker  merchant,  a  trustee  of  the  school  and  a  friend 
of  Liberia,  interrupted  and  attempted  to  rebuke  the  speaker,  but 
Blyden  in  his  calm  manner  rejoined,  "I  don't  mean  to  make 
marks  like  they  do  down  South."  Another  incident  was  a  con- 
firmation in  the  Church  of  the  Crucifixion,  Right  Reverend 
Alonzo  Potter,  Bishop  of  the  diocese  of  Pennsylvania,  officiated 
while  in  the  chancel,  though  of  a  different  communion,  Dr.  Bly- 
den was  honored  with  a  seat. 

In  1864  because  of  his  influence  in  Liberian  politics,  which 
the  world-wide  traveler.  Sir  H.  H.  Johnston,  said  was  almost 
from  the  beginning  of  his  citizenship  and  a  result  of  his  ex- 
ceptionally good  education,  Blyden  was  appointed  Secretary  of 
State,  the  duties  of  which  he  performed  in  addition  to  his  educa- 
tional work  at  the  college.  He  was  not  successful,  nevertheless,  in 
a  movement  to  amend  the  Liberian  Constitution  of  1847  which 
made  Liberia  an  independent  nation.  With  a  view  to  improve 
his  knowledge  of  the  Arabic  language.  Dr.  Blyden  made  a 
journey  to  Egypt,  Syria  and  Palestine.  His  experiences  in  this 
tour  he  published  in  "From  West  Africa  to  Palestine."  In  1871 
he  resigned  his  college  professorship  and  spent  two  years  in 
Sierra  Leone.    While  here  he  was  entrusted  by  the  British  Gov- 


EDWARD  WILMOT  BLYDEN  237 

ernment  with  two  important  diplomatic  missions  to  native  chiefs, 
one  result  of  which  was  the  negotiation  of  treaties  that  added  to 
the  territory  of  the  province.  Upon  the  completion  of  this 
special  work,  he  returned  to  Liberia  to  accept  an  appointment 
as  the  Minister  Plenipotentiary  of  the  Republic  of  Liberia  at  the 
Court  of  St.  James.  1880  once  more  finds  him  in  America, 
this  time  as  a  representative  to  the  Presbyterian  General  As- 
sembly at  Madison,  Wis.  On  his  way  thither  he  visited  Chicago 
during  the  meeting  of  the  Republican  National  Convention 
which  nominated  James  A.  Garfield  for  the  Presidency.  Here 
Blyden  met  representative  Negroes  from  the  South,  an  oppor- 
tunity which  opened  the  way  for  visiting  many  cities  in  this  sec- 
tion and  for  invitations  to  preach  and  lecture  on  the  relation  of 
the  American  Negro  and  Africa.  His  appearances  were  before 
large  and  appreciative  audiences  who  listened  to  him  with  pro- 
found respect  if  not  with  enthusiasm  and  admiration.  Several 
of  these  addresses  were  collected  in  ' '  Christianity,  Islam  and  the 
Negro  Race,"  which  is  regarded  as  his  most  important  literary 
work.  The  American  Colonization  Society  at  this  period  elected 
him  as  Vice  President  and  on  not  a  few  occasions  he  aimed  to 
convince  his  audiences  that  it  was  the  duty  of  the  American 
Negro  to  return  to  Africa  and  there  build  up  an  independent 
civilization. 

On  his  return  to  assume  the  duties  of  the  college  presidency, 
the  call  to  which  was  extended  to  him  during  his  stay  in  America, 
he  took  with  him  two  of  the  most  thoroughly  trained  and  strong- 
est intellects  of  the  race,  Hugh  M.  Browne  and  T.  McCants 
Stewart,  shortly  after  their  graduation  from  Princeton  Seminary. 
Their  connection  with  Liberia  and  its  college  was  of  the  briefest 
period. 

In  1884  Dr.  Blyden  resigned  from  the  college  to  take  up  edu- 
cational work  among  the  Mohammedans.  In  1892  he  was 
again  appointed  Liberian  representative  at  the  Court  of  St. 
James. 


238  THE  NEGRO  IN  AMERICAN  HISTORY 

As  linguistic  scholar,  Dr.  Blyden  ranked  deservedly  high,  for 
he  possessed  a  working  knowledge  of  the  French,  German,  Italian 
and  Spanish  among  modem  languages  and  of  Hebrew,  Greek 
and  Latin  among  the  classics,  to  which  must  be  added  a  critical 
familiarity  with  the  Arabic. 

While  in  London,  he  was  elected  Honorary  Member  of  the 
Athenaeum  Club,  Fellow  of  the  American  Philological  Society 
and  Corresponding  and  Honorary  Member  of  the  Society  of 
Sciences  and  Letters  of  Bengal.  Several  colleges  conferred  on 
him  honorary  degrees,  among  them  D.D.  by  Lafa3^ette  and 
Hamilton  Colleges  and  LL.D.  by  Lincoln  University.  On  the 
organization  of  the  American  Negro  Academy  in  1897,  he  was 
elected  one  of  its  first  corresponding  members. 

Some  of  the  most  distinguished  scholars  of  both  continents, 
such  as  Gladstone,  Lord  Brougham,  Herbert  Spencer,  Lord  Salis- 
bury, R.  Bosworth  Smith,  Charles  Dickens,  Stafford  Brooke,  the 
Earl  of  Derby  and  Charles  Sumner  included  Dr.  Blyden  among 
their  correspondents.  Lord  Brougham  during  a  speech  made 
June  25,  1860,  before  the  House  of  Lords  referred  to  a  letter  in 
his  possession  from  Dr.  Blyden  that  contained  a  high  estimate  of 
the  eminent  qualities  of  the  Chancellor  of  the  Exchequer,  who 
was  then  no  less  than  the  great  commoner,  William  Ewart  Glad- 
stone. 

Other  works  bearing  the  authorship  of  Dr.  Blyden  besides  those 
elsewhere  mentioned  were  "The  African  Problem  and  Other  Dis- 
courses," ''West  Africa  before  Europe,"  and  numerous  mono- 
graphs. Because  of  his  services  in  the  field  of  literature,  he  en- 
joyed a  pension  in  his  declining  years. 

James  Carmichael  Smith,  Esq.  (retired),  who  is  familiar  with 
conditions  in  the  West  Indies,  the  United  States  and  the  West 
Coast  of  Africa,  says : 

"The  life  and  work  of  the  late  Edward  Wilmot  Blyden,  D.D., 
have  attracted  the  attention  of  Europeans  and  Africans  as  one 
of  the  most  conspicuous  expressions  and  manifestations  of  the  be- 


EDWARD  WILMOT  BLYDEN  239 

lief  that  a  man  of  unmixed  African  ancestry  possesses  the  mental 
capacity,  the  intellectual  and  imaginative  power  of  acquiring  and 
assimilating  alike  the  literary  culture  of  the  ancient  civiliza- 
tion of  the  Greeks,  the  Romans,  and  the  Hebrews ;  and  of  the  mod- 
ern civilizations  of  the  Anglo-Saxons,  the  Latins  and  the 
Arabs.  .  .  .  He  must  be  regarded  as  one  of  the  first  fruits  of  a 
maturing  literary  harvest  which  in  the  fulness  of  time  will  be  in- 
gathered  and  which  will  then  reveal  to  all  mankind  the  view- 
point, the  outlook,  and  the  ideals  of  the  Westernized  Africans 
of  America  and  the  West  Indies;  and  also  of  the  Westernized 
Africans  of  the  Continent  of  Africa  who  have  lived  throughout 
all  of  their  generation  in  Africa,  governed  and  surrounded 
mainly  by  Pagan  and  Mohammedan  religious  influences  and  by 
African  laws  and  institutions." 


\ 


1 


APPENDIX  A 

Holly 

The  death  of  Bishop  Theodore  Holly,  March  22,  1911,  at  Port-au-  ^ 
Prince,  Haiti,  recalls  the  career  of  Washington's  most  distinguished 
Negro.  He  was  bom  in  1829  of  Roman  Catholic  parents.  His  father, 
a  native  of  Saint  Mary's  County,  Maryland,  was  one  of  the  laborers 
employed  in  the  building  of  the  Capitol.  Young  Holly  learned  the 
shoemaker's  trade,  found  his  way  north  and  finally  became  ordained 
in  1850  priest  in  the  Protestant  Episcopal  Church.  He  was  at  one 
time  rector  in  a  western  New  York  parish,  then  in  Michigan  and  in 
Canada,  ultimately  becoming  rector  of  Saint  Luke's  P.  E.  Church  at 
New  Haven,  Connecticut.  He  was  active  in  the  conventions  regailarly 
held  by  the  colored  men  of  the  North  in  these  dark  days.  The  enact- 
ment of  the  Fugitive  Slave  Law  of  1850  threw  the  colored  people  of 
the  North  in  a  spirit  of  unrest  and  the  burning  question  was,  What  must 
we  do  to  better  our  condition — migrate  to  Canada,  to  Africa,  the  West 
Indies  or  Central  America  ? 

In  1874  he  was  consecrated  Right  Reverend  Bishop  of  Haiti  by  Rt. 
Rev.  John  Williams,  D.D.,  in  Grace  Church,  New  York.  He  worked 
with  singular  zeal  to  advance  the  cause  of  Christianity  in  his  adopted 
home,  visitmg  his  native  city  at  rare  intervals,  where  relatives  still 
reside,  preaching  both  at  St.  Luke's  and  St.  Mary's  P.  E.  Church.  His 
last  visit  to  Washington  was  in  1901. 

The  distinguished  prelate  was  also  a  recognized  Masonic  author  whose 
contributions  appeared  in  some  of  the  leading  fraternal  periodicals  of 
the  United  States,  although  the  editors  had  not  the  slightest  suspicion 
that  their  brilliant  contributor  was  a  Negro. 

On  the  occasion  of  his  one  visit  to  Great  Britain  to  attend  the  Second 
Lambeth  Conference,  the  bishop,  by  invitation  of  the  late  Dean  Stanley, 
preached  in  Westminster  Abbey  on  St.  James  Day,  a  most  eloquent 
sermon,  extracts  from  the  peroration  of  which  went  the  rounds  of  the 
English-speaking  world : 

241 


242  APPENDICES 

"And  DOW  on  the  shores  of  Old  England,  the  cradle  of  that  Anglo- 
Saxon  Christianity  by  which  I  have  been  m  part  at  least  illuminated, 
standing-  beneath  the  vaulted  roof  of  this  monumental  pile  redolent 
with  the  piety  of  by -gone  generations  during  so  many  ages;  in  the 
presence  of  the  'Storied  urn  and  animated  bust'  that  hold  the  sacred 
ashes  and  commemorate  the  buried  grandeur  of  so  many  illustrious 
personages,  I  catch  a  fresh  inspiration  and  new  impulse  of  the  divine 
missionary  spirit  of  our  common  Christianity ;  and  here  in  the  presence 
of  God,  of  angels  and  of  men,  on  this  day  sacred  to  the  memoi-y  of  an 
apostle  whose  blessed  name  was  called  over  me  at  my  baptism,  and  as 
I  lift  up  my  voice  for  the  first,  and  perhaps  the  last,  time  in  any  of 
England's  sainted  shrines,  I  dedicate  myself  anew  to  the  work  of  God, 
of  the  Gospel  of  Christ  and  of  the  salvation  of  my  fellow-men  in  the 
far-distant  isle  of  the  Caribbean  Sea  that  has  become  the  chosen  field 
of  my  special  labors. 

"0  Thou  Savior  Christ,  Son,  who  when  Thou  wast  spumed  by  the 
Jews  of  the  living  race  of  Shem,  and  who  when  delivered  up  without 
cause  by  the  Romans  of  the  race  of  Japhet,  on  the  day  of  Thy 
Crucifixion  hadst  Thy  ponderous  cross  borne  to  Golgotha's  summit  on 
the  stalwart  shoulders  of  Simon,  the  Cyrenian,  of  the  race  of  Ham;  I 
pray  Thee,  0  precious  Savior,  remember  that  forlorn,  despised  and  re- 
jected race,  whose  son  bore  Thy  cross,  when  Thou  shalt  come  in  the 
power  and  majesty  of  Thy  eternal  kingdom  to  distribute  Thy  crowns 
of  everlasting  glory!  And  give  to  me  then,  not  a  place  at  Thy  right 
hand  or  at  Thy  left,  but  the  place  of  a  gatekeeper  at  the  entrance  of 
the  Holy  City,  the  Holy  Jerusalem,  that  I  may  behold  my  redeemed 
brethren,  the  saved  of  the  Lord,  entering  therein  to  be  partakers  with 
Abraham,  Isaac  and  Jacob,  of  all  the  joys  of  Thy  glorious  and  ever- 
lasting Kingdom." 

APPENDIX  B 

An  Early  Incident  of  the  Civil  War 

Robert  Smalls  of  Beaufort,  S.  C,  achieved  the  greatest  distinction 
of  any  Negro  during  the  Civil  "War  by  turning  over  to  the  United 
States  the  Steamer  Planter.  The  facts  of  this  incident  are  set  forth  in 
reports  by  committees  of  several  Congresses  as  follows: 


APPENDICES  243 

On  May  13,  1862,  the  Confederate  Steamer  Planter,  the  special  dis- 
patch boat  of  General  Ripley,  the  Confederate  post  commander  at 
Charleston,  S.  C,  was  taken  by  Robert  Smalls,  under  the  following  cir- 
cumstances from  the  wharf  at  which  she  was  lying,  carried  safely  out 
of  Charleston,  S".  C.  harbor,  and  delivered  to  one  of  the  vessels  of  the 
Federal  fleet  then  blockading  that  port. 

On  the  day  previous.  May  12,  the  Planter,  which  had  for  two  weeks 
been  engaged  in  removing  guns  from  Cole's  Island  to  James  Island,  re- 
turned to  Charleston.  That  night  all  the  officers  went  ashore  and  slept 
in  the  city,  leaving  on  board  a  crew  of  eight  men,  all  colored.  Among 
them  was  Robert  Smalls,  who  was  virtually  the  pilot  of  the  boat,  al- 
though he  was  only  called  a  wheelman,  because  at  that  time  no  colored 
man  could  have,  in  fact,  been  made  a  pilot. 

For  some  time  previous  he  had  been  watching  for  an  opportunity  to 
carry  into  execution  a  plan  he  had  conceived  to  take  the  Planter  to  the 
Federal  fleet.  This,  he  saw,  was  as  good  a  chance  as  he  would  ever  have 
to  do  so,  and  therefore  he  determined  not  to  lose  it.  Consulting  with 
the  balance  of  the  crew,  Smalls  found  that  they  were  willing  to  co- 
operate with  him,  although  two  of  them  afterwards  concluded  to  re- 
main behind.  The  design  was  hazardous  in  the  extreme.  The  boat 
would  have  to  pass  beneath  the  guns  of  the  forts  in  the  harbor. 
Failure  and  detection  would  have  been  certain  death.  Fearful  the 
venture,  but  it  was  made.  The  daring  resolution  had  been  formed, 
and  mider  command  of  Robert  Smalls  wood  was  taken  aboard,  steam 
was  put  on,  and  with  her  valuable  cargo  of  guns  and  ammunition,  in- 
tended for  Fort  Ripley,  a  new  fortification  just  constructed  in  the  har- 
bor, about  two  o'clock  in  the  morning  the  Planter  silently  moved  off 
from  her  dock,  steamed  i;p  to  North  Atlantic  wharf,  where  Smalls' 
wife  and  two  children,  together  with  four  other  women  and  one  other 
child,  and  also  three  men,  were  waiting  to  embark. 

All  these  were  taken  on  board,  and  then  at  3:25  A.  M.,  May  13,  the 
Planter  started  on  her  perilous  adventure,  carrying  nine  men,  five 
women,  and  three  children.  Passing  Fort  Johnson,  the  Planter's  steam 
whistle  blew  the  usual  salute  and  she  proceeded  down  the  bay.  Ap- 
proaching Fort  Sumter,  Smalls  stood  in  the  pilot  house  leaning  out  of 
the  window,  with  his  arms  folded  across  his  breast,  after  the  manner  of 
Captain  Relay,  the  commander  of  the  boat,  and  his  head  covered  with 


244  APPENDICES 

the  huge  straw  hat  which  Captain  Relay  commonly  wore  on  such  oc- 
casions. 

The  signal,  required  to  be  given  by  all  steamers  passing  out,  was 
blown  as  coolly  as  if  General  Ripley  was  on  board,  going  out  on  a  tour 
of  inspection.  Sumter  answered  by  signal,  "All  right,"  and  the 
Planter  headed  toward  Morris  Island,  then  occupied  by  Hatch's  light 
artillery,  and  passed  beyond  the  range  of  Sumter's  guns  before  any- 
body suspected  anything  was  wrong.  When  at  last  the  Planter  was 
obviously  going  toward  the  Federal  fleet  off  the  bar,  Sumter  signaled 
toward  Morris  Island  to  stop  her,  but  it  was  too  late.  As  the  Planter 
approached  the  Federal  fleet,  a  white  flag  was  displayed,  but  this  was 
not  at  first  discovered  and  the  Federal  steamers,  supposing  the  Con- 
federate rams  were  coming  to  attack  them,  stood  out  to  deep  water. 
But  the  ship  Onward,  Captain  Nichols,  which  was  not  a  steamer,  re- 
mained, opened  her  ports,  and  was  about  to  fire  into  the  Planter,  when 
she  noticed  the  flag  of  truce.  As  soon  as  the  vessels  came  within  hail- 
ing distance  of  each  other,  the  Planter's  eiTand  was  explained.  Cap- 
tain Nichols  then  boarded  her  and  Smalls  delivered  the  Planter  to  him. 
From  the  Planter  Smalls  was  transferred  to  the  Augusta,  the  flagship 
off  the  bar,  under  the  command  of  Captain  Parrott,  by  whom  the 
Planter,  with  Smalls  and  her  crew,  were  sent  to  Port  Royal  to  Rear 
Admiral  DuPont,  then  in  command  of  the  Southern  Squadi'on. 

Smalls  was  made  pilot  and  did  service  on  the  Crusader,  the  Planter 
also,  and  the  Monitor  Keokuk  on  which  he  was  during  the  memorable 
attack  on  Fort  Sumter,  April  7,  1863.  The  Keokuk  was  struck  ninety- 
six  times,  nineteen  shots  passing.  Feeling  very  keenly  the  sting  sus- 
tained in  the  loss  of  the  Planter,  the  Confederates  made  a  very  hot  fire 
upon  her.     The  same  report  from  which  the  findings  are  extracted  says : 

"Upon  one  occasion  Captain  Nickerson  became  demoralized  and  left 
the  pilot  house  and  secured  himself  in  the  coal  bunker.  Smalls  was  on 
the  deck  and  finding  out  that  the  Captain  had  deserted  his  post,  entered 
the  pilot  house,  took  command  of  the  boat  and  carried  her  safely  out  of 
the  reach  of  the  guns.  For  this  conduct  he  was  promoted  by  order  of 
General  Gilmore,  commanding  the  Department  of  the  South,  to  the 
rank  of  Captain  of  the  Planter,  which  was  used  as  a  supply  boat  along 
the  coast  until  the  end  of  the  war.     In  September,  1866,  he  carried 


APPENDICES  245 

his   boat  to   Baltimore,  where  she  was  put   out  of  commission   and 
sold." 

House  of  Representatives 

55th  Congress  2d  Session 
Report  No.   120. 


APPENDIX  C 

The  Somerset  Case 

In  1771,  a  slave,  named  James  Somerset,  was  taken  by  his  master 
from  Virginia  to  England.  The  slave  refused  to  serve  his  master  there. 
A  writ  of  habeas  corpus  was  issued  by  Chief  Justice  Mansfield,  and  the 
question  whether  Somerset  was  free  or  slave  was  finally  brought  before 
the  full  court.  The  court  declared  him  free,  and  held  that  slavery  was 
contrary  to  the  laws  of  England,  because  positive  law  was  necessary  to 
establish  a  condition  of  slavery  ^  and  England  had  made  no  such  law. 
This  decision  inspired  Cowper's  lines: 

Slaves  cannot  breathe  in  England;   if  their  lungs 
Receive  our  air,  that  moment  they  are  free; 
They  touch  our  country  and  their  shackles  fall. 

"The  Story  of  the  Slave,"  see,  also,  "Slavery  and  Anti-Slavery,"  William 
Groodell,  for  an  elaborate  discussion  of  this  case. 


y 


APPENDIX  D 

The  Amistad  Captives 


About  the  last  of  April,  1839,  a  cargo  of  three  or  four  hundred  men 
and  boys,  and  two  hundred  women  and  children  kidnapped  as  African 
slaves  were  landed  in  Havana  where  they  were  sold.  Joseph  Ruiz 
bought  forty-nine,  and  Pedro  Montez  bought  the  children,  three  little 
girls,  and  put  them  on  the  schooner.  The  Amistad,  and  sailed  June  27th, 
for  Puerta  Prince,  Cuba,  a  few  hundred  mUes  from  Havana.  When  two 
or  three  days  out  they  were  beaten  severely  and  threatened  with  death. 

1  Constitutional  History  and  Government  of  the  United  States.  J.  S. 
Landon,  p.   176. 


246  APPENDICES 

On  the  fifth  night  the  slaves  under  the  leadership  of  Joseph  Cinquez 
or  Cinque  attacked  and  slew  the  captain  and  cook  with  knives  such  as 
were  used  to  cut  sugar  cane  and  took  charge  of  the  further  direction 
of  affairs.  They  spared  the  lives  of  Ruiz  and  Montez  on  condition 
that  they  would  return  them  to  Africa,  their  native  land.  The  Span- 
iards agreed.  They  steered  the  ship  for  Africa  by  day,  but  at  night 
the  ship's  course  was  turned  towards  America.  In  this  way  after  a 
couple  of  months,  during  which  they  were  boarded  several  times  by 
different  vessels,  once  by  a  schooner  from  Kingston,  Jamaica,  they 
were  finally  boarded  by  Lieutenant  Gedney  of  the  United  States  brig 
Washington,  off  the  coast  of  New  London.  On  being  captured  Cinque 
leaped  overboard,  but  was  finally  induced  to  return  to  the  ship.  The  re- 
port of  their  capture  created  a  sensation  throughout  the  country.  The 
case  was  brought  before  the  United  States  courts,  and  for  a  couple  of 
years  it  occupied  public  attention.  Among  the  lawyers  that  appeared 
in  the  case  were  the  venerable  John  Quincy  Adams  and  Roger  Sher- 
man Baldwin,  both  in  the  behalf  of  the  captives,  who  were  finally  re- 
leased by  a  decision  of  the  United  States  Supreme  Court  that  they  were 
not  pirates.  The  release  of  the  captives  was  the  occasion  of  much  re- 
joicing by  the  abolitionists.  Cinque  and  his  principal  men  appeared 
before  large  and  enthusiastic  audiences  in  several  northern  cities,  in 
which  large  sums  of  money  were  raised  for  the  benefit  of  the  captives. 
They  were  finally  sent  at  the  expense  of  the  United  States  Govern- 
ment to  their  African  home,  sailing  November  25,  1841,  and  with  five 
missionaries  landing  at  SieiTa  Leone  Januaiy  15,  1842.  The  Mendi 
Mission  was  established  and  supported  by  The  American  Missionary 
Association.  Cinque  died  in  1878,  while  the  Rev.  Albert  P.  Miller,  a 
well-known  Congregational  minister  and  more  recently  an  elder  in  the 
A.  M.  E.  Zion  Church,  had  charge  of  the  mission. 

APPENDIX  E 

\  The  Underground  Railroad 

The  abolition  of  slaveiy  in  Massachusetts,  Pennsylvania,  New  York 
and  other  States  in  the  North  was  followed  by  unceasing  attempts  of 
the  slave  in  the  South  to  escape  from  bondage.  He  could  not  always 
use  the  well-established  routes  of  travel,  the  public  stage,  the  steam- 


APPENDICES  247 

boat  or,  later,  the  railroad,  for  this  would  have  invited  attention  and 
facilitated  detection  and  apprehension  to  be  followed  by  a  return  to 
more  oppressive  forms  of  bondage.  In  the  first  administration  of 
President  Washington,  in  1793,  a  Fugitive  Slave  Law  was  passed  which 
''empowered  the  owner,  his  agent  or  attorney,  to  seize  the  fugitive  and 
take  him  before  a  United  States  Circuit  or  District  judge  within  the 
State  where  the  arrest  was  made,  or  before  any  local  magistrate  vpithin 
the  coimty  in  which  the  seizure  occurred." 

But  this  law  was  ineffectual,  for  slaves  in  increasing  number  con- 
tinued to  escape  to  the  North  and  to  Canada.  The  time  of  their  de- 
parture, and  the  route  were  not  only  not  within  the  public  eye,  but 
beyond  detection.  The  route  was  as  much  a  secret  as  though  mider- 
ground,  hence  the  term  "UndergTound  Railroad"  was  understood  to  in- 
clude all  the  agencies  and  instrumentalities  by  which  the  slave  received 
the  direction  and  aid  that  enabled  him  to  obtain  his  freedom. 

The  number  aided  and  escaping  by  means  of  the  Underground  Rail- 
road has  been  placed  as  high  as  fifty  thousand  by  Rev.  W.  M.  Mitchell, 
one  who  was  an  active  agent  in  this  work,  author  of  The  Underground 
Railroad;  and  J.  H.  F.  Claiborne,  biographer  of  John  A.  Quitman, 
places  the  number  as  high  as  one  hundred  thousand.-y 

The  most  comprehensive  history  of  the  movement  is  The  Underground 
Railroad  by  Wilbur  H.  Siebert,  professor  of  history  in  Ohio  State 
University.  There  are  others  which  treat  of  the  movement  in  special 
sections,  but  this  work  is  very  exhaustive  and  as  it  contains  a  bibli- 
ography that  is  encyclopedic,  it  is  commended  without  reserve  to  any 
student  who  seeks  to  investigate  the  subject  in  any  and  all  of  its  phases. 

A  more  stringent  Fugitive  Slave  Law  than  the  Act  of  1793  was  one 
of  the  provisions  of  the  compromises  of  1850,  and  it,  more  than  any 
other  legislative  measure,  crystallized  the  voice  of  protest  against  the 
aggressive  demands  of  the  Slave  Power  and  organized  the  forces  that 
determined  the  issue  between  slavery  and  freedom,  and  in  the  crisis  of 
the  Civil  War  ended  in  Emancipation  Proclamation  of  1863  and  the 
enactment  and  incorporation  of  the  Thirteenth  Amendment  to  the  Na- 
tional Constitution. 


248  APPENDICES 

APPENDIX  F 

The  Freedmen's  Bureau 

The  Freedmen's  Bureau  was  created  by  Act  of  Congress,  passed 
March  3,  1865,  and  signed  by  President  Lincoki,  one  of  the  last  acts 
pxior  to  his  second  inauguration.  General  Oliver  0.  Howard  was  named 
as  Commissioner.  Although  not  put  in  operation  until  after  the  cessa- 
tion of  hostilities,  it  was  the  evolution  of  plans  employed  by  different 
commanding  general  army  officers  and  the  outcome  of  legislative  effort 
on  the  part  of  Congress  made  for  nearly  two  years,  to  provide  for  the 
solution  of  problems  affecting  the  labor,  the  health,  the  education  and 
legal  and  property  rights  of  the  many  millions  of  blacks  that  the 
fortunes  of  war  had  brought  within  the  Union  lines  and  national  con- 
trol. General  Howard  proved  to  be  the  man  for  the  position,  and 
his  choice  of  Assistant  Commissioners  displayed  comprehensive  knowl- 
edge of  the  conditions  prevailing  in  the  South  and  the  men  and  methods 
equal  to  the  unique  situation. 

Through  the  agency  of  the  Bureau,  tribunals  were  established  for 
the  trial  of  minor  disputes  and  crimes  where  the  freedman  was  a  party. 
Landed  estates  were  in  many  instances  leased  and  labor  given  to  the 
Negi'o,  who  hitherto  was  without  either  experience  or  knowledge  in  such 
matters.  Elementary  schools  were  established  in  nearly  all  the  larger 
towns  and  cities  in  cooperation  with  the  religious  and  benevolent  asso- 
ciations in  which  all  the  Protestant  denominations  were  represented,  and 
the  foundation  for  the  colleges  and  normal  schools  at  such  places  as 
Atlanta,  New  Orleans,  Nashville,  Raleigh,  Richmond  and  Washington 
were  laid.  Although  the  Freedmen's  Bureau,  according  to  the  statute 
was  to  terminate  one  year  after  the  close  of  the  War,  it  was  continued 
imtil  June  30,  1872. 

Opinions  differ  as  to  the  value  of  the  Bureau  in  this  transitional 
period,  when  the  North  and  South  had  just  left  the  battlefield  and 
there  was  the  need  for  adjustment  and  patience,  as  well  as  a  wider  out- 
look for  the  freedmen,  but  its  work  in  the  founding  of  the  schools  and 
colleges  must  remain  its  greatest  monument. 

Grant's  Memoirs. 

Autobiography.     O.  O.  Howard. 

The  Freedmen's  Bureau.     Paul  Skeets  Peirce,  Ph.D. 


APPENDICES  249 

APPENDIX  G 

Medal  of  Honor  Men 

The  following  men  received  medals  of  honor  from  the  United  States 
GoveiTimeut.  The  reasons  assigned  are  in  every  instance  those  given  ia 
the  official  records: 

CIVIL   WAR 

Christian  A.  Fleetwood. — Serg-t.  Major  4th  U.  S.  Colored  Troops, 
Chapin's  Farm,  Virginia,  Sept.  29,  1864.  Seized  the  colors,  after 
two  color-bearers  had  been  shot  down,  and  bore  them  nobly 
through  the  fight. 

Alfred  B.  Hilton.— Serg-t.  Co.  "H."  4th  U.  S.  C.  T.  (Regimental 
Color-Sergeant)  Chapin's  Farm,  Va.,  Sept.  29,  18G4.  In  the 
charge  when  his  associate  sergeant  was  killed,  caught  up  his  flag 
also,  and  carried  both  until  himself  shot  down,  when  he  held  up 
the  flags  and  shouted :     "Boys,  save  the  colors !" 

Charles  Veal.— Corpl.  Co.  ''D,"  4th  U.  S.  C.  T.  (Regimental  Color- 
Guard)  Chapin's  Farm,  Va.,  Sept.  29,  1864.  Seized  the  regimental 
colors  after  two  color-bearers  had  been  shot  down,  close  to  the 
enemy's  works,  and  bore  them  through  the  remainder  of  the  battle. 

Milton  M.  Holland.  Sergt.  Co.  "C,"  5th  U.  S.  Colored  Troops. 
Chapm's  Farm,  Va.,  Sept.  29,  1864.  Took  command  of  Co.  "C," 
after  all  the  officers  had  been  killed  or  wounded,  and  gallantly  led 
it. 

James  E.  Bronson.— First  Sergt.  Co.  "D,"  5th  U.  S.  C.  T.  Chapin's 
Farm,  Va.,  Sept.  29,  1864.  Took  command  of  his  company,  all 
the  officers  having  been  killed  or  wounded,  and  gallantly  led  it. 

Powhattan  Beatty.— First  Sergt.  Co.  "G,"  5th  U.  S.  C.  T.  Chapin's 
Farm,  Va.,  Sept.  29,  1864.  Took  command  of  Co.  "G,"  all  the 
officers  having  been  killed  or  wounded,  and  gallantly  led  it. 

Robert  A.  Pinn.— First  Sergt.  Co.  "I,"  5th  U.  S.  C.  T.  Chapin's 
Farm,  Va.,  Sept.  29,  1864.  Took  command  of  Co.  "I,"  after  all 
the  officers  had  been  killed  or  wounded,  and  gallantly  led  it  in 
battle. 

Thomas  R.  Hawkins. — Sergt.  Major  6th  U.  S.  Colored  Troops,  Deep 
Bottom,  Va.,  July  21,  1864.     Rescued  the  regimental  colors. 


250  APPENDICES 

Alexander  Kelly.— First  Sergt.  Co.  "F,"  6th  U.  S.  C.  T.  Chapin's 
Farm,  Va.,  Sept.  29,  1864.  Gallantly  seized  the  colors  which  had 
fallen  near  the  enemy's  line  of  abattis,  raised  them  and  rallied  the 
men  at  a  time  of  confusion  and  in  a  place  of  great  danger. 

Miles  James.— Corporal  Co.  "B,"  36th  U.  S.  Colored  Troops. 
Chapin's  Farm,  Va.,  Sept.  30,  1864.  Having  had  his  arm  mu- 
tilated, making  immediate  amputation  necessary,  he  loaded  and  dis- 
charged his  piece  with  one  hand  and  urged  his  men  forward,  this 
within  thirty  yards  of  the  enemy's  works. 

James  Gardiner. — Private  Co.  "I,"  36th  U,  S.  Colored  Troops. 
Chapin's  Farm,  Va.,  Sept.  29,  1864.  Rushed  in  advance  of  his 
brigade,  shot  a  rebel  officer  who  was  on  the  parapet,  and  then  ran 
him  through  with  his  bayonet. 

Edward  Ratcliffe.— First  Sergt.  Co.  "C,"  38th  U.  S.  Colored  Troops. 
Chapin's  Farm,  Va.,  Sept.  29,  1864.  Commanded  and  gallantly 
led  his  company  after  the  commanding  officer  had  been  killed. 
Was  the  first  enlisted  man  to  enter  the  enemy's  works. 

James  H.  Harris.— Sergt.  Co.  "B,"  38th  U.  S.  Colored  Troops. 
Chapin's  Farm,  Va.,  Sept.  29,  1864.     Gallantry  in  the  assault. 

William  H.  Barnes.— Private  Co.  "C,"  38th  U.  S.  Colored  Troops. 
Chapin's  Farm,  Va.,  Sept.  29,  1864.  Among  the  first  to  enter  the 
enemy's  works,  though  wounded. 

Decatur  Dorset.- Sergt.  Co.  "B,"  39th  U.  S.  Colored  Troops,  Peters- 
burg, Va.  (mine  explosion).  Bravery  while  acting  as  Regimental 
Color-Sergeant. 

William  Harvey  Carney. — Sergt.  Co.  "C,"  54th  Mass.  Enl.  Volun- 
teers, Fort  Wagner,  S.  C,  July  18,  1863.  When  color-sergeant 
fell,  threw  away  his  rifle,  seized  the  colors  and  led  the  assault. 
Planted  the  colors  on  the  parapet  and  kept  them  flying  there  for 
half  an  hour.  Retreated  under  a  storm  of  shot  and  shell,  be- 
ing three  times  wounded,  but  refused  to  be  sent  to  hospital  or 
to  suiTender  the  flag,  until  it  could  be  placed  in  the  hands  of  the 
survivors  of  his  own  regiment,  and  when  they  cheered  him  in  doing 
so,  simply  replied :  "Boys,  I  only  did  my  duty.  The  old  flag 
never  touched  the  ground." 


APPENDICES  251 


REGULAR   ARMY 


John  Denny. — Sergt,  Troop  9th  U.  S.  Cavah-y,  Los  Animas  Canyon, 
New  Mexico,  Sept.  18,  1879.  Removed  a  wounded  comrade  under 
a  heavy  fire  to  a  place  of  safety. 

Brent  Woods.— Sergt.  Troop  "B,"  9th  U.  S.  Cavalry.  New  Mexico, 
Aug.  19,  1881.  Saved  the  lives  of  his  comrades,  and  the  citizens 
of  the  detachment. 

Thomas  Boyne. — Sergt.  Troop  "C,"  9th  U.  S.  Cavalry.  Mimbus  Moun- 
tain, New  Mexico,  May  29,  1879.  Cuchillo  Negro,  New  Mexico, 
Sept.  27,  1879.     Braveiy  in  action. 

Clinton  Greaves. — Corpl.  Troop  "C,"  9th  U.  S.  Cavalry.  Florida 
Mountains,  New  Mexico,  Jan.  24,  1877.  Gallantry  in  a  hand-to- 
hand  fight. 

Henry  Johnson, — Sergt.  Troop  "D,"  9th  U.  S.  Cavalry.  Milk  River, 
Colorado,  Oct.  2,  1879.  Voluntarily  left  fortified  shelter  and  under 
heavy  fire  at  close  range  made  the  rounds  of  the  pits,  to  instruct 
the  guards.  Fought  his  way  to  the  creek  and  back  to  bring  water 
to  the  wounded. 

Emanuel  Stance. — Sergt.  Troop  "F,"  9th  U.  S.  Cavalry.  Kiekapoo 
Springs,  Texas,  May  20,  1870.     Gallantry  on  scout  after  Indians. 

Moses  Williams.— First  Sergt.  Troop  "I,"  9th  U.  S.  Cavalry.  Foot 
Hills  of  the  Cuchillo  Negro  Mountains,  New  Mexico,  Aug.  16, 
1881.  Rallied  a  detachment,  skillfully  conducted  a  running  fight 
of  three  or  four  hours,  and  by  his  coolness,  bravery  and  unflinch- 
ing devotion  to  duty  in  standing  by  his  commanding  officer,  in  an 
exposed  position,  under  a  heavy  fire  from  a  large  party  of  Indians, 
saved  the  lives  of  at  least  three  of  his  comrades. 

William  0.  Wilson.— Corpl.  Troop  "I,"  9th  U.  S.  Cavalry.  Sioux 
Campaign,  1890.     Bravery. 

Augustus  Walley.— Private  Troop  "I,"  9th  U.  S.  Cavalry.  Cuchillo 
Negro  Mountams,  New  Mexico,  Aug.  16,  1881.  Bravery  in  action 
with  hostile  Apaches. 

George  Jordan.— Sergt.  Troop  "K,"  9th  U.  S.  Cavalry.  Carrizozo 
Canyon,  New  Mexico,  Aug.  12,  1881.  While  commanding  the 
right  of  a  detachment  of  nineteen  men,  stubbornly  held  his  ground 
in  an  extremely   exposed   position   and  gallantly  forced  back  a 


252  APPENDICES 

much  superior  number  of  the  enemy,  preventing  them  from  sur- 
rounding the  command. 

Thomas  Shaw. — Sergt.  Troop  "K,"  9th  U.  S.  Cavalry.  Carrizozo 
Canyon,  New  Mexico,  Aug.  12,  1881.  Forced  the  enemy  back 
after  stubbornly  holding  his  ground  in  an  extremely  exposed  posi- 
tion, and  prevented  the  superior  numbers  from  surrounding  his 
command. 

William  McBryan. — Sergt.  Troop  "K,"  10th  U.  S.  Cavalry.  Arizona, 
March  7,  1890.     Bravery  in  action  with  Apache  Indians. 

Dennis  Bell. — Private  Troop  "H,"  10th  U.  S.  Cavalry.  Tayabacoa, 
Cuba,  June  30,  1898.  After  a  force  had  succeeded  in  landing  and 
had  been  compelled  to  withdraw  to  the  boats,  leaving  a  number  of 
killed  and  wounded  ashore,  he  voluntarily  went  ashore  in  the 
face  of  the  enemy  and  aided  in  the  rescue  of  his  wounded  com- 
rades, who  would  otherwise  have  fallen  into  the  hands  of  the 
enemy;  this  after  several  attempts  had  been  frustrated. 

FiTZ  Lee. — Private  Troop  "M,"  10th  U.S.  Cavalry.  Tayabacoa,  Cuba, 
June  30,  1898.     Record  same  as  that  of  Dennis  Bell. 

William  H.  Thompkins. — Private  Troop  "M,"  10th  U.  S.  Cavalry,  and 
George  Wanton,  same  troop  and  record  as  two  preceding. 

Isaiah  Mays. — Corpl.  Co.  "B,"  24th  U.  S.  Infantry.  Arizona,  May  11, 
1898.  Gallantly  in  fight  between  Paymaster  Wham's  escort  and 
robbers. 

Benjamin  Brown. — Sergt.  Co.  "C,"  24th  U.  S.  Infantry.  Arizona, 
May  11,  1898.  Although  shot  in  the  abdomen  in  a  fight  between 
a  paymaster's  escort  and  robbers,  did  not  leave  the  field  until  again 
wounded  in  both  arms. 

John  H.  Lawson. — Landsman  Z7,  S.  S.  Hartford.  Mobile  Bay,  Aug. 
5,  1864.  Was  one  of  the  six  men  stationed  at  the  shell  whip  on 
the  berth  deck.  A  shell  killed  or  wounded  the  whole  number. 
Lawson  was  wounded  in  the  leg  and  thrown  with  great  violence 
against  the  side  of  the  ship,  but  as  soon  as  he  recovered  himself, 
although  begged  to  go  below,  he  refused  and  went  back  to  the 
shell  whip,  where  he  remained  during  the  action. 

Aaron  Anderson. — Landsman,  U.  S.  S.  Wyandank.  Mattox  Creek, 
March   17,   1865.     Rendered   gallant   assistance,   loading   howitzer 


APPENDICES  253 

..hile  lying  on  his  back,  and  then  firing  with  such  care  and  pre- 
cision as  to  kill  and  wound  many  of  the  rebel  party 

Robert  Blake -Contraband^  U.  S.  S.  Marblehead,  in  engagement 
with  the  rebel  batteries  on  Stone  River,  December  25,  1862,  servin- 
as  a  powder  boy,  displayed  extraordinary  courage,  alacrity  and 
intelligence  m  the  discharge  of  his  duty  under  tiying  circumstances 
and  merited  the  admiration  of  all. 

Clement  DEES.-Seaman  on  the  Pontoosuc.     Cape  Fear  River,  N   C 
Dec.  24,  1864.     Personal  valor.  '  ^  •  ^; 

Joseph  B.  NEiL.-Seaman,  U.  S.  S.  Powhatan.  Norfolk,  Virginia 
Dec.  26,  1873.     Saved  Boatswain  J.  G.  Walton  from  drowning.      ' 

Joachim  PEASE._Seaman,  The  Kearsage,  in  action  with  Alabama  oR 
Cherbourg,  France,  June  19,  1864.  For  marked  coohiess  and  good 
conduct  during  the  engagement. 

Daniel  ATKiNS.-Ship's  cook  (first-class)  Torpedo  Boat  Gushing. 
-beb.  11,  1898.  Saved  from  drowning  Lieut.  Joseph  C.  Brecken- 
bridge. 

Robert  PENN.-Fireman  (first-class)  the  Iowa.  Guantanamo,  Cuba. 
He  hauled  the  fires  of  two  boilers  while  standing  on  a  board 
thrown  across  a  coal  bucket  above  one  foot  of  boiling  water,  and 
while  the  water  was  still  blowing  from  the  boiler  under  120  pounds' 
pressure. 

APPENDIX  H 

The  Freedmen's  Bank 

The  Freedmen's  Savbgs  and  Trust  Co.  was  a  corporation  chartered 
by  Congress,  March  3,  1865.  It  proposed  the  establishment  of  a  cen- 
tral bank  m  Washington,  with  branches  at  different  centers  in  the 
South  for  the  deposits  of  the  lately  emancipated  class.  There  had 
been  army  banks  for  the  deposits  of  the  freedmen  in  some  of  the  mili- 
tary divisions.  These  gave  the  suggestion  for  the  organization  of  the 
corporation. 

During  the  nine  years  in  which  it  was  in  operation  with  thirty-four 
branches,  it  "received  ha  the  aggregate  deposits  amounting  to  $57,000,000 
1  Slave  who  had  escaped  to  the  Union  forces,  not  an  enlisted  man. 


254  APPENDICES 

and  taking  hold  of  the  earnings  of  more  than  70,000  depositors."  To 
safeguard  its  funds  the  original  policy  to  invest  deposits  only  in  Gov- 
ernment bonds  commended  itself  to  citizens  other  than  the  Negro;  ac- 
cordingly many  whites  deposited. 

The  first  misstep  was  when  in  May,  1870,  the  charter  was  amended 
so  that  instead  of  requiring  two-thirds  of  the  deposits  to  be  invested 
exclusively  in  United  States  securities,  one-half  was  subject  to  invest- 
ment at  the  discretion  of  the  trustees  "in  bonds  or  notes  secured  by 
mortgage  on  real  estate  in  double  the  value  of  the  loan."  There  were, 
however,  no  penal  clauses  providing  for  the  infidelity  or  bad  faith  of 
the  officers.  Neither  were  the  trustees  required  to  invest  any  money 
in  the  enterprise  nor  was  any  bond  imposed  upon  them  except  in  a  few 
limited  cases. 

The  trustees  construed  the  discretion  given  them  to  permit  the  trans- 
action of  a  general  banking  business,  and  immense  sums  were  loaned 
on  worthless  securities.  Following  the  panic  of  1873,  the  bank  by  a 
vote  of  the  board  of  trustees  was  closed.  By  special  act  of  Congress 
its  affairs  were  placed  in  the  hands  of  three  commissioners.  The  af- 
fairs of  the  bank  occupied  a  conspicuous  place  in  the  political  cam- 
paigns to  the  purport  that  the  Negro  had  been  robbed  right  under  the 
eye  of  the  Government  by  men,  many  of  them  agents  of  the  Freed- 
men's  Bureau  and  leaders  of  the  Republican  Party  in  the  South. 

Two  Congi'essional  investigations  probed  the  affairs  of  the  bank. 
That  of  the  Senate  by  a  committee  of  which  B.  K.  Bruce  was  chair- 
man, simplified  the  machinery  and  decreased  the  expense  of  winding 
up  its  affairs. 

At  the  time  of  the  closing  of  the  bank  there  were  due  to  depositors 
$2,999,214.33,  less  special  depositors  $35,224.22,  making  subject  to 
dividends  $2,963,990.11  of  which  61  per  cent  have  been  declared. 

APPENDIX     I 

Prudence  CkandaiiL  Incident 

Prudence  Crandall  in  1833  admitted  a  colored  girl  as  a  student  to 
her  Girls'  Boarding  School  at  Canterbury,  Conn.  Notwithstanding 
opposition  by  whites  to  her  retention  Miss  Crandall  refused  to  ex- 


APPENDICES  255 

elude  her,  and  on  the  withdrawal  of  white  patronage  she  defiantly 
opened  a  school  for  colored  girls.  This  intensified  opposition  and 
caused  the  enactment  of  a  law  making  such  a  school  illegal  under 
penalty  of  fine  and  imprisonment.  Miss  Crandall  was  arrested,  tried, 
convicted  and  sentenced.  She  refused  to  pay  the  fine  or  permit  friends 
to  do  so.     She  was  thrust  into  jail,  but  was  subsequently  released. 


BIBLIOGRAPHY 

Libraries  consulted :     Hampton,  Virginia,  Institute,  Howard  University, 
Library  of  Congress,  Public  Library,  Washington,  D.  C. 

Allen,  William  G Wheatley  Banneker  &  Horton 

American  Historical  Record  I . . 

Anderson,  Osbom,  P.  B Voice  from  Harper's  Ferry,  Pamphlet 

Anglo-African  Magazine,  N.  Y.Vol.  I,  1859 

Appleton's  Cyclopedia  Amer- 
ican  Biography Vol.  VI 

Armistead,  WiUson Tribute  for  the  Negro 

Armstrong,  S.  C,  Biograph- 
ical   Study Ed.  Armstrong  Talbot 

Ballagh,   J.    C Slavery   in   Virginia,   Johns   Hopkins 

Bancroft,    George United  States,  Vol.  I 

Eiarnes,  Albeit Inquiry  into  the  Scriptural  Views  of 

Slavery 
Benedict,    David General    History   of   the   Baptist   De- 
nomination   in    America    and    other 
parts  of  the  world 
Birney,    James    G.    and    His 

Times    William  Birney 

Black    Astronomer The  Chautauquan,  1899 

Bledsoe,  A.  T Essay  on  Liberty  and  Slavery 

Brodhead,    John    Romeyn History  of  New  York 

Brooks,  Rev.  Walter  H The  Silver  Bluff  Church 

Brown,  William  Wells The  Black  Man,  Rising  Son 

Bruce,   John    E Defense  of  Colored   Soldiers 

Burke,    Edmund ....European    Settlements    in    America 

257 


258  BIBLIOGRAPHY 

Cable,  George  W Freedmen's  Case  in  Equity 

Catto,  William  T Semi-Centenary 

Chambers,  WiUiam American    Slavery    and    Labor,    115- 

181  App.  I 

Cheever,   G.   B Guilt  of  Slavery 

Child,  Lydia  Myria The  Oasis 

Clarke,  James  Freeman Anti-Slavery  Days 

Cobb,  Thomas  R.  R Inquiry  into  the  Law  of  Negro  Slavery 

Cochin,    A Results  of  Emancipation 

Cook,   George  W Frederick  Douglass 

Cooley,  Heni-y  S Slavery  in  New  Jersey 

Crooks,  J.  J History  of  Sierra  Leone,  London,  1903 

Crummell,  Alexander Africa  and  America 

Crummell,  Alexander Future  of  Africa 

Cuffe,  Paul Brief    Account    of    the     Colony     of 

Sierra  Leone,  N.  Y.,  1812 
Curry,  J.  L.  M Education   of  Negroes  since  1860 

Dawson's  Historical  Magazine 

XVIII    98 

Debates  20th  Congress,  House 

of  Representatives 2  Session,  20,  No.  60 

Delaney,  M.  R .Condition,  Elevation  of  Colored  Peo- 
ple of  U.  S.  since  1852 

Douglass,   Frederick Life  and  Times 

Douglass,  Rev.  William Annals  of  St.  Thomas 

Du  Bois,  William  E.  Burghardt.  Suppression   of  African   Slave  Trade 
Dunlop,    William History  of  New  York  (Vol.  I,  p.  58) 

Easton,  H Treatise  on  the  Intellectual  Charac- 
ter of  the  Colored  People  of  the 
United   States 

Eaton,  John Grant,   Lincoln   and   The   Freedmen 

Evrie  (J.  H.  Van) Negroes   and   Negro    Slavery,   N.    Y., 

1863 

Fiske,  John Critical  Period   of  American  History 


BIBLIOGRAPHY  259 

Garrison  and  His  Times Oliver  Johnson 

Garrison,  Wm.  Lloyd By  his  Sons 

Goodell,  William American  Slave  Code 

Goodeil,  William Slavery  and   Anti-Slavery 

Grant,  U.  S Personal  Memoirs 

Greeley,  Horace History  of  the  American  Conflict  l^ 

Gregorie,    Abbe An  Inquiry  concerning  the  Intellectual 

and  Moral  Faculties  and  Litera- 
ture of  Negroes,  1804 

Grimke,  Archibald  H "Right  on  the  Scaffold" 

Grimke,  Rev.  Francis  J Pamphlets 

Guide  to  American  History E.  Channing  and  A.  B,  Hart 

Hart,  Albert  Bushnell Abolition  and  Slavery 

Heming,   William  Waller Virginia   Statutes   at   Large,   Vol.   I- 

VIII 

Higginson,  Thomas  W Army  Life  in  a  Black  Regiment 

Hildreth,    Richard) Despotism  in  America 

Holmes,    Abdiel American  Annals,  Vol.  I 

Howe,   S.  G Refugees    from    Slavery    in    Canada 

West 
Hurd,    John    C Freedom  and  Bondage 

Jay,    William Miscellaneous  Writings   on   Slavery 

Johnston,    Alexander Labor's  Cyclopedia  of  Science 

Johnston,    Alexander High  School  History,  United  States 

Julian,    George    W Joshua  R.  Giddings 

Langston,    John    M Freedom  and   Citizenship 

"  "        "    From  a  Virginia  Plantation 

Latrobe,  John  H.  B Memoirs  of  Benjamin  Banneker 

Liberator,  The W.   L.   Garrison,  Editor,  Vols.    I,  II, 

III,  IV,  V,  VI,  VII 

Livermore,    George Historical    Research    Opinions   of   the 

Founders  of  the  Republic  on  Ne- 
groes as  Slaves,  as  Citizens  and  as 
Soldiers;  Boston,  1862 


260  BIBLIOGRAPHY 

MacDougall,   Marion    G Fugitive  Slaves 

Mathews,  C.  V His  Life  and  Letters,  Andrew  Ellicott 

May,  S.  J Catalogue  of  Anti-Slavery  Publica- 
tions 

May,    S.    J Recollections     of     Our     Anti-Slavery 

Conflict 

Merriam,    G,    S Nation  and  the  Negro 

Metcalfe,  J.   S The  American  Slave 

Nell,  William  C Colored  Patriots  of  the  Revolution 

New  York,  Historical  Society 

Collection     

Nieolay  and  Hay Abraham  Lincoln 

Niles    Register XXXIV,  191 

North  Star,  The Vol.  I,  Vol.  Ill 

O'Callaghan    History     of     New     Netherlands,    pp. 

384,  385 

Payne,  Daniel  A Recollections  of  70  years 

Pennsylvania   Magazine Philadelphia,  p.  1776 

Phillips,  Archdeacon  Henry  L, Black  Man  in  Colonial  Times 

Ramboin's      Mass.,      Colonial 

Records II,  115,  129,  136,  168,  176;  III,  13, 

46,  58,  69,  84 

Renfro,  Gloster  Herbert Phillis  Wheatley,  A.  M.  E.  Review 

Rhode  Island,  Colonial  Records.  Vol.  V 

Rhodes,  J.  F History  of  the  United  States,  Vol.  I 

Seabury,    Samuel American  Slavery  Justified 

Senate   Documents 24th   Congress,   2   Session,   176 ;   25th 

Congress,  3  Session,  216;  27th  Con- 
gress, 2  Session,  51;  3  Session,  137 

Sherman,    H Slavery  in  the  United  States 

Siebert,  Wm.  H Light  on  the  Underground  Railroad 

Slavery  in  North  Carolina 


BIBLIOGRAPHY  261 

Smedes,    Susan   A Memorials  of  a  Southern  Planter 

Smith,  Captain  John General  History  of  Virginia 

Smith,   J.   McCune Garnet  Memorial  Discourse 

Sojourner    Truth,    Narrative   of 

Stowe,  Harriet  Beecher Sojourner    Truth    the    Libyan    Sibyl, 

Atlantic  Monthly 

Sterner,  Bernard  C History  of  Slavery  in  Connecticut 

Stephenson,  G.  T Race  Distinction  in  American  Law 

Stevens,    William Slave  in  History,  London,  1904 

Steward,    Austin Twenty-two  years  a  Slave  and  Forty 

years  a  Freeman 

Straker,  D.  A Eulogy,  R.  B.  Elliott 

Stroud,  Geo.   M Slave  Laws 

Tanner,  Benj.  T Outlines  of  Government 

Tappan,  Lewis Life  of  Arthur  Tappan 

Tappan,  Lewis Arthur  Tappan  I 

Thorpe,  Francis  Newton Constitutional  History  of  the  Ameri- 
can People,  Vol.  I 

Tremain,    Mary Slavei-y  in  District  of  Columbia 

Trimble,  Robert The  Negro,  North  and  South,  London, 

1863 

Tyson,    Maiy    E Benjamin  Banneker 

Villard,   Oswald   Garrison Negro     in     Regular    Army,     Atlantic 

Monthly,  June,  1903 
Von  Hoist Constitutional  History,  2  vols. 

Ward,   Samuel  Ringgold Autobiography  of  a  Fugitive  Negro 

Washington,   Booker   T Up  From  Slavery 

Williams,  George  W History  of  the  Negro  in  America 

Williams,  George  W History  of  Negro  Troops  in  Rebel- 
lion 

Williams,   Rev.   Peter,   Jr Eulogy,  Paul  Cuffe,  in  1817 

Wilson,  Henry Rise  and  Fall  of  the  Slave  Power 

Wilson,    Joseph    T Black  Phalanx 

Wise,  Henry  A Seven  Decades 


4 


REPORTS 

Cleveland  National  Emigration   Convention  of  Colored  People, 

Aug.  24-26,  1854 
Cincinnati  Convention  Colored  Freemen  of  Ohio,        Jan.  14-19,  1852 
Pennsylvania  Society  for  Promotion  of  Abolition  of  Slavery, 
I  I  ,  Philadelphia,  1838 

Michigan  Minutes  State  Convention,  Detroit,  1843 

Freedmen  of  Dept.  of  Gulf  to  N.  P.  Banks,  Thomas  W.  Conway,  1864 
Spring,   Lindley,  Negro  at  Home;   Inquiry  into   Capacity   for   Self- 
Govemment,  N.  Y.,  1868 


262 


CHRONOLOGY 

1501.  (a)  Letter  of  Columbus  in  existence  referring  to  Negroes  in 
Guinea,  (b)  Instruction  given  to  the  effect  that  Negroes  bom 
in  the  power  of  Christians  to  be  permitted  to  pass  to  the 
Indies  and  royal  revenue  (Spain)  to  receive  money  for  the  per- 
mits.    Sir  Arthur  Helps'  Spanish  Conquest. 

1505.  King  Ferdinand  of  Spain  wrote  to  Ovando,  "I  will  send  more 
Negro  slaves  to  you." 

1510.  He  informed  Don  Diego  Columbus  that  he  had  given  orders  to 
the  officials  at  Seville  that  they  should  send  50  Negroes  to  work 
in  the  mines  at  Hispaniola.  See  Antonio  de  Herrera  royal  his- 
toriographer to  Philip  II. 

1511.  "I  do  not  understand  how  so  many  Negroes  have  died;  take 
much  care  of  them." 

From  the  accession  of  Charles  V  of  Spain  the  importation  of 
Negroes  in  the  West  Indies  became  a  considerable  industry. 

1523.  Monopoly  given  to  Cortez  who  in  the  previous  year  had  with 
him  300  Negro  slaves. 

1528.    Nearly  10,000  in  the  New  World.— Herrera. 

1539.  Francisco  de  Montego  of  Honduras  sent  a  Negro  to  bum  a 
native  village. 

1554.  In  Peru  30  Negroes  accompanied  a  military  force  of  70  Span- 
iards and  Francisco  Hernandez. 

1559.  The  Town  Council  of  Santiago  de  Chile  granted  the  petition  of 
Tome  Vasquez  a  free  or  enfranchised  Negro  to  possess  a  lot  of 
land  in  the  town. 

1526.  St.  Luke's  day,  Oct.  18,  Lucas  Vasque  de  Oyllon  among  the  first 
to  bring  Negroes  to  the  present  territory  of  the  U.  S.  (authority 
of  Navarrete).  He  had  explored  our  Eastern  Coast  and  at- 
tempted to  form  a  colony  at  San  Miguel  de  Gualdape,  since 
known  as  Jamestown,  Va.  Under  his  successor,  a  Porto  Rican, 
the  Negroes  rebelled  and  broke  up  the  settlement.    This  ended 

263 


/ 


264  CHRONOLOGY 

the  first  introduction  of  slavery  in  the  Continental  Territoiy 
of  the  United  States. 

1513.  Vasco  Balboa  was  assisted  by  30  Negroes  in  building  the  first 
ships  on  the  Pacific  Coast. 

1530.  Before  this  time  there  were  enough  Negroes  in  Mexico  to  war- 
rant an  effort  to  liberate  themselves  and  establish  a  Govern- 
ment in  the  City  of  Mexico.     See  H.  H.  Bancroft. 

1570.  The  followers  of  Bayamo,  a  Negro  msurgent,  who  was  cap- 
tured and  sent  back  to  Spain,  founded  Santiago  del  Principe. 

1540.  A  Negro  slave  of  Hernando  de  Alarcon  is  mentioned  as  being 
the  only  one  to  undertake  to  carry  a  message  from  the  Rio  Col- 
orado across  the  country  to  the  Zunis  in  New  Mexico. 

1527.  Estevanico  or  Estevanillo,  a  native  of  Azamon  was  one  of 
the  few  sui-vivors  of  the  expedition  of  Narvaez.  In  1539  with 
Friar  Marcos  de  Niga  they  started  out  from  Estevan,  started 
out  alone  and  discovered  Cibola,  one  of  the  seven  cities. 
Clements  R.  Markham  says,  'This  is  one  instance  of  a  Negro 
having  taken  an  important  part  in  the  exploration  of  the  con- 
tinent.    Estalevan  was  the  discoverer  of  Cibo." 

IMPORTANT  EVENTS  SINCE  ABOLITION  OF  THE  AFRICAN  SLAVE   TRADE 

War  of  1812 :  Enlistment  of  Negroes  in  Navy ;  Gen.  Jackson's  Proclama- 
tion at  Battle  of  New  Orleans. 
1816.    Organization  African  Colonization  Society. 

1816.  A.  M.  E.  Church  Connectional  organization. 

1817.  Convention  of  colored  men  to  protest  against  American  Coloniza- 
tion Society. 

1820.  Missouri  Compromise.  A.  M.  E.  Zion  Church  forms  connec- 
tion. 

1822.    Denmark  Vesey  Insurrection,  Charleston,  S.  C. 

1827.    Freedom's  Journal,  fii'st  Negro  newspaper. 
Emancipation  in  New  York  completed. 

1830.  First  National  Colored  Convention. 

1831.  Nat  Turner  Insurrection. 

1833.  American  Anti-Slavery  Society. 

1834.  Prudence  Crandall  Incident. 

1835.  Mobbing  of  Gamson  by  "Broadcloth  Mob." 


CHRONOLOGY  265 

1839.  Amistad  Captives. 

1841.  Advent  of  Frederick  Douglass.  ^ 

1847.  ''The  North  Star." 

1850.  Fugitive  Slave  Law. 

1852.  "Uncle  Tom's  Cabin." 

1853.  National  Convention  at  Rochester,  N.  Y. 

1854.  Kansas-Nebraska  Law,  1853. 
1857.  Dred  Scott  Decision. 

1859.  John  Brown  Raid. 

1860.  Nomination  and  Election — Abraham  Lincoln.  .--" 

1862.  Opinion  Edward  Bates,  Attorney  General. 

1863.  Emancipation  District  of  Columbia. 
1863.  Emancipation  Proclamation,  Jan.  1. 
1863.  Attack  Port  Hudson. 

1863,  Attack  on  Fort  Wagner,  July. 

1865.  Fall  of  Richmond;  13th  Amendment  passes  Congress. 

1866.  Civil  Rights,  April  9 ;  adoption  of  13th  Amendment. 

1867.  Organization   of   Howard   University,   March   2;   Atlanta   Uni- 
versity, Nov.  15. 

1868.  Fourteenth  Amendment;  adoption  of  14th  Amendment. 

1869.  First  U.  S.  Officer  appointed  by  President  Grant. 

1870.  Election  of  H.  R.  Revels;   Seating  of  Raiuey;  Adoption  15th 
Amendment,  March  30. 

1874.  Death  of  Charles  Sumner. 

1874.  Failure  Freedmen's  Bank. 

1875.  Seating  of  B.  K.  Bruce,  full  term  in  U.  S.  Senate. 

1877.  Inauguration    of    Hayes;    withdrawal    of   U.    S.    Troops    from 

South. 

1883.  Unconstitutionality  of  Civil  Rights  Bill  pronounced  by  U.   S. 

Supreme  Court. 

1890.  Mississippi  Convention  to  nullify  15th  Amendment. 

1892.  Second  Election  of  Grover  Cleveland. 

1893.  Death  of  D.  A.  Payne;  Jos.  C.  Price. 

1895.  Death  of  Frederick  Douglass;  B.  T.  Washington  at  Atlanta. 

1897.  Organization  American  Negro  Academy. 

1898.  Spanish-American  War, 


INDEX 


^/^ 


INDEX 


\ 


Abyssinian   Baptist   Church,    61 
Africa,   77,   86,   98,    132,    235,   237, 

238,  239 
Adams,   John   Quincy,   21 
African   Baptist   Church,   Williams- 
burg, Va.,   17 
Society,  Free,  17 
Methodist   Episcopal   Church,   20 
Methodist  Episcopal  Zion  Church, 

20 
Masonic  Lodge,    17 
Missionary   Convention,   70 
Emigration,  44 
Afro-American  Council,  40 
Alabama,   Third   Regiment,   58 
Albany  Law   School,   156 
Alexander  High  School,  235 
Alexander,  Dr.,  68 
Allen,   Richard,   17,  28,   29,   30,   64, 

68,  69 
America,  South,  2 

National   Baptist  Convention,   70 
American  Colonization   Society,   19, 
30,  237 
Anti-Slavery  Society,  21,  76,  117 
Negro  Academy,  13,  133,  227,  238 
Philological    Society,    238 
Amendments  to  Constitution,    13th, 
24;    14th,  24,  71;    15th,  24,   71 
Ames,  Gen.  Adelbert,  165 
Amistad.  Captives,  21,  Appx. 
Anglo-Saxon  Christianity,  Appx. 

269 


Antietam,  54 

Arkansas,  47 

Armistead,  Rev.  Thomas,  64 

Armstrong,  Gen.  S.  C,  200,  202, 
205,  207 

Atlanta,  Ga.,  208,  209 

Atlanta  University,  25 

Appropriation,    Congressional,    208 

Arnold,  the  historian,  51 

Asbury,  Rev.  Francis,  64 

Attakapas,  53 

Attempts  to  have  United  States  Su- 
preme Court  rule  on  revised 
constitutions,   49 

Augusta,  Ga.,  63 

Avery  College,   128 

Bannekeb,  Benjamin,  birth  and 
ancestry,  86;  early  education, 
87;  constructs  clock,  88;  self- 
instructor,  89;  plans  almanac, 
89;  as  social  being,  94;  sur- 
veyor, 90;  observes  flour  mills, 
88;  George  Ellicott,  89;  An- 
drew Ellicott,  90;  mathematical 
genius,  89;  resemblance  to 
Franklin,  96 ;  musician,  95 ;  let- 
ter to  Thomas  Jefferson,  92; 
Latrobe's  memoir,  91;  last 
days,  96 

Banks,  Charles,  74 

Baptist  Educational  Oonvention,  70 


270 


INDEX 


Barbadoes,  James  G.,  44 

Bearcroft,  Dr.,  7 

Beatty,  Powhattan,  56 

Battleship,  Maine,  57 

Bethel  (A.  M.  E.)  Church,  62,  64 

Bias,  Dr.  J.  J.  Gould,  40 

Bibb,  Henry,  43 

Bishop,    Hosea    (Josiah),    64 

Black  Regiment,  The,  55 

"Black  Women  of  the  South,"   133 

Black  Laws  of  Ohio,  37 

Blackburn,  Rev.  Gideon,  65 

Blair,  Lewis  11.,  75 

Blyden,  Edward  Wilmot,  birth, 
235 ;  educational  ambitions, 
235;  visits  United  States,  235; 
disappointed,  goes  to  Liberia, 
235;  Alexander  High  School, 
235;  revisits  United  States — 
"Liberia's  Offering,"  235;  would 
burn  Astor  House  down,  236; 
admired  by  Rt.  Rev.  Alonzo 
Potter — Sir  H.  H.  Johnston's 
estimate — visits  Egypt,  Syria 
and  Palestine — returns  to 
Sierra  Leone,  236;  looker-on  at 
Republican  National  Conven- 
tion of  1880— "Christianity, 
Islam  and  the  Negro  Race" — 
Hugh  M.  Browne  and  J.  Mc- 
Cants  Stewart,  237 ;  educational 
■work  among  Mohammedans — 
Liberian  representative  at 
Court  of  St.  James,  237;  lin- 
guistic accomplishments — ac- 
corded literary  honors — distin- 
guished correspondents — James 
Carmichael  Smith's  tribute  may 
be  verdict  of  posterity,  238 ;  ad- 
mitt-ed  to  pension  roll  because 
of    distinguished    service,    238 


Boker,  George  H.,  55 

Bonsai,   Stephen,   59 

Boston  Blues,  60 
Massacre,  50 

Bowdoin  College,  27 

Bowen,  Dr.  J.  W.  E,,  169 

Boyd,  R.  H.,  73 

Brougham,   Henry  Lord,  238 

Brown,  John,   22 

Brooks,  Rev.  Walter  H.,  03 

Bryant,  Ira  I.,  73 

Browne,  Hugh  M.,  237 

Brown,   W.  G.,  26 

Brathwaite,  S.  G.,  74 

Bronson,  James  H.,  56 

Butler,  Gen.  Benjamin  F.,  56 

Bncks  of  America,  60 

Bull   Run,   battle  of,   54 

Bruce,  Blanche  K.,  changes  name — 
printer's  de%al — ex-Congress- 
man's surprise,  164 ;  delegate  to 
Republican  National  Conven- 
tion of  1872 — ^Hill's  prophecy — 
unique  campaign,  166;  election 
and  qualification  as  United 
States  Senator — Roscoe  Conk- 
ling's  courtesy — how  remem- 
bered— Senatorial  service,  168; 
pioneer  teacher  in  Kansas — at- 
tends Oborlin — steamboat  hand 
— drifts  to  Mississippi,  enters 
politics,  165;  career  since 
1881 — Register  of  Treasury, 
168;  Recorder  of  Deeds,  169; 
lyceum  lecturer,  169 ;  trustee 
Howard  University,  170;  trus- 
tee of  public  schools,  Washing- 
ton, D.  C,  169;  commissioner 
World's  Cotton  Exposition — 
once  more  Register  of  Treas- 
ury— personality,   170 


INDEX 


271 


Bruce,  John  E.,  74 
Burroughs,  Nannie  H.,  73 
Business   League,   72,   211 
Bryan,  Andrew,  63,  66 

Cable,  George  W.,  75 
Cailloux,   Captain,   55 
California,  21 
Cardozo,   Thomas   W..   26 

Francis  L.,  180 
Carey,    Lott,    67 
Carney,    Sergeant    William    H.,    55, 

appx 
Cavalry,  Ninth,  57,  59 

Tenth,  57,  59 
Charles    V,    2 
Chase,  Salmon  P.,  37 
Chavis,  John,  68 
Chatham,   Canada,  West,   44 
Clark,   Howell's  Prophecy,  209 
Clark,  Peter  H.,  36 
Clarkson,  Thomas,  100 
Chesnutt,   Charles   W.,   74 
Charleston  Leader,  179 
Cibola,   Seven  Cities  of,   1 
"Cleopatra,"  11 
Clay,   Henry,   19 
Clinton,  Bishop  George  W.,  73 
Colored  Ministers'  Union,   118 

Civil   rights   Law   enacted,   23 

Rights  Congress,  23 
Cleveland,   President,    158 
Collins,  Henry  M.,  43 

Levi,  118 
Colored  men  in  Congress — 

Blanche,  K.  Bruce,  47,  164,  etc 

Cain,  Richard  H.,  48,   179 

Cheatham,  Henry  P.,  47 

DeLarge,  Robert  C,  48 

Elliott,  Robert  B.,  47,  179,  etc 

Haralson,   Jeremiah,   48 

Hyman,  John  A.,  47 


Langston,  John  M.,   47,   155,  etc. 

Long,   Jefferson,   48 

Lynch,  John  R.,  48 

Miller,   Thomas   E.,  48 

Murray,   George  W.,  48 

Nash,  Charles  E.,  48 

O'Hara,  James  E.,  47 

Ransier,  Alonzo  J,  48 

Revels,  Hiram  R.,  47 

Rainey,  Joseph  H.,  48 

Rapier,  J.  T.,  48 

Smalls,  Robert,  48,  appx. 

Turner,  Benjamin  S.,  48 

Walls,  Josiah  T.,  48 

White,  George  N.,  47 
Colburn,  D.  P.,  214 

Secretary   French   Academy,   94 
Congressional  appropriation,  208 

fight  against  Andrew  Johnson,  23 

emancipation  constitutional  enact- 
ments. 23 
Conkling,  Roscoe,  courtesy   W.  B.  K. 

Bruce,  168 
Constitutional  compromises,   18 

League,   75 
Connecticut,  slavery  in,  4 

deputy  governors,  50 
Cooper,  Mrs.  Anna  J.,   169 
Cosgrove,    Representative,    164-5 
Coker,   Rev.   Daniel,   66 
Colver    Institute,    25 
Corbin,  Henry  S.,   58 
Carney,   William   H.,   55,   appx. 
Ciandall,  Prudence,   31,  appx. 
Coppin,  Fanny  M.  J.,  freedom  pur- 
chased— enters    D.    A.    Payne's 
domestic   service,    213;    Colbun 
instructor,  214;  Oberlin  College, 
at,  gives  scholarship,  215;  Pres- 
ident  Finney   gives   special   op- 
portunity,   215;     instructor    at 


272 


INDEX 


Institute  for  Colored  Youth, 
215;  principal;  Colored  Wom- 
en's Exchange,  216;  Home  for 
Girls  and  Young  Women;  po- 
litical factor;  orator;  services 
recognized,  217;  Old  Folks' 
Home,  218;  visits  England; 
marriage,  217;  goes  to  South 
Africa,  218;  vrork  in  America 
greets  her  there;  "Reminis- 
cences," 218 
Cook,  John  F.  (first),  conspicuous 
figure  in  education  of  colored 
Washington,  229;  Andrew  EUi- 
cott,  Pierre  L'Enfant,  228; 
George  Bell,  Nicholas  Franklin 
and  Moses  Liverpool,  pioneer 
philanthropists,  228 ;  Provi- 
dence Hospital,  228;  Columbia 
Institute,  229;  Resolute  Bene- 
ficial Society,  229;  Henry 
Smothers,  John  W.  Prout,  229; 
Missouri  Compromise,  229 ; 
Harmony  Cemetery,  230;  Union 
Bethel  and  Fifteenth  Street 
Presbyterian  Church,  230; 
Grand  United  Order  of  Odd 
Fellows,  Ministers'  Council,  230 
John  F.  (second),  early  teacher, 
New  Orleans,  political  activ- 
ity, collector  of  taxes,  city  reg- 
ister, 230;  Republican  National 
Convention,  231 ;  relief  of  desr 
titute  colored  women  and  chil- 
dren, 230;  Grand  Master  of 
Masons,  231;  Grant,  Hayes, 
Garfield  and  Arthur  recognize 
his  ability,  230 ;  trustee  Howard 
University,  231;  Coleridge-Tay- 
lor Choral  Society,  231;  mem- 
ber Board  of  Education 


George  F.  T.,  distinctive  educa- 
tional career,  Oberlin  College, 
first  legislation,  law  amended, 
people  defeat  hostile  amend- 
ment, Rev.  J.  Sella  Martin, 
233;  Enmia  V.  Brown,  231;  J. 
Ormond  Wilson  and  W.  B. 
Powell,  234;  J.  W.  F.  Smith, 
233 

Cufi'e,  Paul,  ancestry,  protests  tax 
payment,  98 ;  studies  naviga- 
tion, early  experiments,  re- 
sourcefulness, 99;  sails  for 
Africa,  100;  visits  England, 
sees  Liverpool,  Granville 
Sharpe,  Thomas  Clarkson  and 
Wilberforee,  100;  organizer  re- 
lief societies,  pioneer  American 
colonists,  his  contribution, 
visits  President  Madison,  takes 
cargo  for  Sierra  Leone,  101; 
personal  appearance,  102;  over- 
comes many  racial  prejudices, 
102;  religious  character,  per- 
sonal example 

Cornish,  Rev.  Samuel  E.,  27 

Council  of  war,  50 

Crummell,  Alexander,  birth  and  an- 
cestry, 130;  in  convention 
movement,  34,  39;  early  edu- 
cation, Canaan,  New  Hamp- 
shire, 130;  Beriah  Green, 
Oneida  Institute,  130;  General 
Theological  Seminary.  131; 
Bishops  Griswold  and  Lee,  131; 
goes  abroad,  131;  visits  and 
matriculates  at  Queen's  College, 
Cambridge,  England,  132;  Afri- 
can missionary,  132;  returns  to 
United  States,  132;  Bishop 
Whittingham,  137;   St.  Mary's, 


INDEX 


273 


St.  Luke's  P.  E.  Church,  137; 
lecturer,  controversialist,  au- 
thor, 132;  Rev.  J.  L.  Tucker, 
D.D.,  133;  Ministers'  Union, 
133;  Church  Work  among  Col- 
ored People  Movement,  133; 
Negro  Academy,  134;  visits 
Queen's  Jubilee,  138;  system- 
atic habits  of  work,  138; 
optimism  and  prophecy,  138; 
ripest   literary   scholar,    137 

Cuban  independence,  15,  57 

Coates,  Benjamin,  236 

Davis,  John,  52 

Day,  William  Howard,  39,  42 

Decatur,  Commodore,  51 

Declaration  of  Independence,  10 

Delaney,  Martin  P.,  38,  39,  42,  44 

Denmark,  Vesey,   12,  21 
abolition  slave  trade,  18 

District   of   Columbia,   23 

Dixon,   Thomas,  72 

Dodge,  William  E.,  Price  patron, 
176 

Donop,  Count,  51 

Douglass,  Frederick,  earliest  recol- 
lections, mother's  visits,  Hugh 
and  Thomas  Auld,  Columbia 
orator,  140;  Richard  Anthony, 
141;  Edward  Covey,  142-143; 
apprenticed  as  caulker,  143; 
Beverly  Waugh,  140;  Sunday 
Schools,  disguise  as  fugitive, 
"Lady  of  the  Lake,"  gives 
name,  144;  first  visit  to  anti- 
slavery  meeting,  144;  begins 
career  as  orator,  S.  R.  Ward, 
14.9;  "My  Narrative,"  146; 
visit  to  Europe,  146;  incident 
on    shipboard,    146;    emancipa- 


tion affected,  147;  returns  to 
United  States,  starts  North 
Star,  meets  foremost  English 
statesman  and  philanthropist, 
147 ;  presides  over  Rochester 
Convention,  38;  in  colored  con- 
ventions, Mrs.  Stowe  and  in- 
dustrial education,  148;  oppo- 
nent of  colonization,  meets  John 
Brown,  narrow  escape  from  ar- 
rest by  Governor  Henry  A. 
Wise,  149;  second  visit  to  Eu- 
rope, return  to  America,  advo- 
cates Negro  enlistments,  150; 
assassination  of  Lincoln,  150; 
repudiates  Andrew  Johnson, 
delegate  to  Loyalist  Conven- 
tion, 151;  advocates  recon- 
struction in  enemy's  country, 
151;  first  colored  appointment 
by  President  Grant,  152;  re- 
moves to  Washington  and  edits 
New  National  Era,  152;  secre- 
tary Commission  San  Domingo, 
152;  Presidential  elector  and 
president  Freeamen's  Bank  and 
tnjstee  Howard  University, 
152;  becomes  United  States 
marshal,  recorder  of  deeds. 
United  States  Minister  to 
Haiti,  Haitian  commissioner 
Columbian  World  Exposition, 
153 ;  death  and  funeral  cere- 
monies, 153;  memorials,  statue 
Rochester,  medallion  State 
Capitol,  Albany,  N.  Y.,  Cedar 
Hill,  a  prophecy  realized,   153 

Douglass,  Robert,  28 

Douglas.  Stephen  A.,  22 

Dred    Scott  Decision,   22 

DuBois,  W.  E.  B.,  73 


274 


INDEX 


Dykes,  Mrs.  Charles  Bartlett,  fore- 
word 

Dutch  relaxation  of  slavery,  8 

Dunbar,  Paul  Laurence,  birth  and 
parentage,  188;  early  habit  of 
writing,  188 ;  defect  of  advanced 
training  remedied,  contributor 
to  magazines,  first  book  pub- 
lished, Dr.  H.  A.  Tobey  early 
patron,  189;  voice  of  the  new 
singer,  first  reception  in  honor, 
World's  Columbian  Exposition, 
Frederick  Douglass  as  patron, 
W.  D.  Howells,  excels  in  dia- 
lect and  plantation  stories,  190; 
Library  World's  Best  Litera- 
ture, 191;  trip  to  England,  Li- 
brary of  Congress,  marriage, 
193;  The  Haunted  Oak,  193; 
early  demise,  193;  tells  story  of 
his  work  and  recognition,   191 

Dunmore,  Lord,  50 

Durham,  Dr.  James,  82 

Early  incident  of  Civil  War,  242 
EUicott,  Andrew,  irieud  of  Banne- 
ker,  90 
George,  patron  of  Banneker,  89 
Elliott,  Robert  Brown,  West  Indian 
ancestry,  British  training, 
printer,  editor  Charleston 
Leader,  legal  training,  179; 
reconstruction  legislation,  de- 
feats proposition  to  pay  slave 
owners'  claims,  becomes  power 
in  Palmetto  State  politics,  180; 
Congressional  career,  48,  182; 
answers  Alexander  H.  Stephens 
and  other  Democrats,  182;  as 
lawyer,  183,  186;  eulogist  of 
Charles   Sumner,    185;    resigna- 


tion from  Congress  and  highest 
political  aspirations  defeated, 
186;  linguistic  accomplish- 
ments, 187;  Douglass'  high  es- 
timate, 187;  premature  death, 
187;  ex  parte  Tilda  Morris, 
State  vs.  Samuel  Lee,  186; 
chairman  National  Civil  Rights 
Convention  Colored  Men,  186; 
civil  rights  discussion,  182; 
attorney  general  for  State, 
186 

Estevan,    1. 

Establishment  of  Ante-helium  Col- 
lege for  Colored  Men,  39 

El   Caney,   59. 

Ecumenical  Conference,  173. 

Emancipation  Proclamation,   23. 

Equal  Rights  League,  45,  156. 

Emerson,  Ralph  Waldo,  157. 

Ewing,  Rev.  Quincy,  75. 


Faustin,    Emperor   of   Haiti,   44. 
Federal  territory,  90. 
Finney,  Charles  G.,  215. 
Finch,   Earl   E.,   74. 
First  Baptist  Church,  St.  Louis,  61. 
Bryan  Baptist  Church,  63. 
Independent     Military    Company, 

59. 
Presbyterian     Church     organized, 

65. 
Mississippi  Regiment,  55. 
Teachers,   25. 

Baptist    Church     (white),    Ports- 
mouth, Va.,  64. 
Fifty-fourth      Massachusetts      Regi- 

vjnent.   55 
Fitzherbert,   Sergt.,  legal  instructor 
of  Elliott,   179 


J 


INDEX 


275 


Fleetwood,  Maj.  Christian  A.,  55  & 

Appx. 
Fisk  University,  25 
Floreyville  Star,  167 
Forten,  James,  28 
Fort  Griswold,  51 
Fort  Harrison,  55 
Fort  Pillow,   54 
Florida,  readmission,  47 
Fortune,  T.   Thomas,   74 
France  Abolishes   Slave  Trade,    18 
Franchise,  first  given,  24 
Franchise,   Elective  present  control, 

49 
Franklin,  Benjamin,  against  Slavery 

10 
Resemblance   of   Banneker,   96 
Free   African   Society,   17 
Freedom's  Journal,  27 
Freeman,  Jordan,  51 
Freedmen's   Bank,   Appendix,   253 
Freedmen's   Bureau,   Appendix,   248 
Free  Labor  Stores,  33 
Freetown,  Sierra  Leone,  W.  A.,  100, 

101,    102 
French  and  Indian  War,  50 
Fuller,   Solomon  C,  73 
Fugitive  Slave  Law,   12 

Gabriel,  General,  11 

Gardiner,   Peter,   25 

Garfield,  President,  157 

Garnet,  Henry  Highland,  227 
Convention  Address  to  Slaves, 
126;  Magna  Charta  of  princi- 
ples, 127;  Birth  and  Ancestry 
— U.  G.  R.  R.— Early  educa- 
tional aspirations — founder  of 
Presbyterian  Church  and  Edi- 
tor, 127;   Boyhood  companions 


who  became  famous — natural 
orator;  pastor  of  Washington 
pulpit;  preaches  in  House  of 
Representatives;  Memorial  vol- 
ume, 128;  becomes  College 
president;  returns  to  N.  Y. 
pastorate;  potential  political 
leader;  honored  by  nomination 
and  confirmation  as  Liberian 
Minister;  last  visit  to  Wash- 
ington and  ominous  prophecy 
—The   End,    129 

Garrison,   William  Lloyd,  33 

Mission  to  Europe,  28;  Passen- 
ger with  Bishop  Payne,  124; 
Aroused  by  Douglass,  144 

Germans  and  Slavery,  4 

Germantown        Quakers'        Protest 
against  Slavery,  4 

General  Educational  Board,  26 
Theological  Seminary,   131 

Georgia,  readmission,  47 

Gettysburg,   54 

Gibbs,  Jonathan  C,  Superintendent 
of  Schools,  26,  65 

Gilchrist,  Samuel,  56 

Gladstone,   Wm.   Ewart,   238 

Gloucester,  Rev.  John,   28,  65 

Gold   Coast,   West  Africa,    34 

Golphin,  Rev.  Ventor,  63 

Great  Britian  abolishes  Slave  Trade, 
18 

Green,   Beriah,   president  of  Oneida 
Institute,  45,  127,   131 

Green.  Rev.  Augustus  R.,  41 

Green,   Colonel,  51 

Grice,     Hezekiah,     convention    pro- 
moter, 28,  30,  45 

Grimkg,  Archibald  H.,  13,  74 
Rev.  Francis  J.,  74 


276 


INDEX 


Griswold,     Bishop,     ordains     Alex. 
Crummell,    131 

Havana,  57 

Hawkins,    Sir    John,    Slave    Trade 
Pioneer,  2 

Ashbie  W.,   73 
Haiti,  Bishop  of,  Appx. 

J.  T.,  44 
Haitian  Emigration,  44 
Hall,  Prince,  17 

Hampton,    Wade,    revolutionizes    S. 
C.  politics,  186 

Normal    and    Agricultural    Insti- 
tute organized,  25 

B.  T.   Washington  enters,   199 
Hayes,  President,  153,  158 
Hancock,  John,  60 
Hand  Fund,  26 
Harper's  Ferry,  44 
Harvard,  210 
Hart,  Wm,  H.  H.,  73 
Hardwicke,  Lord,  6 
Haygood,  Rev.  Attieus  G.,  75 
Harrison,  Benjamin,  widow,  7 

Fort,  55 
Hayne,  Governor  of  S.  C,  15 
High  Holbom  Academy,  179 
Hill,  James  H.,  166 
Hilton,  Flag  Sergeant,  55  and  Appx. 
Holland,  Milton  M.,  56  and  Appx. 
Holly.   James  Theodore,   43,  Appx., 

241 
Hood,  James  W.,  Supt.  of  Schools, 
N.  C, 

Bishop  A.  M.  E.  Zion  Church,  26 

Eulogy  on  J.  C.  Price,  177 
Hopkins,  Johns,  210 
Hope,  John,  73 
Howard,   F.    O.,    156,    157,    158 

University,  25 


Hosier,  Harry,  66 
Howells,   William  D.,    190 
Hudson,  Port,  54 
Hull,    I.,   51 
Hunter,  Gen.  David,  54 
Hunt,  Gov.  Ward,  42 
Huntington,  Collis  P.,  176 
Huntingdon,  Lady,   80 
Hyman,  John   A.,  47 
Hyppolite,    President,   44 

Illinois,  58 

Immunes,    7th,   8th,    9th,   and    10th 

Regiments,  68 
Indian  House,  Father,  202 
Indiana,  First,  58 
Infantry,   Twenty-fourth,   57,   59 

Twenty-fifth,  57,  59 
Institute,    Colored    Youth — Blyden, 

236 
Iowa,  Twenty-third,  55 
Iron  Chest  Co.,  37 

Jennings,  Thomas  L.,  29 

Joiner,  William  A.,  73 

Jones,  Absalom,   17,  28,  64 

Jones,  Joshua  H.,  73 

Johnson,    President,    23,    151,    157, 

233 
Just,   E.   E.,   74 
Jackson,  President,  52,  53 

Kansas,  Twenty-third,  58 
Knox,  Rev.  J.  P.,  235 

La  Bresa,  2 
La  Guasimas,  59 
Lake  Erie  Victory,  52 
Lane   Seminary,  34 
Laney,  Lucy,  73 

Langston,  John  M.,  in  Congress,  45, 
47,  notable  speech,   37;    Ances- 


I 


INDEX 


277 


<5- 


try,  revolutionary — sent  to 
Ohio — Allen  G.  Thurman  pre- 
vents kidnaping,  155;  enters 
and  graduates  from  Oberlin; 
George  W.  Whipple,  Albany 
Law  School,  156;  Admission  to 
bar,  156;  Preliminary  career; 
war  recruiting  officer — Gen.  J. 
A.  Garfield — President  Lincoln, 
156;  Inspector  General  Freed- 
men's  Schools — Gen.  0.  O. 
Howard — Chief  Justice  Chase, 
156;  Moves  to  Washington; 
Heads  Equal  Rights  League, 
156;  Howard  University  Law 
School  —  Charles  Sumner  — 
Ralph  Waldo  Emerson,  157; 
Board  of  Health,  158;  John- 
son's Tender,  157;  Minister  to 
Haiti,  158;  Antagonized  by 
Mahone,  Virginia,  N.  &  C,  In- 
stitute, 158;  Candidate  for 
Congress,  159;  Subsequent  ca- 
reer; Family  Life  and  Coinci- 
dences, 159;  Dramatic  Situa- 
tion, 160;  Dr.  Rankin's  pen  por- 
trait,   163 

Langston,    Charles   H.,   41 

Lawrence,   Kansas,    165 

Latrobe,  John  H.  B.,  96 

Lee,    Bishop    and    Alex.    Crummell, 
131 
Gen.  Fitzhugh  Lee,  58 

Levering,  William,  136 

Liberator,  Tlie,   11 

Liberia   Mission    refused,    175 

Liberty  Guards,  60 

Libyan  Sibyl,  113 

Leile,  George,    17,   66 


Lincoln,  President,  122,  156 
Lincoln    University,    172 
Liverpool,    visited    by    Paul    Cuff6, 

100,    101 
Livingstone  College,   173,   175 
Louisiana  Ninth,   55 

Eleventh,  55 

Baptist  Association,  69 

Second  Guards,  54 
Lowe,  Rev.  Kelly,  63 
Lynch,  John  R.,  48 
Lundy,   Benjamin,   28 

Makshall,   Rev.   Abraham,  63 
McCradey,  Csesar,  63 
Maiden,   West  Virginia,   196,  201 
Madison,  President,  101 

Wisconsin,   207 
Monroe,   President,  53 
McKinley,  President,  57,  58 
Maryland,  3 
Massachusetts,        recognition        of 

slavery,  4 
Manual  Training  School,  31 
Mason  and  Dixon's  Line,  25,  58 
Maine,   7 

Missouri  Compromise,  27 
Morgan,  S.  C,  200 
Mansfield,  Lord,  6 
Massasoit  Guards,   60 
Massachusetts     Historical     Society, 

60 
Mahone,  William,   163 
McHeury,  James,  91 
Mental   Feasts,  33 
Milliken's  Bend,  54,  55 
Mutual   Relief   Societies,   100 
Miner  Moralists'  Society,  115 
Mitchell,  John  G.,  122 

John,  Jr.,  74 


\\ 


278 


INDEX 


Mississippi,    B.    K.    Bruce,    consti- 
tutional revision,  71 
Montgomery,  Major,  47 
Morell,  Junius  C,  29 
Morris,   Edward  H.,  73 
Maine,  battleship,  57 
Mohammedan  religion,  237 
Monroe,  Rev.  William,  43 

New  Orleans,  5 

New  York 

New  Market  Heights,  56 

North   Carolina,   3 

Narvaez,  1 

National    Association    Advancement 

Colored  People,  76 
Council,   1853,    1895,  40 
Medical   Association,   72 
New  York,  Greater,  land  holdings, 

41,  42 
North  Star,  39 
New  Haven,  11 
Newburg,  64 

New  Jersey  abolishes  slavery,  10 
New  Y'^ork  abolishes  slavery,  10 
New   Hampshire  abolishes   slavery, 

10 
New  Mexico  organized,  22 
Nat  Turner  Insurrection,  13,  27 
New  York  Draft  Riots,  34 
Plot,  12 

Entry  of  slavery  in,  4 
New  Jersey,  4 

New  England,  size  of  farms,  5 
Negro    population,    distribution    in 

1775,   5 
Negro      Insurrections       (see      also 

Slave),  15 
Appearance  after  nightfall,  6 
freedom  by  statute,  6 
Niger   Valley,   West   Africa,   44 
Negro  in  colonial  militia,  50 


enlistments.  Revolutionary  War, 
50 

New  York  claim  on  Vermont,   10 

New  Hampshire,  second  recognition 
of  slaveiy,  4 

Northampton,  Mass.,  white  con- 
stituency in  negro  convention, 
39 

Nash,  Charles  E.,  48 

Northway  River  (see  Slave  Insur- 
rections), 15 

North  Carolina,  readmission,  47 

New  England  Convention,  36 

North  Star,  35,  39,  147 

New  National  Era,   152 

Ohio  Equal  Rights  League,  37 
Oberlin  College,  Langston,  155,  156, 
159 
Bruce,  165;   Mrs,  Coppin,  215 

Packenham,  Gen.,  killing  of,  53 

Page,  Inman  E.,  73 

Payne,  Daniel  A.,  birth  and  par- 
entage, 115;  early  training,  in- 
tellectua,l  precocity,  115;  fa- 
vorite books,  begins  teaching, 
erects  building,  self-instructor 
in  Geography,  English  Gram- 
mar and  Natural  Sciences,  116; 
an  investigator  who  inspires 
pupils,  rapid  progress  in  Latin, 
French  and  Greek,  116; 
thorough  instruction  of  pupils 
causes  dread,  all  schools  for 
colored  children  forbidden  by 
law,  leaves  for  North,  117;  re- 
ception by  Rev.  Peter  Williams 
and  Alex.  Crummell  in  New 
York,  enters  Gettysburg  Semi- 
nary, 117;  licensed  in  1837,  or- 


INDEX 


279 


dained  in  1839,  accepts  call  to 
Presbyterian  Church  in  Troy, 
refuses  offor  of  American  Anti- 
Slavery  Society,  117;  energy 
brings  physical  disability ;  opens 
private  school  in  Philadelphia, 
joins  A.  M.  E.  Church,  enters 
Philadelphia  Conference  and 
the  Itinerancy,  118;  "Domestic 
Education,"  "Education  of 
Ministry,"  "A.  M.  E.  Semi-Cen- 
tenary," "Recollections  of 
Seventy  Years,"  "History  A. 
M.  E.  Church,"  124;  first  pas- 
tor Israel,  Washington,  D.  C, 
and  gives  bond  $1000,  forms 
first  pastors'  association,  at- 
tends General  Conference  of 
1844,  chairman  Committee  of 
Education,  course  of  study, 
118;  founds  Home  and  Foreign 
Missionary  Society,  pastorate 
in  Baltimore,  Benjamin  Ban- 
neker  a  study,  119;  establishes 
school  in  Philadelphia,  120; 
starts  to  Louisiana  in  1846, 
appointed  church  historian, 
travels  throughout  country, 
elected  bishop,  establishes  first 
bishops'  council  and  organizes 
literary  and  historical  associ- 
ations,. 120;  secures  Mrs.  Cop- 
pin  scholarship  to  enter  Ober- 
lin,  120;  visits  President 
Lincoln,  consults  Grant  and 
Sumner,  interview  with  Presi- 
dent Lincoln  on  Emancipation 
in  District  of  Columbia,  pur- 
chase of  Wilberforce,  122;  first 
Negro  College  president,  123; 
Andrew   Johnson,   visits   Henry 


A.  Wise  farm  near  Norfolk, 
Va.;  organizes  South  Carolina 
A.  M.  E.  Conference,  May  15, 
1865;  repeats  in  South  labors 
of  twenty  years  previous  in 
North  and  West,  124;  twice 
visits  Europe  in  1867;  Garrison 
and  George  Thompson  compan- 
ions, attends  1881  Ecximenical 
Conference,  literary  work  of 
later  years,  124;  Bethel  Liter- 
ary, Washington,  D.  C,  125; 
establishes  winter  residence  in 
Florida,  World's  Parliament  of 
Religion  at  Chicago,  1893,  125; 
last  days,  personal  appearance, 
125 

Pennsylvania,  4,  5 

Peabody  Board,  26 

Perry,  Oliver  H.,  51 

Pennington,   James   W.   C,   30,   144 

Parrott,  Russell,   11,  28 

Pettiford,  W.  R.,  74 

Pinn,  Robert,  56 

Philippines,  57,  58 

Phillips,   Wendell,   109,   176 

Philadelphia,  44 

Phoenix  Societies,  33 

Pitcairn,   Major,   5 1 

Poor,  Salem,  51 

Plancianos,    54 

Portugal,  slave  pioneer,  last  to 
abolish  institution,  18 

Portsmouth  (First  Baptist,  white), 
Josiah  Bisliop,  pastor,  64 

Porter  Hall,  Tuskegee,  first  build- 
ing erected,  205 

Port  Hudson,  55 

Price,  Joseph  Charles,  a  born 
leader,  his  legal  status, 
meteoric  career,  school  builder. 


280 


INDEX 


popularity  not  measmed  by 
race  or  church;  refuses  $1200 
clerkship,  172;  enters  Lincoln 
University,  173;  attends  Ecu- 
menical Conference  in  1881, 
173;  raises  $10,000  and  Living- 
stone College  begun,  173;  debut 
at  Bethel  Literary  gives  impe- 
tus to  career,  173;  centenary 
of  American  Methodism,  174; 
presides  at  two  national  con- 
ventions held  same  year,  175; 
visits  Pacific  coast,  results  of 
influence  vpith  C.  P.  Hunting- 
ton, W.  E.  Dodge  and  Leland 
Stanford,  176;  Commissioner 
General  Southern  Exposition, 
refuses  Liberian  mission,  175; 
thrice  refuses  candidacy  as 
bishop,  175;  Livingstone  Col- 
lege chief  monument,  176; 
oratory  compared  to  that  of 
Wendell  Phillips;  Bishop  Hood 
tells  of  his  success  in  England, 
rare  and  universal  tribute  at 
death,  178;  Spartanburg  Col- 
lege (white),  S.  C,  estimate, 
178;  prophecy  of  teacher  ful- 
filled,  173 

Porto  Rico,  57 

Poyas,   Peter,    13 

Purvis,  Robert,  34,  46 

Princeton  Seminary,  237 

Proctor,  Walter,   35 


QuATBEFAGES,  African  lineage  of 
early   inhabitants   conceded,    1 

Queen  Elizabeth,  slave  trade,  pa- 
tron, 2 

Quinn,  Rev.  William  Paul,  34 


Ratcliff,  Edward,  56 

Rankin,    J.    E.,    makes    pen    sketch 

of  Langston,  163 
Ray,  Charles  B.,  41 
Rittenhouse,    David,    91 
Rhode  Island,  first  act  for  abolition, 

4 
abolishes  slavery,  10 
Richmond,   Virginia,   provides   orig- 
inal for  B.  T.  Washington,  198 
Rochester  Convention  meets,  40 
Roosevelt,    Theodore,    at    San    Juan 

Hill,  59 
Russwurm,    John    E.,    first    colored 

graduate,  27 
Roman,  Dr.   C.  V.,  73 
Ruby,  Reuben  35 
Rush,  Rt.  Rev.  Christopher,  34 
Revels,  H.  R.,  elected  Senator,  47 
Revolution,   10 
Recorder   of   Deeds,   held   by   B.   K. 

Bruce,  169 
Held  by  Fred  Douglass,   153 
Register    of    Treasury,    Bruce,    165, 

168 
Redpath,  James,  44 
Reconstruction  of  South,  44 

Savannah,   Church   at,   62,   82 
Sallem,  Peter,  battle  of  Bunker  Hill, 

51 
San  Juan,  59 

Saint  Thomas,  West  Indies,  235 
Saint  Thomas  P.  E.  Church,  62,  82 
Saint  Philips,  29,  117 
Scarborough,  W.   S.,  73 
Scott,    R.    K.,    Governor    of    South 

Carolina,   169 
School   building   erected   by   Bishop 

Payne,   116 
Sherman,      John,      nomination      for 


INDEX 


281 


President,   seconded  by  Elliott, 
187 

School  foi'  Slaves,  Charleston,  S.  C, 
7 

"Selling  of   Joseph,"   5 

Sewall,   Justice   Samuel,  5 

Shiloh,  54 

Stephens,  Alexander  H.,  183,  210 

Shaw  University,  25 

Shaw,  Col.  Robert  Gould,  55 

Sharp,  Granville,  100 

Shorter,  James  A.,  122 

Shaw  Monument,  Boston,  210 

Shadd,  Abraham  D.,  30,  32 

Silver  Bluff  Church,  63 

Sixth  Massachusetts  Infantry,  Co. 
L,  57,  59 

Slaves  not  free  accompanying  mas- 
ters, 6 

Slave  owners'  claims  repudiated  by 
Elliott,  181 

Stealing  Negroes  a  felony,  7 

Slater  Fund,  26 

Slave  Code  reenactment,  23 

Slave  trade  prohibited  in  District  of 
Columbia,    22 
abolished  by  England,  18 
Portugal,    18 
Spain,  18 

Slaves  forbidden  to  administer 
medicine,  8 

Smith,  Hoke,  72 

Smith,    James    Carmichael,    retired, 
238 
Gerritt,  45 

Societies,  Phoenix,  33 

Sojourner,  Truth,  birth  and  early 
experience,  104;  what  stirred 
her  protest,  105;  joins  Mother 
of  M.  E.  Church  and  Zion 
Methodism,    105;    the    Mathias 


delusion,  105;  becomes  so- 
journer, 105 ;  heartens  Frederick 
Douglass,  105;  meets  Harriet 
Beecher  Stowe,  106;  Jim  Crow 
cars,  106;  nurse  during  Civil 
War,  107;  calls  on  President 
Lincoln,  106;  street  car  experi- 
ence, 107;  scours  "Copper- 
heads," 108;  "Just  like  a  flea," 
109;  her  philosophy  of  longev- 
ity, 111;  Lady  Godiva  rivaled, 
112;  eloquent  argument  for  fe- 
male suffrage,  112;  last  trip  to 
Washington,  110;  belief  in  set- 
tling freedmen  on  Government 
lands,  110;  impresses  W.  W. 
Story,  113;  genesis  of  the 
"Libyan  Sibyl,"  113;  the  Sibyl's 
mission,  114;  constant  menace, 
number  before  Revolution  in 
Virginia,  in  South  Carolina, 
New  York,  New  York  plot; 
"Gen."  Gabriel;  Denmark 
Vesey;  right  on  the  scaffold; 
Nat  Turner,  birth  and  early 
environment ;  dreams,  visions, 
presentiments ;  Jerusalem  ob- 
jective point;  Virginia  Legis- 
lature; Henry  Wilson's  opin- 
ion;   trial   and   conviction, 

Somerset  case,  7 

South   Carolina,  3,  54 
Regiment,  58 
readmission,  47 

Southern  Educational  Board,  26 

Spencer,  Rev.  Peter,  66 

Spain,  1 

Sparks,  Jared,  34 

Springfield  Baptist  Church,  63 

St.  James,  Court  of,  237 

Stafford,  Colonel,  54 


282 


INDEX 


Stewart,   T.   MeCants,    179,   237 
Steward,  Austin,  29 
Theophilus  G.,   169 
Stowe,    Harriet    Beecher,    41,    106, 

113,    148 
Stroud's    Slave   Laws,    9 
Straight  University,  25 
Story,  W.   W.,   113 
Stanford,  Leland,  176 
Stanley,  Dean,  Appx. 
State  conventions  planned,  36 
State  vs.  Samuel  Lee,  186 
Sumner,  Charles,  157 
Swedes,  3 

Syracuse  Convention,  44 
Sibyl,  Libyan,  113 

Taft,  W.  H.,  President,  72 

Talbot's,  Lord,  ruling,  6 

Tappan,  Arthur  and  Lewis,  31 

Thurman,  Allen  G.,   155 

Turner,   Benjamin   S.,   48 

Tuskegee,  humble  beginnings,  first 
buildings,  phenomenal  growth, 
development,   211 

Thorpe,  Francis  N.,  53 

Toussaint.  Elliott,  compared  to,  181 

Tilton,  Theodore,  at  Loyalist  Con- 
vention,  151 

Texas,  47 

Trotter,    William   Monroe,    74 

Tobey,  H.  A.,  early  patron  of  Dun- 
bar,   189 

Tanner.  Henry  O.,  prophecy  Wil- 
liam H.  Channing,  early  en- 
vironment, 219;  youth's  vs. 
parents'  aspiration;  self-denial, 
sculpture  and  photography ; 
Eaken  and  Hovenden,  220 ;  goes 
to  Paris,  some  early  subjects, 
special     field,     at     the     salon; 


"Raising  of  Lazarus,"  221; 
"Nicodemus,"  "Daniel  in  Lions' 
Den,"  223;  "Disciples  at  Em- 
maus,"  224;  "Mothers  of  the 
Bible,"  "Wise  and  Foolish  Vir- 
gins," 225;  some  other  themes, 
226. 

Thompson,  George,  English  aboli- 
tionist,  124 

Tillman,   Benjamin,   72 

Union  University,  202 
United      States      Commissioner      to 
Congo,    187 

Commissioner  of  Haiti,   153 

Minister  to  Haiti,  153,  157,  158 

Supreme    Court,    49,    71 
University  of  London,  Elliott,   187, 

of  Leland  Stanford,  Jr.,  Foreword, 

of   North   Carolina,   68 
Upper  Canada,  30 

Vaedaman,  J.  A.,  72 
Varick,  Eev.  James,  64,  69 
Vermont,  never  slave  colony,  10 
Virginia,  1 

tobacco,   5 

readmission,  47 

Sixth,    58 
Vesey,  Denmark,   12,  21-^ 
Vogelsang,    Pet«r,    29 
Villard,  Oswald  Garrison,  76 

Ward,    Samuel    Ringgold,    36,    128, 

149,   187 
Waring,  Arthur  M.,  29 
Walker,  Rev.  Jacob,  63 
Watts,   Rev.   Henry,   63 
Washington,   Bushrod,   Colonization 

Society,   19 


INDEX 


283 


George,   sentiments  against  slav- 
ery,   10,   79 

Phillis  Wheatley,  82,  83,  84 

Negro  enlistments,  50 
Watkins,  William,  35 
Washington,  Booker  T.,  time  ani 
place  of  birth,  also  ancestry, 
points  in  common  with  Doug- 
lass, 195;  journey  to  West  Vir- 
ginia, Maiden  as  a  center,  196; 
early  desire  to  learn,  some  early 
teachers,  difficulties  in  attend- 
ing school,  first  appearance  at 
school,  cap  and  name,  197; 
learns  of  Hampton,  journey 
thither,  arrival  at  Richmond, 
unique  lodging  place,  unloads 
vessel,  198;  arrives  at  Hamp- 
ton, interview  with  Miss  M.  F. 
Mackie,  college  entrance  exami- 
nation, 199;  favorably  im- 
presses Gen.  S.  C.  Armstrong, 
personal  hygienic  habits,  posi- 
tion of  janitor;  S.  C.  Morgan, 
patron,  his  first  vacation,  200; 
mother  suddenly  dies,  gradu- 
ates as  honor  student,  experi- 
ences at  summer  hotel  in  Con- 
necticut, first  school  at  his 
former  home,  201;  student  at 
Wayland  Seminary,  new  part 
of  Union  University,  "The 
Force  that  Wins,"  202;  becomes 
Indian  house  father,  the  call 
to  Tuskegee,  school  opened, 
203 ;  first  assistant,  Olivia  A. 
Davidson,  J  F.  B.  Marshall  to 
the  rescue;  sets  examples  to 
students  in  physical  labor; 
Miss  Davidson's  entertain- 
ments,   205;    Porter    Hall    first 


building,  erected  on  faith;  ex- 
tent of  Gen.  Armstrong's  as- 
sistance, loss  of  Washington's 
first  wife  great  bereavement; 
marries  Miss  Davidson;  experi- 
ence in  brick  making,  success 
follows  persistence ;  Pullman 
palace  car  experience  through 
Georgia,  206;  first  opportunity 
to  speak  North;  the  beginning 
of  a  series  of  phenomenal 
tours;  greets  Carnegie  and 
Huntington ;  at  Providence, 
hungry  and  without  money, 
207;  first  obtains  general  ap- 
proval of  the  South  by  address 
before  National  Educational 
Association  at  Madison,  Wis.; 
first  opportunity  to  face  South- 
ern audience  came  at  Atlanta 
meeting  of  Christian  Workers; 
travels  2000  miles  to  make  five 
minute  speech,  207;  speech  be- 
fore a  committee  of  Congress 
to  secure  aid  for  Cotton  Expo- 
sition a  turning  point  in  eff'orts 
to  appropriation,  208;  Negro 
building  by  Negro  mechanics 
result  of  that  speech;  chosen 
one  of  the  opening  day  ora- 
tors, 208;  speech  echoed 
throughout  the  country;  great- 
ness thrust  before  him;  Alex. 
Stephens'  estimate  of  Grant 
compared  to  the  potentiality  of 
Washington,  209;  visits  Eu- 
rope, all  expenses  arranged; 
organized  Business  Men's 
League  in  1900;  two  stories  in 
"Up  from  Slavery"  show  op- 
portunity,    responsibility,     and 


284 


INDEX 


significance  involved  in  accept- 
ance of  the  Atlanta  speech, 
208;  scene  for  historic  paint- 
ing; Clark  Howell's  prediction, 
209;  at  Johns  Hopkins,  before 
Lyceum  Bureaus,  Colleges,  Har- 
vard confers  A,  M.  degree,  ora- 
tor at  Sliaw  monument  un- 
veiling; shares  honor  with 
McKinley  during  Jubilee  Week 
at  Chicago,  210;  at  Wilberforce 
University;  as  political  leader, 
212. 

Waiigh,  Beverly,  M.  E.  bishop,  class 
leader  of  Frederick  Douglass, 
140 

Wesley,  John,  64 

\Vestminster   Abbey,  appx. 

Webster,  Daniel,  opinion  of  S.  R. 
Ward,  36 

Webb,   Rev.  William,  41 

Welsh,  Molly,  86 

Wilberforce,   William,   English   abo- 
litionist,  100 
University,   122 

Williams,   Rev.    Peter,    117,    136 
George  W.,  84 

Williamsburg,    17,    62 

Williams,  Dr.  Daniel  H.,  73 

Wise,  Henry  A.,  attempts  arrest  of 
Frederick    Douglass,    149 

"Will,"  emancipated  by  General 
Assembly  of  Virginia,  7 

Wheatley,  Phillis,  stolen  from 
Africa,  sold  in  Boston,  John 
Wheatley  purchaser,  77 ;  mas- 
ters English  in  16  months, 
rapid  progi'ess  in  studies,  joins 
church  at  sixteen,  78;  shows 
fondness  for  the  classics,  com- 


posed frequently  at  night,  79; 
first  edition  of  poems  published 
and  authorship  vouched  for  by 
John  Hancock,  81 ;  goes  to  Eng- 
land, meets  nobility;  returns  to 
America,  patroness  dies,  mar- 
ries John  Peters,  80;  dedicates 
ode  to  Washington ;  precedes 
Dr.  James  Durham  and  Banne- 
ker,  82;   death  recorded,  81. 

Wheatland,  Dr.  Marcus  F.,  73 

Wheeler,  Gen.  Joseph,  58 

Whipper,  William,  advocates  aban- 
donment of  word  "colored" 
and   "African,"   35,  42 

Whitman,  A.  A.,  Dedication 

Whipple,  George,  American  Mission- 
ary Society,  155 

Whittingham,  Bishop,  137 

White,  Jacob  C,  St.,  35 
Rev.  William  J.,  63 
George  H.,  47 

Whitefield,  Rev.  George,  67 
John  M.,  41,  43 

Willis,   Rev.  Joseph,  69 

Wilson,  William  J.,  42 
Henry,   "Rise   and   Fall   of  Slave 
Power,"  16 

Wright,  Theodore  S.,  34 
Richard   R.,   Jr.,   74 
Major  Richard  R.,  73 

Work,  M.  N.,  74 

XiMiNES,    Cardinal,   2 

Young,  Major  Charles,  58 

ZiON    Methodist   Episcopal    Church, 
62 
Sojourner,  Truth,   joins,   105 


X12 


LRBJe'i'8 


t- 


7^    ^-^ 


iv. 


iU 


9'      V.  ^  "  " 


/        C' 


.^^■■^ 


<-* 


'  0  .    .  ^       .'"^ 


Vp  a\  '     ,    0   N    G 


*  'b 


'^^, 


cP"     ^"' 


,0  o 


"o  0^    r  i- 


.%'"•' '/>-"' •'"<''"-- 


^. 


<-•  / 


.V' 


^a^. 


V\sV''.^/> 


/ 


^ 


vV       * 


'       ^       ff 

•^  ^•-^^,.  ' 


■^^ 


^ 


'Vc:^  :>|fe{^  %>/' 


.•^      .^^^:.. 


■  X^^'  "^^ 


»,- 


-(■       'O- 


"N 


o 


"oo^ 


r^  ,^  %  ^'^ 


<*  .         ^  0    ,     V    *         X 


■   xOo 


^0 


'  ,,    '  >       -  -  "     .o'^ 


^: 


.v^     '"^^ 


.'>  -A 


--'^^ 


-^J^    ^ 

'='^ 


yOlO^ 


i<   '' 


^^' 


.^' 


o5  "^    -  ^ 


0^ 


V 


oo. 


-bo 


A 


^^  '     «    4    ^  ^'- 

V 


.:^^  '^. 


A, 


•O    ■■  •/  0  ,   ,v  ^ 


^ 
-*=" 


.-^'' 


c    <^ 


cS"  '-%., 


<)     --.      V 


.*> 


,1 


^^ 


^^ 


.^^   -'-' 


"^^ 


V 


0  O^ 


^.   .^"^ 


'^■^ 


O'      ■«. 


■\    -J   0 


■i. 


rO' 


,^-% 


'•ii^-^         N  .'i-' 


V         ^O 


c. 


s         o 


x^"   "^. 


a  1   i 


V 


\ 


.,0-' 


z  ^ 


■^OO^ 


.| 


-^         el's  "^         c 


C' 


1  »      > 

^^      -71,.         ^    ^^ 


,0C) 


O^        Xi, 


.-s: 


A\^ 


.11 


V>.x 


y    s^ 


'  <■  / 


c^ 


'0 


0    '  ^.  ■^ 


.•^■*\ 


,\i>    r  (C  t< 

\  -  "  ^         ' 


?>  -^^^ 


;^'  *     'X^^ 


^  ^      .,jt--,.i'  '.f^. 


.   \        ^  s  »  <■   /         ^ 


'X^ 


K^^ 


vO°<. 


■^ 


•^^ 


.0 


^^  <^.. 


.<^ 


S     "> 


3  >• 


\^^^ 


"> 


0'    v-^'  '  "  ^ 


'^' 


9-    ■        "  /•  CT' 


^"°. 


'^.  ,^^ 


/\ 


A"  7- 


»   «    7         ^. 


.■^' 


1-   v'?^  '^'^^ 


^.  ^.